IP 1 ■ ' " •'M!!mi'!i! ■ - ' ■ ' . i;! ip liiilniii': •: iflPHf'i'J'.i' p!!™ • (iip lite iiijiiiiiii lllii i mm'' . I "^^"'b ":!"%. ' -^r i^'- ^<^9% ' --, av .*■ o^^' c,^<> V- ,<^ -o^ "b 0^ .\ ■ x ■<<. A SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HIST,ORY LEADING DOCUMENTS TOGETHER WITH ILLUSTRATIVE MATERIAL FROM CONTEMPORARY IVRITERS AND A BIBLIOGRAPHY OF SOURCES BY GUY CARLETON LEE, PH.D. OF JOHNS HOPKINS UNIVERSITY NEW YORK HENRY HOLT AND COMPANY 1900 46208 L-ibr&ry of P<€i^ Ktct /ED SEP 12 1900 sicom COPY. 0«li^^ Copyright, tgoo, BY HENRY HOLT & CO. I dedicate this volume, by his kind permission, to XLbc *RiQbt IRevcrcnO 'CClUUam Stubbs LORD BISHOP OF OXFORD In appreciation of his contributions to historical literature PREFACE In editing this volume I have differed from the plan of selection adopted by Bishop Stubbs, in that I have in- cluded illustrative material not strictly documentary ; and I have departed from the method of Professor Hart — from whom I have borrowed the name, source-book — in that I have included the great constitutional and legal documents which furnish the framework of the history of national development. Though I have differed in details of editing from these learned scholars, to whom students and teachers of his- tory are under great obligations, yet I have striven for the same result that they have so successfully attained, in that their works are not only useful tools for the class- room and authoritative reference works for the library but are interesting to the general reader. The scope of this collection of sources is such as to make it available for use with any text-book upon Eng- lish History. It extends from the first mention of Britain by ancient historians to the last great treaty with the Boers of South Africa. Thanks to the liberality of my publishers, who have regarded the work from the educa- tional rather than the commercial point of view, I have been enabled to add to its usefulness by including much illustrative material hitherto inaccessible to most stu- dents. The first part of the volume is devoted to a working bibliography of sources. An attempt has been made to cite nearly every important collection by title; and, where an omission has been found to be necessary, the student is furnished with such bibliographical informa- "^ . vii Vlll PREFACE tion as will enable him to find material for the epoch under consideration. I desire to express my obligations in this department to the erudite and invaluable works of Professor Charles Gross and of the late Sir Thomas Duff us Hardy ; to them the student must always turn for bibliographical detail. In editing this volume I have in most cases modern- ized the spelling, punctuation, and capitalization of the excerpts, believing that documents are most useful in their most readable form. I have, however, preserved the original style when necessary to bring out the full effect of the selections. In selecting matter from printed texts I have sought to excerpt from the most approved editions without reference to date of their publication. In choosing from reprints I have preferred the official editions. In deciding upon translations I have selected and edited those which in my opinion most faithfully present the meaning of the best manuscripts. The senti- ments expressed in the selections are those of the respect- ive authors; I am obliged to disclaim any responsibility for them. I desire to express my gratitude to authors and pub- lishers for the use of much valuable material. I have taken pains to acknowledge special obligations by indi- cating my sources at the close of each selection. I am especially grateful for the many privileges and kind- nesses which I have received from Philip R. Uhler, Pro- vost of the Peabody Library, and his assistants, all of whom have been untiring in their efforts to aid me in my work, , I shall be under obligations to my fellow-labourers in the field of history if they will advise me of any sins of omission or commission which they may note. G. C. L. Historical Department Johns Hopkins University May, 1900 CONTENTS PART I BIBLIOGRAPHY OF SOURCES Chapter I — Historians, Catalogues and Collections SECTION PAGE 1. The Historians 3 2. Catalogues of Sources 5 3. Great Collections of Materials 9 Chapter II — Sources Arranged by Epochs 4. Pre-Norman Period 26 5. From the Conquest to the Charter ......... 31 6. From the Charter to the Reformation 34 7. The Tudor Period 40 8. The Struggle for Constitutional Government .... 49 9. The Hanoverian Period 55 10. Nineteenth Century 61 PART II THE PRE-NORMAN PERIOD {circa 425 B.C. to 1066 a.d.) Chapter III — The Britain of the Ancients 11. First Mention of the Islands afterwards called British . 65 12. First Mention of the Islands by Name 65 13. Evidence of Increasing Interest in the British Islands . 66 14. First Roman Invasion of Britain 66 15. Description of the Britons 68 16. Characteristics of the Britons 69 17. The Tin Mines of Britain 70 18. Phases of the Roman Occupation 72 19. Consequences of the Withdrawal of the Romans ... 76 20. The Power of Britain revives 77 ix X CONTENTS Chapter IV — The Birth of the English Nation SECTION PAGE 21. The Ancient Germans 79 22. Coming of Hengist and Horsa 8o 23. England becomes One Kingdom 82 24. Reestablishment of Christianity 84 Chapter V — Anglo-Saxon Laws (The Dooms of the Kings Alfred, Athelstan, and Edgar) 25. Of a Man's Eye- Wound and of various other Limbs . . 87 26. Of Lordless Men 88 27. Of Landless Men 88 28. Of the Doom concerning Hot Iron and Water .... 88 29. Of Wer-Gilds 89 30. Of People's Ranks and Law 90 31. How the Hundred shall be held 91 32. Ordinance of King Edgar — Church-Scots 92 2,2,- Tithes 92 34. Hearth Penny 92 35. Festivals and Fasts 93 2,^. Secular Ordinance 93 Chapter VI — The Danes in England 2,7- Danish Invasions 96 38. Alfred at Athelney 97 39. Alfred and Guthrum's Peace 98 40. Second Period of Danish Invasion 99 41. Laws of Canute loi 42. Charter of Canute 103 43. Letter of Canute to his People 105 PART III FROM THE CONQUEST TO THE CHARTER (1066 to 1215) Chapter VII — The Norman Rule 44. Invasion of England m 45- Coronation Oath of William the Conqueror 117 46. Administration of William I17 47- Character of William Il8 48. Doomsday Survey .119 CONTENTS 3d SECTION PAGE 49. A Doomsday Manor 121 50. Letter of William I. to Gregory VII 121 51. Royal Supremacy 122 52. Separation of Spiritual and Lay Courts 122 53. First Charter of the City of London 123 54. Exactions of William Rufas 124 55. Charter of Liberties of Henry 1 124 56. Charter of the City of London (from Henry I.) . . . 127 57. The Investiture Controversy 128 Chapter VIII — The Early Angevins 58. Henry II. and Thomas a Becket at the Council of Woodstock 130 59. The Council of Westminster 131 60. The Constitutions of Clarendon 133 61. The King's Rash Words and Becket's Death .... 137 62. The Assize of Clarendon 138 6^. Constitution of the King's Household 141 64. The First Coronation of Richard 1 147 65. Levying a Feudal Aid 149 PART IV FROM THE CHARTER TO THE REFORMATION (1215 to 1529) Chapter IX — The Papal Authority Triumphant 66. The Struggle between John and Innocent HI 155 67. England under the Interdict 156 68. John Excommunicated by Name 157 69. The Pope deposes the King 158 70. The Papal Legate in England 159 71. The Repentance of the King 160 72. John resigns Crown and Kingdom to the Pope .... 160 72. John does Homage to the Pope 162 74. Declaration of Laws and Rights 164 Chapter X — The Winning of the Charter 75. Rising of the Barons 165 76. Conference held by the Barons 165 77. Demands of the Barons 166 Xll SECTION CONTENTS PAGB 78. London given up to the Barons 168 79. Meeting at Runnymede 168 80. The Magna Charta 169 Chapter XI — The Growth of Law 81. Summonses to Parliament 181 82. Confirmation of the Charters 184 83. Ecclesiastical Sanction of the Confirmation of the Charters 186 84. De Tallagio Non Concedendo 186 85. Law of Mortmain 187 86. Freedom of Parliament '^' 189 87. Taxation of Religious Houses 189 88. The Statute of " Quia Emptores " 193 89. Coronation Oath of Edward II I95 90.' A Statute of Provisors (1352) I95 91. First Statute of Treasons 196 92. Second Statute of Provisors . 198 93. Great Statute of Praemunire 199 Chapter XII — The Black Death 94. Spread of the Plague 203 95 Statute of Labourers 206 Chapter XIII — Lollardy 96. Wycliffite Conclusions 209 97. Bull of Pope Gregory XL against Wycliffe 211 98. Reply of Wycliffe to a Summons from the Pope . . . 212 99. De Hseretico Comburendo 214 100. Henry V. to the Mayor and Sheriffs of London . . . 217 loi. Henry V. to the Sheriff of Kent 219 102. Henry VI. to the Abbot of St. Edmondsbury .... 220 103. Mandate for the Burning of a Heretic ....... 222 PART V THE TUDOR PERIOD (1509 to 1603) Chapter XIV — The Divorce Question" 104. Henry Attempts to secure the Aid of the Church . . 227 105. Speeches at the Trial 229 CONTENTS xiii SECTION PAGE io6. Divorce Proceedings announced to the House of Com- mons ........ 231 Chapter XV — Henry VHI and the Church 107. Payment of Annates to the Pope Forbidden 234 108. Appeals to Rome Prohibited 236 109. Henry's Attitude toward Heretics 237 no. Submission of the Clergy 239 111. Act of Supremacy 243 112. Denial of the Authority of the Pope 244 113. Dissolution of the Monasteries 244 114. Confession made with the Surrender of a Monastery . 247 115. Directions for Visitations of Monasteries 247 116. Letters concerning the Suppression of the Monasteries . 256 117. Summons to the Pilgrimage of Grace 263 118. Lancaster Herald's Mission to the Insurgents .... 263 119. The Six Articles 267 120. The Bible in the English Churches 269 121. Church Services to be in English 271 Chapter XVI — The Reign of Edward VI 122. Regulations concerning the Sacrament of the Lord's Supper 273 123. Act of Uniformity 274 124. Against Books and Images 277 125. Journal of Edward VI 279 Chapter XVII — The Reaction against Protestantism 126. Lady Jane Grey's Claim to the Throne 281 127. Execution of Lady Jane Grey 285 128. Mary's Claim to the Throne 286 128a Reply of the Council 287 129. Mary's Status as Queen 289 130. Mary attempts to restore Church Lands 291 131. Mary's Orders for the Execution of John Hooper . . 292 132. The Burning of Ridley and Latimer 293 Chapter XVIII — Elizabeth 133. Classes of the People in the XVIth Century .... 298 xiv CONTENTS SECTION PAGE 134. The Anglican Standpoint 300 135. The Presbyterian Position ... . .... . . . 302 136. Whitgift's Articles touching Preachers and other Or- ders for the Church 304 137. Puritan Demands 3^5 138. Privileges of Parliament 306 139. Elizabeth and Mary Stuart 307 140. Defeat of the Spanish Armada 309 141. Armada Speech of Elizabeth 310 142. Execution of Margaret Qitherow 312 143. Death of Elizabeth . 313 Chapter XIX — Elizabethan Seamen 144. Hawkins' Third Voyage 316 145. Drake's Famous Voyage 319 146. Frobisher's First Voyage 325 147. The Beginnings of American Colonization 327 PART VI THE STRUGGLE FOR CONSTITUTIONAL GOVERN- MENT (1603 to 1688) Chapter XX — The Reign of James I. 148. Coronation Oath of James 1 335 149. Crown above the Courts ., 336 150. King is above the Law 337 151. Millenary Petition 338 152. Levying a Feudal Aid 341 153. Benevolences 342 154. James I. and the Commons 344 Chapter XXI — The Puritan Revolution 155. The Petition of Right 348 156. First Writ of Ship-Money 352 157. Ship-Money declared Illegal 355 158. Charles I. and Strafford 357 158a Charles I. to the House of Lords in behalf of the Earl of Strafford 358 158b Parliament considers King's Letter 359 159- A Summary of Grievances 360 CONTENTS XV SECTION PAGE i6o. The Charge against the King , 364 161. Charles refuses to Plead 366 162. The Sentence of the King 368 163. The Death Warrant of Charles 1 372 Chapter XXII — England a Commonwealth 164. Act abolishing the Office of King 273 165. House of Lords Abolished S7^ 166. England declared to be a Commonwealth 376 167. Instrument of Government 377 168. Cromwell disciplines his first Parliament 387 169. Cromwell and the Kingship 389 170. Richard Cromwell becomes Lord Protector .... 392 Chapter XXIII — The Restoration 171. Declaration of Breda 394 172. Reception of the Declaration of Breda by Parliament . 396 173. Commons thank Sir John Grenville 397 174. Resolutions of Parliament urging the King to Return . 398 175. Beginning of Cabinet Government 398 176. Opinion of French Court concerning Members of Cabal 398 177. Habeas Corpus Act 400 178. James II. and the Catholics 409 179. The Last Appeal 412 PART VII ENGLAND A CONSTITUTIONAL MONARCHY Chapter XXIV — '' The Glorious Revolution " 180. Memorial from the Church of England to the Prince of Orange 417 181. The Prince of Orange reorganizes the Government . 418 182. The Lords invite William to undertake the Government 419 183. The Manner of Summoning Parliament 419 184. Answer of the Prince to the Suggestions of the Lords 420 185. William of Orange to the Commons 421 186. The Commons answer the Prince 421 187. The Prince's Address to Parliament 422 188. The Parliamentary Title of the Sovereign of England 423 189. The Bill of Rights 424 190. Act of Settlement 431 xvi CONTENTS SECTION PAGB 191. Jesuits in England under William 436 192. Dissenters in the Eighteenth Century 438 Chapter XXV — Union between England and Scotland 193. Queen Anne's Speeches on Union of England and Scot- land 443 194. Union between England and Scotland 445 Chapter XXVI — The Jacobite Rebellions 195. The Proclamation of James III 456 196. Landing of the Young Pretender 458 197. Escape of Prince Charles at Moy Hall 460 198. After Culloden 462 199. Bond given by the Young Pretender 464 200. Execution of the Rebel Lords 464 Chapter XXVII — John Wilkes 201. No. 45 of the "North Briton" 467 Chapter XXVIII — American Independence 202. Question of Taxation 474 203. Policy of Conciliation 475 204. Right to Tax 477 205. Character of the Colonists 480 Chapter XXIX — Union of Great Britain and Ireland 206. The Union Advocated 483 207. Grattan Opposes the Union 485 208. Act of Union between Great Britain and Ireland . . . 487 PART vm THE NINETEENTH CENTURY Chapter XXX — Emancipation 209. "No-Popery" Riots 497 210. Speech of King George on Catholic Emancipation . . 500 211. Speech of the Attorney General against the Catholic Emancipation Bill 501 212. Speech of Lord Plunkett for the Emancipation Bill . 504 CONTENTS xvii SECTION PAGE 213. The Duke of Wellington on Emancipation 511 214. End of Jewish Disability 509 215. Oaths Act 510 216. Jewish Relief Act 513 217. End of the Slave Trade 515 Chapter XXXI — Parliamentary Reform 218. Speech on the First Reform Bill 519 219. Prorogation of the Anti-Reform Parliament .... 523 220. Passage of the First Reform Bill 527 Chapter XXXII — Chartism and Corn Law Repeal 221. First National Petition 531 222. Presentation of the National Petition 537 223. Suffering of the '' Lower Classes " 537 224. Repeal of the Corn Law 539 Chapter XXXIII — Australia 225. Establishment of the Colony 542 226. First Penal Settlement 545 227. Discovery of Gold 549 228. Result of the Finding of Gold 551 Chapter XXXIV — The Indian Empire 229. English at Surat and Bombay 554 230. Letter of Warren Hastings 557 231. Cession of India to the English Crow^n 562 232. Victoria, Empress of India 565 Chapter XXXV — England and the Transvaal 2:>,^. Sand River Convention 583 234. Convention of Pretoria 571 235. Convention of London 580 Bibliographical Index 587 Subject Index 603 PART I BIBLIOGRAPHY OF SOURCES CHAPTER I HISTORIANS, CATALOGUES, AND COLLECTIONS SECTION 1. — THE HISTORIANS The student of history should be able to recall without effort the names of the principal historians of his chosen field. With the names should be associated in his memory the important works of those historians, and of these works the scope and value should be known. As study becomes more intensive and the field of research narrower or more thoroughly explored, his bibliography of the subject should attain a comprehensiveness that includes all available material. Bibliographies are too often mere collections of names, series of titles which form a catalogue whose value varies with the knowledge possessed as to each item. Such in- sufficiency of equipment more often results from lack of a true conception on the part of the student of his needs than from unwillingness to gain the requisite knowledge. The most extended and minute knowledge of authors and their works is incomplete — is, we may say, of little worth — unless it includes a valuation of the items of evidence which bibliography furnishes. This appraisement must be the work of the student himself, and by his success must be measured his understanding of history. To acquire the power of correctly gauging the weight of this or that his- torian is by no means easy; but it is not impossible. The work of critics and essayists will give views worthy of most respectful consideration ; but such work is too often special pleading, and in the last instance the student must, as did the critic, investigate for himself the personality, the environ- ment, and the opportunities of the writer whose work is under examination. Until a knowledge of these is gained, even a study of original materials fails to reveal the mean- ing and purport of history. 3 4 " SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY I BOSTON, JOHN (b. ; d. 1410) : Catalogus Scriptorum EcclesicB. Valuable for its account of the libraries of England in the fourteenth century. Of slight worth in accounts of individual authors. The Catalogus has been reprinted in part in No. VII. Boston is the first of the English Bibliographers. II LELAND, JOHN (b. 1506; d. 1552) : De Rebus Britannicis Collectanea, ed. T. Hearne. Oxford, 171 5. Reprinted London, 1770. — Commentarii de Script orihus Britannicis, ed. A. Hall. Oxford, 1709. — (A continuation of De Re- bus, etc.) Leland has been called "the Father of English Antiqua- ries." He was the librarian of Henry VIII., and as "King's antiquary" was commissioned to search for records and manuscripts in all cathedrals, colleges, abbeys and priors of England. He was successful in his search, and his » works, of which the two principal ones are noted above, are of great value. Although Boston (No. I) antedates Leland, yet the latter's work was the first important English con- tribution to bibliographical knowledge and was the foun- dation for future publications of similar character. Ill BALE, JOHN (b. 1495; d. 1563): Illustrium Majoris Bri- tannia^ Scriptorum, hoc est, Anglice, Cambricu ac Scotia, Summarium. First published Ipswich, 1549. Then in " several editions at London. Notably the first ed. 1559, under title Illustrium Majoris Britannice Scriptorum Cata- logus, a Japheto sanctissimi Noah filio ad An. Dom. 1559. Bale was educated in the Catholic faith. He became a Protestant and a most zealous partisan. His life was a stormy one, and his writings reflect the bitterness engendered by the religious controversies in which he was actively en- gaged. Despite his bias and bitterness against all writers not of his faith, his work is yet of great value because of the minuteness with which it describes Protestant writers not elsewhere mentioned. IV PITS, JOHN (b. 1560; d. 1616) : Relationum Historicarum de Rebus Anglicis, Tomus primus. Paris 1619. This work is also known as De Illustribus Anglice Scriptoribus. This is the fourth volume of Pits' work. The first three vol-. , umes have never been published. The manuscript is at Verdun, in the library of the collegiate church. HISTORIANS, CATALOGUES, COLLECTIONS 5 Pits was a violent Catholic partisan. His work furnishes the antithesis to that of Bale (No. III.) It is marred by the same suppressions, exaggerations and misrepresentations in favour of the Catholics as occur in the work of Bale in behalf of the Protestants. But the book is of value for its careful and comprehensive accounts of Catholic writers and their works. V CAVE, WILLIAM (b. 1637; d. 1713) : Scriptorum Ec- clesiastic or iim Hist or ia Litter aria a Christ o nato usque ad Scrcuhmt XIV. First published 1688. The best edition is that of the Clarendon Press, 1740-1743. This contains many additions by Cave and a continuation by Wharton and Grey bringing the v;^ork down to 15 17. The work is in the main trustworthy. (See contra, Le- clerc, in Bibliotheque universelle.) Cave was careful, ac- curate, and able to avail himself of existing sources. The volume is of especial value in its field of Church History. VI WARE, SIR JAMES (b. 1594; d. 1666) : De Scriptorihus Hibernice. 1639. The first of the great bibliographies of Irish History. It is fair, but limited in scope and lacking in detail. Superseded by No. VII. VII TANNER, THOMAS (b. 1674; d. 1735): Bihliotheca Bri- tannic o-Hibernica. London, 1748, ed. D. Wilkins. "On all questions connected with the early literature of our nation. Tanner's Bibliothcca, notwithstanding its many omissions, defects and redundancies, is still the highest au- thority to which the inquirer can refer." See Hardy in No. VIII. The Bibliothcca is based on original research, and yet due regard was paid to the work of Leland, Bale and Pits. For details regarding later historians consult Allibone, S. A., Critical Dictionary of English Literature, w^ith supple- ment by J. F. Kirk ; Lee's Dictionary of National Biography, and other cyclopaedic works. SECTION 2. — CATALOGUES OF SOURCES Catalogues of Sources are indispensable to the student. Their uses are varied. The student who is acquainted with the name of an author or editor turns to the catalogues for 6 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY an enumeration of his works, their contents, and a synopsis of particulars regarding editions, times and places of publi- cation, and reviews, comments, and criticisms; or the name of the work is taken as a basis of research and the same results are obtained. Again, the investigator may desire to obtain an estimate of the critical value of a work, in a con- densed form and apart from the point of view of essays and reviews. Lastly, the student may desire to gain a knowledge of the literature upon a given subject, and this is to be found in the catalogues. I have below given references to the most useful works in this field; but the student should supplement these and keep abreast of current literature by reference to the Annual Annotated Bibliography of English History, edited by W. D. Johnston. This has been published in both card and pamphlet form by the American Library Associa- tion. It will henceforth be found in the Annual Report of the American Historical Association. Knowledge of the valuable contributions upon present historical questions may be obtained by reference to Poole and Fletcher's Index to Periodical Literature, and also to the Cumulative Index. The student, however, must not rest content with these sources of information. They will serve for the preparation of the skeleton bibliography, the construction of which should always precede serious historical investigation; but this framework must be clothed from the references to be found in footnotes and bibliographical lists attached to works upon his chosen field. Information thus obtained is more directly referred to its proper place, and assigned its exact value and application, than is possible in any general catalogue. VIII HARDY, THOMAS DUFFUS: A Descriptive Catalogue of Manuscripts relating to the History of Great Britain and Ireland. Published 1862-1891 in the Rolls Series (No. XXXI) in 3 volumes. Vol. I (2 pts.), 1066; Vol. II, 1066-1200; Vol. Ill, 1200-1327. Vol. I, pt. 2, con- tains a catalogue of printed source material up to date of publication. This catalogue is of the greatest value. It furnishes in concise form a mass of indispensable data. It is, and must for years remain, the basis of bibliographical study in early English history. A supplement to Vol. I, Part 2, is needed, but the student can without difficulty supply the break from 1862 to this present date. HISTORIANS, CATALOGUES, COLLECTIONS 7 IX WATT'S BIBLIOTHECA BRITANNICA: A General In- dex to British and Foreign Literature, ed. R. Watt. Edin- burgh, 1824. This catalogue is a mine of information. It is indexed by authors and subjects. X LOWNDES, WILLIAM THOMAS (b. 1800; d. 1843): The Bibliographer's Manual of English Literature, ed. H. G. Bohn. London, 1864. This series (11 vols. i2mo) is of great value. Its scope is indicated by the sub-title : 'An Account of rare, curious, and useful books, published in or relating to Great Britain and Ireland, from the invention of printing ; with biograph- ical and critical notices, collations of the rarer articles and the prices at which they have been sold in the present cen- tury." The appendix volume is especially useful ; it contains "An Account of books issued by literary and scientific so- cieties and printing clubs ; books printed at private presses ; privately printed series; and the principal literary and scien- tific serials." XI THE ENGLISH CATALOGUE of Books published from 18^5 to January 186^. Comprising the Contents of the London and the British Catalogues, etc., etc. London, 1864. This series has been continued to date. Although it leaves much to be desired, it is invaluable. Its appendix continues the work of Lowndes (No. X) in cataloguing publications of learned societies. It thus bridges the gap between Lowndes and the Official Year Book of the Scientific and Learned Societies, which was begun in 1884. The scope of this series is shown by the sub-title of its continuations : 'An Alphabetical List of Works published in the United Kingdom and of the Principal Works published in America. With dates of Publication, Indications of Size, Price, Edi- tions and Publishers' names." For earlier record of printed books see the catalogues of Maunsell (1595) A Catalogue of certaine books (1631), London (1658), Clavell (1666- 1695), Bent's General Catalogue (1786), London Catalogue (1811-1855) continued by No. XI. See also The American Catalogue. XII GROSS, CHARLES : Bibliography of British Municipal History, 'including Gilds and Parliamentary Representa- tion. Published in Harvard Historical Studies, 1897. 8 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY This is the most modern, the most illuminating, and with- al the most satisfactory work within its chosen field. The scope of the work is even more extensive than indicated by its title. In addition to the class of w^orks included above, there are a number of most helpful volumes upon modern historians. These do not pretend to be as scientific in treatment or as inclusive in scope as those numbered from I to XII and yet should be within access of students. Among them I v^^ould enumerate : XIII ADAMS, C. K. : Manual of Historical Literature. New York, I J This work comprises "brief descriptions of the most im- portant histories." It is a helpful work, and from it may be obtained impartial and accurate estimates of historical values. The Manual was first published in 1882. No thorough re- vision has been made. The revision of 1888 was not a com- plete one. A new edition of this valuable book is needed. XIV SONNENSCHEIN, W. S. : Best Books. A Reader's Guide to the choice of the Best Available Books in every depart- ment of Science, Art, and Literature (about ^0,000 titles) down to i8po, with prices and numerous notes. London, 1889. Also, by same editor, A Reader's Guide to Con- temporary Literature being the first supplement to Best Books. London, 1894. These volumes are of the greatest value. They are not only useful for historical purposes, but furnish a wealth of bibliographical information upon the multitude of questions arising in the study of history. Such knowledge is in- dispensable to the thorough student. The student should know Brunet, J. C. : Manuel du Libraire, Paris ; also Ebert, F. A.: Allgemeines bibliographisches Lexikon, Leipzig, 1821-30. The student will find much biographical information in a book whose title would seem to limit it to a particular library, but whose application is not so confined. It is Hand-list of Bibliographies, classified Catalogues and In- dexes placed in the Reading Room of the British Museum for Reference. See also Richard Sims' Hand-Book to the library of the British Museum. HISTORIANS, CATALOGUES, COLLECTIONS SECTION 3.— GREAT COLLECTIONS OF MATERIALS The manuscript sources of English history for the periods after the Norman Conquest are abundant and valuable. Through the labours of scores of scholars, working, not for gain, but for the advancement of historical science, the student has at his disposal critical editions of a large part of the most important sources. These texts have been prepared with an erudition and exhaustiveness that is unsurpassed, perhaps unequalled, in like critical work. The texts have in many cases been issued in collections and series, and it is my purpose in this section to give a general statement of the characters of the most important, and to indicate where de- tailed information concerning them can be found. The edited texts and single translations are enumerated in sec- tions 4 to 10 inclusive. Certain students may shrink from an examination of untranslated sources ; and I think it in place to encourage them by the statement that the most ele- mentary knowledge of Latin can — because of the simplicity of style, the limitations of vocabulary, and the copious notes and special glossaries of the edited texts — easily master the materials which are not in English. XV ABBOTSFORD CLUB PUBLICATIONS. This club was instituted at Edinburgh, 1835. Its purpose is the publication of miscellaneous works, illustrative of history, literature and antiquities. Its field of work is Scot- land. For list of publications, see Nos. VIII and X and so- cieties' catalogues. These latter should be consulted in look- ing up every reference herein given to publications of learned societies; also No. XI (appendix) and the Official Year Book for work of existing societies. XVI ACTA SANCTORUM: quotquot toto orhc coluntnr, vel a catholids scriptoribus celehrantnr, ex Latinis et Grcrcis; aliarumqtie gentium antiquis monnmentis collecta, digesta, notisque illustrata ab J. Bollando et al. Antwerp, 1643- 1794. This gigantic work is a mine of information upon the lives of the saints, but it is chiefly valuable to the secular historian for the light thrown upon the times of the charac- ters described. For catalogue of British saints discussed in No. XVI, see No. VIII under title Acta Sanctorum. 10 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY XVII ^LFRIC SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was instituted in London, 1843, for the pur- pose of publishing Anglo-Saxon and other literary monu- ments, both civil and ecclesiastical, tending to illustrate the early state of England. See Nos. VIII and X. XVIII ANGLIA SACRA: sive collectio Historiarum, partim anti- quitus, partim recenter scriptarum, de Archiepiscopis et Episcopis AnglicB, a prima Fidei ChristiancB susceptione ad annum MDXL, ed. H. Wharton. London, 1691. For the contents of this set, whose scope is explained by its title, see No. VIII. XIX ARCH^OLOGIA. Published by the Society of Anti- quaries. The society probably developed from a society which was founded in 1572. Its publications are valuable and chiefly relate to the early and middle period of English history. The catalogue of this series will be found in No. VIIL This series must not be confounded with the publications of the scores of Archaeological Societies that exist in Great Britain. Many of these series are of great value. See No. X. XX BALUZE, S. : Miscellanea, novo ordine digesta et non pan- cis ineditis monnmentis opportunisque animadversionibus aucta, opera ac studio Joannis Dominici Mansi, Lucensis. Lucae, 1761. Contains various documents not elsewhere so readily ac- cessible. Has been superseded by later works for which see No. VIIL XXI BANNATYNE CLUB PUBLICATIONS.' This club was organized at Edinburgh, 1823, with the object of printing rare works illustrative of Scottish history, topography, etc. Club was dissolved, 1861. Its publications are of value. For catalogue, see Nos. VIII and X. XXII BOUQUET: Recueil des Historiens des Gaules et de la France, ed. M. Bouquet. Paris, 1738-1855. HISTORIANS, CATALOGUES, COLLECTIONS ii The recora of early Gaul and France and England as traced by contemporary and early historians. Valuable for texts of chronicles and histories by English and Norman authors. For contents relating to England, see No. VIII. This series is sometimes cited as Rerum Gallicarum et Fran- cicarum Scriptores. XXIII BRITISH RECORD SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was founded, in 1898, for the purpose of fur- nishing such information as well as rendering the records more accessible. Publications of value. See note to No. XV. XXIV CALENDARS OF STATE PAPERS. The State Papers spring from three great and original sources ; namely, the offices of the Secretaries of State for the Foreign, the Colonial, and the Home Departments. In the State Paper office they are classified under their several denominations, those emanating from the Home Depart- ment being technically called the Domestic Papers. The multitude of State Papers presents a vast field of valuable material. The student, to whom the papers were accessible, would without a guide be lost in their mazes. Such a guide is to be found in the valuable Calendars of State Pa- pers. These catalogue the documents and abstract their con- tents with a completeness that relieves the ordinary student from the task of examining the manuscripts themselves. The calendars commence with the reign of Henry VIII. They extend, though in broken sequence, to the close of the eighteenth century. XXV CAMDEN: Anglica, Hihernica, Normannica, Camhrica, a veterihus scripta, etc. etc., ed. W. Camden. 1602. This set, as also No. XVIII, has been in part superseded by No. XXXI ; but it is still of great value to those to whom No. XXXI is not accessible. For contents of No. XIX, see No. VIII. XXVI CAMDEN SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was Instituted in London, 1838, for the pur- pose of perpetuating and rendering accessible "whatever is valuable, but at present little known, amongst the materials for the civil, ecclesiastical or literary history of the United Kingdom." The work of this society is of great value. Its scope has, since the projection of the Rolls Series (No. 12 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY XXXI), been devoted to the materials of the i6th, 17th and i8th centuries. Its publications contain a mass of informa- tion not elsewhere accessible. See lists of the society's publi- cations and Descriptive Catalogue of the First series (1838 to 1870) ed. J. G. Nichols, Nos. VIII and X. Do not catalogue the series beyond 1862-64. See XIV, Supplement, and Official Year Book. Also No. XL XXVII CANISIUS: Thesaurus Monumentorum Ecclesiastic ovum et Historicorum, sive Henrici Canisii Lectiones Antiques, ad Sceculorum Ordinem digestce, variisque opusculis auctcu, quibus Prcefationes Historicas, Animadversiones criticas, et Notas in singulos auctores, adjecit Jacobus Basnage; cum Indicibus locupletissimis. Antuerpice, apud Rudol- phum et Gerhardum Wetstenios. 1725. This work in the above, or in the Ingoldstat edition of 1601-1604, is of value where more modern texts are inacces- sible; it has, however, been superseded by them. For con- tents, see No. VIII. XXVIII CAXTON SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was instituted in London, 1845, for the pur- pose of publishing the chronicles and literature of the Middle Ages. Its publications have not equaled those of No. XXIII in critical value, but they are useful and in the main accurate. For contents, see No. VIII and note to No. XV. XXIX CHETHAM SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS This society was instituted at Manchester, 1843, for the purpose of publishing the- historical and literary remains connected with the Palatine Counties of Lancaster and Chester. In its chosen field the publications of the society possess unique value. For contents, see No. VIII and note to No. XV. XXX COBBETT, WILLIAM: The Parliamentary History of England from the earliest period to the year 180^. This work supersedes (a) Parliamentary or Constitutional History . . .by several hands. London, 1751-61, as well as all previous collections dealing with proceedings on Parlia- ment. Yet where Cobbett's work is inaccessible the early collections are of great importance. Of these the student should in any case be familiar with {b) D'Ewes' Journals HISTORIANS, CATALOGUES, COLLECTIONS 13 of the Parliaments of Queen Eli:;abeth. (c) Chandler and Timberland's Debates, (d) Grey's Debates of the House of Commons from 1667 to 1694. (e) Almons' Debates, (f) Debrett's Debates, (f) Parry's The Parliaments and Coun- cils of England. See for other early debates No. X, The work of Cobbett is continued by No. XLII. XXXI CHRONICLES AND MEMORIALS: Chronicles and Memorials of Great Britain and Ireland during the Middle Ages. This collection is usually cited as the ROLLS SERIES. It is of the highest value. Its contents — see VIII and Lists of series — are of such scholarly rank as to possess the highest authority, and the texts therein contained supersede all previous editions. The scope of the series extends from the invasion of the Romans to the end of the reign of Henry VII. The texts have been edited after the following plan : Texts not to be mutilated or abridged, accepted text to be formed from collation of most authentic manuscripts. Accompanying the texts are valuable introductions, in which may be found an account of the manuscripts, their peculiari- ties, account of the life and times of the author, as well as remarks explaining the chronology. XXXII COLGANUS, ].: Acta Sanctorum Hihernice, per Joannem Colganum edit a. Lovanice, 1645-47. Of considerable interest in its field. For contents, see No. VIII. XXXIII COLLECTAN^ ADAMANT.^A This small series, begun by E. Goldsmith, Edinburgh, in 1884, reproduces a number of rare texts ; they are in most cases translated as well as edited. XXXIV COUNCILS AND ECCLESIASTICAL DOCUMENTS Under this head seven series are included because of their especial importance. (A) CARDWELL, E. : Documentary Annals of the Reformed Church of England, being a Collection of In- junctions, Declarations, Orders, Articles of Inquiry, etc. etc., from 1546 to 17 16. Oxford, 1839. See also Sparrow's Collection. London, 1661, and later editions. 14 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY (B) CARDWELL, E. : Synodalia, a Collection of Ar- ticles of Religion, Canons and Proceedings of Convoca- tions in the Province of Canterbury from 1547 to 1717, with notes historical and explanatory. Oxford, 1842. Invaluable for history of convocations. (BB) GIBSON'S CODEX: Codex Juris Ecclesiastici Anglicani, or the Statutes, Constitutions, Canons, Ru- hricks and Articles of the Church of England, etc., etc., etc. Ed. E. Gibson. London, 1703. A valuable work. (C) HADDAN, A. W., and STUBBS, W.: Councils and Ecclesiastical Documents relating to Great Britain and Ireland. Oxford, 1869 et seq. This series is most valuable within its scope, which ends 870, for the British Church. With 1295 for the Welsh and 1072 for the Cornish. (D) JOHNSON, J.: A Collection of the Laws and Canons of the Church of England from its first Foundation to 1519. Translated into English with explanatory notes. London, 1720. Oxford, 1850. Though not entirely satisfactory, this series bridges the gap between XXXIV (C) and XXXIV {A) and {B). Con- tains Lynwood's notes. {E) LYNWOOD, W. : Provinciale seu Constitutiones Anglice, continens Constitutiones Provinciales XIV archi- episcoporum Cantuariensium, vis. a Stephano Langtono ad Henricum Chichle'ium. Oxford, 1470-80. Best edition, cui adiicuntur constitutiones Legatince Dom. Othonis et Othotonis [John of Actona's Gloss]. Oxford, 1679. Only complete view of Ecclesiastical Jurisprudence before the Reformation in England. {F) SPELMAN, H. : Concilia, Decreta, Leges, Consti- tutiones, in re Ecclesiarum Orbis Britannici ab initio Christiance ibidem Religionis ad nostram usque cetatam. 1st vol. London, 1669. Ild vol. ed. C. Spelman, London, 1664. The scope of this work extends to 1530. — It is not only valuable in itself, but should be used in conjunction with the translated documents in XXXIV A, B, D. HISTORIANS, CATALOGUES, COLLECTIONS 15 (G) WILKINS, D. : Concilia magnce Britannico et Hi- bernicr. Accedunt constitutiones et alia. London, 1737- Still valuable. (H) JAFFE, P.: Rcgesta Potitificum Romanorum. Leipzig, 1885. Papal Letters from 64-1198. (/) POTTHAST, A.: Regesta Pontificum Romanorum. Berlin, 1873-75. Papal Letters from 1 198-1304. XXXV D'ARCHERY, D. L. : Spicilegium sive Collectio veterum aliquot Scriptorum qui in Gallia Bihliothecis delituerant, etc., etc. Paris, 1723. Of interest because of the rare letters it contains. For contents, see No. VIII. This manuscript is supplemented by Vetera Analecta; see No. VIII for title and contents. XXXVI DUGDALES MONASTICON: Monasticon Anglicanum, William Dugdale, ed. Caley, Bandinel and Ellis. London, 1817-1830. This work is indispensable to a study of the ecclesiastical history of England and Wales. It covers the period from the institution to the dissolution of the monasteries. See note to No. XV. XXXVII EARLY ENGLISH TEXT SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was founded, in 1864, for the purpose of edit- ing and reprinting the texts of early English writers. The publications of the society are useful. See note to No. XV. XXXVIII ENGLISH HISTORICAL SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was instituted in 1837 for the purpose of publishing the results of bibliographical and chronological investigations. — Before its dissolution the society issued several texts, which are valuable when other editions are un- procurable. For contents, see No. X and note to No. XV. i6 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY XXXIX EXCERPT A HISTORIC A; or Illustrations of English History, ed. S. Bentley. London, 1831. Contains a variety of interesting documents which, though of secondary importance, are of value as illustrating phases of history. For contents, see No. VIII. XL FASTI ECCLESLE ANGLICANS; or, a Calendar of the Principal Dignitaries in England and Wales, and of the chief Officers in the University of Oxford and Cam- bridge from the eariest times to the year 1715, ed. John Le Neve. Ed. and cent, by T. D. Hardy. Oxford, 1854. An indispensable work of reference in its field. See also Fasti Ecclesice Hibernice, ed. Cotton. London, 1858. XLI HAKLUYT SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was organized in London, 1846, for the pur- pose of publishing rare and valuable voyages, travels and geographical records. Its purpose has been well carried out. Its publications are of the highest value and should be known to every student. See Nos. VIII, X and note to No. XV. XLII HANZARD, T. C. : Parliamentary Debates, from the year 180^ to the present time: forming a continuation of the work entitled ''The Parliamentary history of England from the earliest period to the year 180 f [No. XXX]. London, 1812-20. Nev^ Series, London, 1820-30. Third Series, London, 1831-91. Fourth Series, London, 1892-96. Fifth Series, now in course of publication. This series, and that numbered XXX, are invaluable. Parliamentary history can best be followed in their volumes. See also No. XLVII. XLIII HARLEIAN MISCELLANY: a collection of scarce, en- rious and entertaining tracts, ed. Oldys and Park. London, 1808. These volumes contain a mass of material of varying value yet of uniform interest. The student will find much that will be helpful. These volumes should not be confounded with those issued by the Harleian Society, which was in- stituted for the publication of inedited manuscripts relating to genealogy, family history and heraldry. HISTORIANS, CATALOGUES, COLLECTIONS 17 XLIV HENRY BRADSHAW SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was founded, in 1890, for the purpose of printing and editing rare liturgical texts. Its work is im- portant. See note to No. XV. XLV IMPERIAL INSTITUTE OF THE UNITED KINGDOM, THE COLONIES AND INDIA PUBLICATIONS. This society was founded, in 1887, for the purpose of col- lecting and publishing, both by lectures and books, informa- tion regarding the Empire. The work of the society is valu- able • for contemporaneous record and future possibilities. See note to No. XV. XL VI IRISH HISTORICAL SOCIETIES. The work of the numerous societies is of value, and the student should consult No. X for the publications of the Iberno-Celtic Society (bibliographical), the Irish Archae- ological, and the Irish x\rchaeological and Celtic Societies, both devoted to the publication of materials for the study of Irish History, See also No. LVI and note to No. XV. XL VII JOURNALS: (a) House of Commons; (b) House of Lords. (a) Journals of the House of Commons. London. (b) Journals of the House of Lords. London. These extremely valuable series extend from 1547 to date. They are indexed and in some instances calendared ; for de- tails, see No. IX. They should be consulted in connection with Nos. XXX and XLII. XLVIII LAWS AND STATUTES. (A) Anglo-Saxon Period. See No. XCI. (B) Norman Period. In addition to volumes numbered CIV, CV, and CVI, see The Sources of the Law of Eiii^- land, by H. Brunner, trans. W. Hastie. Edinburgh, 1888. (C) From 1215. (a) Statutes of the Realm, ed. A. Luders, T. E. Tomlins and others. London, 1810-22. Statutes from 1215 to 1713. — Preceded by several earlier charters. Contains valuable introduction on le- gal bibliography. i8 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY ^ (b) Statutes at Large from Magna Charta, ed. O. Ruff head and others. London, 1 763-1800. From 1215 to 1800. (c) Statutes at Large of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland, ed. T. E. Tomlins and others. London, 1804-69. From 1801-1869. {d) Public General Statutes. From 1 830- 1 887. {e) Public General Acts. Published by Authority. 1888 and following. From these editions may be studied the sequence of legis- lation and the detail of acts from the earliest records to the present annual publications. In addition to the series men- tioned there are series of Revised Statutes published by- authority. These are not as valuable for historical research, as they do not contain obsolete statutes. Abridgments and other private editions of the laws are of even less value from the historical standpoint. — The series named are well in- dexed and see for this Gross, Bibliography of Municipal History, No. IX as well as works therein mentioned on page 13 et seq. The student should make himself familiar with the prin- cipal series of reports and also with accounts of trials in the various courts. XLIX LETTERS. Various important collections of letters have been made. See the titles in chapter II, also No. VIII. L MABILLON : Acta Sanctorum Ordinis Sancti Benedicti in ScBculorum Classes distributa .. . Paris, 1688-1701. Venice (reprint), 1733. This Avork is of value. VIII does not give full list of the lives of the British saints in L, but the exclusion is judicious, as all lives not based upon manuscript sources are excluded. LI MAITLAND CLUB PUBLICATIONS. This club was instituted at Glasgow in 1828 for the pur- pose of printing works illustrative of the antiquities, liter- ature and history of Scotland. See Nos. VIII, X and so- cieties catalogues. See also Wodrow Society Publications catalogue in No. X and No. VIII. 4 HIST0RIA.\'S, CATALOGUES, COLLECTIONS 19 LII MANX SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This societ}' was instituted at Douglas, Kle of Man, in 1858, for the purpose of pubHshing materials for the history of Soder and Man. The publications afford valuable light in an obscure field. LIII MESSINGHAM, THOMAS: Florilegiiim Lnsiilcr Sancto- rum sen Vitcc et Acta Sanctorum Hibernicc. For contents, see VIII. For additional lives of the saints — and from such writings much of the detail of early his- tory may be obtained — see Capgrave's Notq Lcgcnda Anglicc (see No. VIII, p. 736 and note). See Pinkerton's Vita: Antiqucu Sanctoniui Scotice (contents stated in No. VIII). LIV MIGNE, L'ABBE: Patriologice Cnrsiis Complctus. Paris, 1844-1855. Part of this set exists in a French translation. This monumental series contains well edited texts of the works of the early English writers, and also valuable cor- respondence. See No. VIII for contents. LV MONUMENTA HISTORICA BRITANNICA, or Materials for the History of Britain, ed. H. Petrie and J. Sharpe. London, 1848. A valuable work. Of particular interest because of the material bearing upon earliest British history. LVI OSSIANIC SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was instituted at Dublin, 1853, for the purpose of preserving and of publishing manuscripts in the Irish language illustrative of the Fenian period of Irish history . . . with literal translations and notes. The publications are of great interest. See No. X. See also No. XLVI and note to No. XV. LVII PARKER SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was instituted at Cambridge. 1840. for the purpose of reprinting without abridgment, alteration, and omission, of the best works of the Fathers and early writers of the Reformed English Church, published in the period between the accession of King Edward VI. and the death of Queen Elizabeth. See Nos. VIII, X, and note to No. XV. 20 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY LVIII PARLIAMENTARY WRITS and zvrits of military sum- mons . . . relating to the suit and service due and performed to the King's high court of Parliament and the councils of the realm, or affording evidence of attendence given at Parliaments and councils, ed. F. Palgrave. No. XXX London, 1827- 1834. It f Of this work Professor Gross well says : "The most elabo rate source for the study of parliamentary history in the reigns of Edward I. and Edward II." See also W. Prynne's A brief register, kalendcr, and survey of the several kinds [and] forms of all parliamentary zvrits. London, 1659-64. Examples extend to 1483. In connection with Parliamentary- Writs, see Parliamentary Papers. 1878, vol. Ixii, parts i-iii. London, 1878, for a Return of the name of every member of the lower house of the Parliaments of England, Scotland, and Ireland, with name of constituency represented, and date of return, from 1213 to 1874. Also Parliamentary Papers, 1890-91, vol. Ixii, London, 1891, which contains the foregoing to 1885. See also the critical examination of above compila- tions by W. W. Bean in the Parliamentary Returns . . . London, 1883. LIX PIPE ROLL SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was instituted in London, in 1883, for the purpose of publishing the Great Rolls of the Exchequer, commonly called the Pipe Rolls, and other documents prior to the year a.d. 1200. The rolls begin in 2 Hen. II., and ex- tend with but two breaks (i Hen. III. and 7 Hen. IV. — this break is filled by other records — ) to 1833. The Rolls are of great value. One not in sequence, that of 31 Hen. I., is the oldest national document, except Doomsday book, now in existence. The student should make himself familiar with the Charter, Close, Hundred, Patent, Plea, and other Rolls. See Nos. VIII and X (p. 22 et seq.), and note to No. XV. LX RECORD COMMISSION PUBLICATIONS. Under the term "Records" Messrs. Gardiner and Mul- linger, in their exceedingly valuable little text-book English History for Students, include "(i) Inrolments which are intended to be official and authentic records of lawful acts made by the proper officer of any court upon rolls, or, in some case, in official entry-books of the same court; (2) Memorandum of acts or instruments brought into the proper office of any court by parties interested therein (or by their agents) eitlier in the form of rolls or otherwise, and pre- HISTORIANS, CATALOGUES, COLLECTIONS 21 served in bundles or on files; (3) Books of entries, contain- ing memorandum of acts, etc., entered by officers of the court; (4) State papers, which form a distinct branch of the records." The publications of the Commission include The Corre- spondence of Henry VIII. (abstracted in No. XXII), The Statutes of the Realm (No. XLVIII, C, a), The Doomsday Book (No. XCI, D), Ancient Lazvs and Institutes (No. XCI, A), and various other important publications, notably indexes, catalogues, and transcripts. See Record Com- mission Catalogue (Macmillan & Co. will send on request). See Handbook to the Public Records, ed. F. S. Thomas, Lond. 1853, and Guide to Principal Classes of Documents preserved in Public Record office, ed. R. S. Bird. (ROLLS SERIES. See No. XXX.) LXI ROYAL HISTORICAL SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was founded in London, in 1868. Its publi- cations are varied in subject and of unequal value. They furnish, however, much information of importance that is not elsewhere obtainable. Consult the publications of the Royal Society (not to be confounded with No. LXI) for history of the progress of science. See note to No. XV, LXII SCOTTISH HISTORY SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was instituted, in 1886, at Edinburgh for the purpose of discovering and printing, under selected editor- ship, unpublished documents illustrative of the civil, religious, and social history of Scotland. Its publications are valuable. See note to No. XV. LXIII SCRIPTORES The items under this head are numerous. In the various series may be found, with scant exceptions, all the texts of the writers of the pre-printing epoch in English history. The student should be informed as to the contents of the various series and their critical value. See No. VIII. The names of the principal sets are here given. (a) Scriptores post Bedam, ed. Savile. London, 1596. Frankfort, 1601. (6) Scriptores Decern, Hist or ice Anglicancc, ed. Twys- den. London, 1652. 22 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 1 ■(c) Scriptorcs Reriim AngUcarum, ed. Fulman. Ox ford, 1684. {d) Scriptores XV, Historicc Britanmcce, Saxonicce, An- glo-Daniccr, ed. Gale. Oxford, 1691. (e) Scriptures Varii, Historic Anglicance, ed. Sparkes. London, 1723. (/) Scriptores Vetnstiores, Reriim Britannicarum, id est Anglice, Scoticu, vicinarumque insiilarum ac regionum, ed. Commelin. Heidelberg, 1587. (g) Scriptores N^ormannice, ed. Duchesne. Paris, 1619. (h) Scriptores Veteres reriim Hibernicarum, ed. O'Con- or. Buckingham, 1804- 1806. (i) Scriptores Rerum Danicarum Medii JSvi, ed. Langebek. Hafiniae, 1772. LXIV SELDEN SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was founded, in 1887, for the purpose of en- couraging the study and advancing the knowledge of the history of English Law. Its objects in detail are "the print- ing of manuscript and of new editions and translations of books having an important bearing on English legal history ; the collection of materials for dictionaries of Anglo-French and of law terms; the collection of materials for a history of English law," etc. etc. The works of the society are of the highest importance. See note to No. XV. LXV SPALDING CLUB PUBLICATIONS. This Club was instituted at Aberdeen, 1839, for the pur- pose of printing the historical, ecclesiastical, genealogical, topographical, and literary remains of the North-Eastern counties of Scotland. See Nos. VIII, X, and the society catalogues. In connection with Scottish history, see the Scottish Burgh Record Society (note to No. XV). LXVI SURTEES SOCIETY PUBLICATIONS. This society was instituted at Durham, 1834, for the pur- pose of publishing inedited manuscripts illustrative of the intellectual, the moral, the religious, and the social condition of those parts of England and Scotland included on the East . betw^een the Humber and the Firth of Forth, and on the West between the Mersey and the Clyde — the ancient kingdom of Northumbria. The publications of this society are interest- ing and of peculiar value within its chosen field. See Soc. Catgs., also Nos. VIII and X, and note to No. XV. HISTORIANS, CATALOGUES, COLLECTIONS 23 LXVII THESAURUS NOVUS ANECDOTORUM: Complectens Re gum ac Principum, aliorumque Virorum illustrium Epis- tolas et Diplomata bene multa. Prodiit nunc primimi studio et opera Domni Edmundi Martene et Domni Ursini Du- rand . . . 1717. Contains much interesting material. For catalogue, see No. VIII, also No. LXIX. LXVIII TREATIES AND CONVENTIONS (A) RYMER'S FCEDERA: Fecdera, Conventiones, literce, et cujiiscnmque generis Acta Pnhlica, inter Reges AngUcc et alios quosvis Imperatores, Reges, Pontifices, Principcs, vel coiiiniuuitates . . .. ed. T. Rymer (14 vol.s.), R. Sanderson (last 6 vols.). London, 1704-35. Several other editions. The best is that edited by A. Clarke and others for Record Commission. The Series is indexed and commented upon in Syllabus of Documents in Rymer's Fa^dera, ed. T. D. Hardy. No. XXXI. 1869-85. Rymer's Foedera commences with iioi and concludes with 1654. It is invaluable in its chosen field, which, as stated in the instructions to Thomas Rymer. the historiographer royal, was: the transcription and publication of all leagues, treaties, alliances, capitulations, and confederacies which had at any time been made between the crown of England and other kingdoms. The last volume of Foedera is not full, and the work must be supplemented by No. LXVIII. B. (B) DUMONT'S: Corps Universel Diplomatique du Droit des Gens: Contenant un Recueil des Trailer d' Al- liance, de Paix, de Treve, de Neutralite, de Commerce, d'Echange, etc., etc., depuis le Regne de VEmpereur Charle- magne jusqiies a present, par J. Dumont. Continued by Barbeyrac and Rousset. Amsterdam, 1739. This work continues the record of treaties from 315 to 1730. Then consult No. LXVIII, C. See also Histoire des Traites de Paix et autrcs negotiations du dix-septieme sieclc, depuis la paix de Veruins jusqu'a la paix de Nimigue, Am- sterdam, 1725. Also Negotiations Secretes, The Hague, 1725-1726. (C) WENCK'S: Corpus Juris Gentium Recentissimi e tabulariorum exemplorumque fide dignorum monumentis 24 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY compositus . . . Fred. Aug. Gid. Wenkii . . .Tomus Primus continens diplomata hide ah anno MDCCXXXV usque ad annum MDCCXLII. Lipsce, MDCCLXXXI. [II, 1743 to 1753. Ill, 1753 to 1772.] The student will next consult No. LXVIII, D. (D) MARTEN'S RECUEIL and continuations: Re- cueil de Traites d' Alliance, de Paix, de Trcve, de Neutra- lite, de Commerce, de Limites, d'Echange, etc., et plnsieurs autres actes servant a la connaissance des relations etran- geres des Puissances et cfats de I'Europe tant dans leiir rapport mutuel que dans celui envers les Puissances et etafs dans d'autres parties du Globe depuis I/61 jusqu'a present [770^]^ par Geo. Fred, de Martens. Second e edi- tion, revue et augmentce. Gottingen, 1817. {E) Nouveau Recueil . . . depuis 1808 jusqu'a present I18/4] .. .Martens [to 1817 continuations by Murhard, Samwer and Hopfe. (F) Nouveau Supplements an Recueil de Traites, by Murhard [covers 1761-1839]. (G) Nouveau Recueil General . . . Continuation du Grand Recueil [that of Martens et al.] . . . Deuxieme Serie [by Samwer, Hopfe and Stoerk]. Gottingen and Leipzig, 1876 et seq. Covers period from 1853 to date and still in progress. Full indexes and extensive supplements accompany these volumes (D) to (G) inclusive. (H) HERTSLET'S COMMERCIAL TREATIES: A Complete Collection of the Treaties and Conventions and Reciprocal Regulations at present subsisting between Great Britain and Foreign Pozuers and of the Lazvs, Decrees and Orders in Council concerning the same ; as far as they relate to Commerce and Navigation, to the Repression and Aboli- tion of the Slave Trade and to the Privileges and Interests of the subjects, of the high contracting parties. Compiled from authentic documents by Lezvis Hertslet, Librarian and Keeper of the Papers, foreign office. London, 1840- 1885. This important series has a full double index, arranged by subjects and by dates. Various other series of treaties have been published ; see note in Encyclopedia Britannica, 9th edition. — At present, all treaties, not secret, are pub- lished in the London Gazette and in Parliamentary reports. HISTORIANS. CATALOGUES, COLLECTIONS 25 LXIX VETERUM SCRIPTORUM et Monumentorum, Histori- corum, Dogmaticorum, Moralium, Amplissima Collect io. Complectcns Regiun et Principum alioriimque virormn illitstriiim Epistolas et Diplomata bene multa. Prodiit nunc primiiin stiidco et opera Domni Edmnndi Martcne, et Domni Ursini Durand, presbyterorum et monachonim Benedictinornm e Congrcgratione S. Mauri. Paris, 1724. Contains a mass of material. See No. LXVII. For con- tents, see No. VIII. LXX WELSH MANUSCRIPTS. The four principal societies for the publication of Welsh manuscripts are : (a) Cambrian Archaeological Association, inst. 1846. {b) Cambrian Institute, inst. 1853. (c) Cymmrodorion or Metropolitan Cambrian Institute, 1751, revived 1820. (rf) Welsh Manuscripts' Society, inst. 1837. During the activity of these societies they published many valuable works. See No. VIII and No. X. For publica- tions, see note to No. XV. LXXI Year Books : Les reports des cases argue et adjudge . . . London, 1678-80. The scope of this series extends from Edw. II. to Hen. VIII. For year books antedating Edw. II., see No. XXXI. In this series also appear various Year Books of Edw. III. In addition to the series and collections given, the stu- dent is referred to the additional series and to the publica- tions of private presses, catalogued in Lowndes' Bibliog- rapher's Manual (No. X), Hardy's Descriptive Catalogue (No. VIII), Watt's Bibliotheca Britannica (No. IX), The English Catalogue (No. XI), and the Official Year Book of the Scientific and Learned Societies of Great Britain and Ireland. London, ann. since 1884. CHAPTER II SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS In the sections which follow an attempt has been made to group the most important and most accessible sources by epochs. The great collections given in section 2 and 3 are, with few exceptions, to be found at the university centres of the United States. The sources under sections 4 to 9 inclusive are, in most cases, even more readily available. A¥hile no attempt has been, or could have been, made to render source material complete for any epoch, yet the student will find ample working bibliographies, and by consulting the volumes mentioned in sections i and 2, the lists given can be made exhaustive. SECTION 4. — THE PRE-NORMAN PERIOD LXXII MATERIALS FOR THE HISTORY OF BRITAIN: Monumenta Historica Britannica, ed. H. Petrie and J. Sharpe. London, 1848. Only one volume published. Indispensable for reprints of references to Britain in early Greek and Latin writers. Greek excerpts are translated. Contains copies of ancient inscriptions referring to Britain. Also ancient British and Roman coins, facsimiles of MSS, maps. Also texts of Gildas, Nennius, Bede, Short Chronicle of Northumberland, Anglo-Saxon Chronicle, Asser, Chron- icle of Eathelward, Florence of Worcester, Simeon of Dur- ham, Ecclesiastical Register, Henry of Huntingdon, Cam- brian Annals, Geoffrey Gaimer, Chronicle of the Prince of Wales, Song of the Battle of Hastings. Full indices. LXXIII C^SAR, Commentaries on the Gallic War : Commentarii de hello Gallico. Many editions of both original text and its translation. 26 SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 27 Caesar's invasions of Britain, description of island and its inhabitants, accounts of the early Germans. For the latter subject, see also Tacitus, Germania. LXXIV TACITUS, Life of Agricola : Agricolcc vita. As of Csesar, many editions of this work and its translation are acces- sible. Activities of Agricola, Roman occupation of Britain, de- scriptions of island and its inhabitants, supplements Caesar. LXXV GILDAS : De Excidio Britannice. Text in Nos. LXXII, LIV, LXIX, XXXVIII, 1838, etc. Translations. Most accessible in Six Old English Chronicles. Bohn Library. Two parts: ist 55 B.C. to circa 383; 2nd to middle of sixth century. The work of Gildas forms ''the basis of early Eng- lish History." LXXVI BEDE, Ecclesiastical History of the English People : His- t erica Ecclesiastica Gent is Anglorum. Of the texts, a number of editions are accessible; I prefer edition in No. LXXII and in No. XXXVII. Of the several translations that by T. Miller in No. XXXVII is useful. Covers period from 55 B.C. to middle of eighth century. For this period the book is indispensable. LXXVII THE ITINERARY OF ANTONIUS: Itinerarium Anto- nini August i et Hieroslymitanum, ed. G. Parthey and M. Pinder. Berlin, 1848. Enumerates the towns and stations of Roman Britain with intervening distances. LXXVIII THE OFFICIAL LIST OF THE EMPIRE: Notitia Digni- tatuni et Administrationum omniiun taut Civilium quam Militarium in Partibus Orientis et Occidentis. Several edit, of texts; see that of O. Seeck. Berlin, 1876. Organization of Britain under Roman government. 28 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY LXXIX NENNIUS' HISTORY OF BRITAIN: Eulogium BrittanicB sive Historia Britonum, auctore Nennio. Texts in Nos. LXIII; LXXII; XXXVIII. Also in several other edits. Trans. J. A. Giles. Six Old English Chronicles. London, 1848. Valuable for Welsh history. Ends 688. For a discussion as to value of this work, see Nennius Vindicatus, H. Zim- mer, Berlin, 1893. LXXX ICELANDIC SAGAS, and other Historical Documents re- lating to the Settlements and Descents of the Northmen in the British Isles. Vols, iii-iv, G. W. Dasent, in No. XXXI. A collection of historical documents referring to descents and settlements of Northmen in Britain. See XIV First Supplement. LXXXI ANGLO-SAXON CHRONICLE: Various valuable editions of text, notably those of Tr. Gurney, Norwich, 1819; In- gram, London, 1823 ; Fetrie in No. LXXII ; Thorpe in No. XXXI; J. Earle, Oxford, 1865. This most valuable of national records extents from i a.d. to 1 1 54. Especially valuable from sixth century to close of Norman Conquest. LXXXII ASSER'S LIFE OF ALFRED : Annales Rerum Gestarum Alfredi Magni, Auctore Asserio Menevensi. Text, ed. Wise. Oxford, 1722. Also in Nos. LXXXII ; LXII D, etc. Tr. Six Old English Chronicles. London, 1848. Chronicle from 851-887. Events of Alfred's life. LXXXIII ETHELWERD'S CHRONICLE: Chronicon ^thehveardi ah Incarnatione Domini ad annum gy^. Text, Nos. LXIII a; LXXII B. Tr. in Six Old English Chronicles. Lon- don, 1848. Of some value for tenth century. SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 29 LXXXIV EMMA, QUEEN OF THE ENGLISH: Emmce Anglorum Regincc, Ricardi I. Ducis N ormannonim Filice, Enconium. Author unknown. Text, No. LIV and elsewhere. See No. vni. Vakiable for period from 1012 to 1040. LXXXV EDWARD THE CONFESSOR: Vita ^dnuardi Regis qui apud W cstnionastcriuui requiescit, cd. H. R. Luard in XXXL For other lives see same series, Lives of Edward The Confessor, and No. VHI. Lives of the Confessor; valuable for his period. LXXXVI ALCUIN'S LETTERS : Beafi Flacci Albini sen Alcuini Epistolcc. These are printed in many collections as well as by themselves. See No. VHL Relations between England and the Continent in eighth and ninth centuries. LXXXVII SIMEON OF DURHAM'S HISTORY OF THE KINGS OF ENGLAND : Sinieonis Diinelmensis Opera ct Collec- tanea, ed. T. Arnold, in No. XXXL Texts also in No. LXXII. Valuable for tenth century, particularly for events in Northumbria. Stops at 1130, LXXXVIII HENRY OF HUNTINGDON: Hcnrici Archidiaconi Hun- tindoniensis Historicu Angloruni, ed. T. Arnold. No. XXXL • Text also in Nos. LXlfla: LIV: XXXV, iii. 503; also LXXII. Trans., T. Forester. London (Bohn). Ballads and traditions not otherwise preserved. Details of history not elsewhere found. Ends with middle of twelfth century. LXXXIX WILLIAM OF MALMESBURY: Willielmi Monachi Mat- mesbnriensis de Gestis Re gum Anglorum, libri V et His- toricu Novellcc. Texts also in Nos. XXXVIII ; LIV, 179, 30 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 959; XVIII, ii., pp. 1-49, vi. 77; LXIII a; XV, pp. 337-81 ; XXXI, and elsewhere. See No. VIII. Trans., J. Sharpe London (Bohn). High authority for Anglo-Norman period. Gives history of English bishops and monasteries from 597 to 1123 a.d. XC FLORENCE OF WORCESTER: Florentii Wigornensis Monachi Chronic on ex Chronicis ah Adventu Hengesti et Horsi in Britanniam usque ad Annum iii/, ed. B. Thorpe. No. XXXVIII, 1848. Text also in several editions. Por- tion from 450 to 1066 in No. LXXII. Trans., T. Forester. London. Of considerable value. Ends 11 16. XCI LAWS AND LEGAL DOCUMENTS. (A) Ancient Laws and Institutes of England, ed. B. Thorpe, for Record Commission. No. LX. Complete collection of laws and legal documents of Anglo- Saxon Period. Invaluable. Ancient Charters, royal and private, prior to A.D. 1066. See Rec. Comm. No. LX and Pipe Roll Soc. Publications No. LIX. (B) Codex Diplomaticus ^vi Saxonici, ed. J. M. Kemble. For No. XXXVII. A valuable collection of charters of Anglo-Saxon Period. (C) Cartularium Saxonicum, ed. W. de G. Gray. Lon- don, 1883. A collection of charters. The critical estimate of authen- ticity of documents is to be found in last volume. It is valuable. {D) Doomsday Book. Sen Liber Ccnsualis Willielmi Primi, ed. A. Farley and others. London, 1783-1816. This work is valuable. It should be consulted in connec- tion with Prof. Maitland's erudite work, Doomsday Book and Beyond. (E) Die Gesetse der Angelsachsen. R. Schmid. Leip- zig, 1858. Supplemented by Liebermann, Zu den Gesetsen der Angelsachsen in Zeitschrift der Savigny-Stiftung, vol. V. Weimar, 1885. Germ. Abtheilung, pp. 198 ff. SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 31 The documents are given in their original language. Ger- man translation, critical explanations of value, and copious glossary is given. (F) Handbook to the Land-Charters and other Saxonic Documents, ed. J. Earle. Oxford, 1888. Useful book by a careful scholar. {G) Select Charters and other Illustrations of English Constitutional History, from the Earliest Period to the Reign of Edw. I., ed. W. Stubbs. Oxford, 1870, etc. The most valuable of the small collections. {H) Autotype Facsimiles of the Ancient Charters in British Museum, ed. E. A. Bond. London, 1873-78. These are interesting and suggestive volumes, and the most important of a class of works with which the student should become familiar. Ecclesiastical Documents, Laws, Councils, etc. See No. XXXIV. The student should consult Nos. XI, XIV, for late publi- cations in this and succeeding periods. Much valuable biblio- graphical material is to be found in periodicals, particularly of the class of v^hich the American Historical Magazine and English Historical Magazine are types. SECTION 5. — FROM THE CONQUEST TO THE CHARTER XCII BAYEUX TAPESTRY. Engraved facsimile, with notes by G. C. Bruce. The Society of Antiquaries. A valuable record of episodes in the life and times of William the Conqueror. See also Carmen de Bella Hastin- gensi, Guy of Amiens ; text in No. XXXII. XCIII EADMER'S HISTORY: Eadmeri Monachi Cantuariensis Historice Novorum sive sui scccidi Lihri VL London, 1623. Authority for career of Lanfranc and Anselm. Important for reigns of first two Norman kings. XCIV ORDERICUS VITALIS' ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY: Order ici Vitalis Angligence, cccnobii Uticensis monachi, 32 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY Historic^ EcclesiasticcE, libri XIII. Ed. Prevost. Paris, 1838. Also in Nos. LIV and LXIII g. Also Vitalis' His- toire de Normandie. Text, ed. Guizot. Paris, 1825-27. Eng. Trans, of both works, T. Forester. London (Bohn). Period of the Conquest and the early Norman Kings. Ex- tremely valuable for relations of Normandy and England, Norman history. xcv WILLIAM OF POITIERS' LIFE OF WILLIAM THE CONQUEROR: Gesta Guillelmi Diicis N ormannorum et Regis Anglorwu, a Guileliiio Pictavensi Lexoviorum, Archidiacono contemporanco scripta. Text in No. LXIII b, and No. LIV, vol. 149, p. 1216. For life of William I., 1036- 1067. There are several other accounts of the life of the Conqueror. See Scriptorcs Rerum gestarum Wilhclmi Conquestoris, etc., ed. J. A. Giles, London, 1845. (WILLIAM OF MALMESBURY'S NEW HISTORY. Cf. preceding section; deals with period 1126-42. It favours the cause of Matilda. Translation.) XCVI LIFE OF KING STEPHEN : Gesta Stephani Regis Anglo- rum et Ducis Normannoniin. Author unknown, ed. R. Hewlett. Text in No. XXXI, also in No. XXXVIII, 1846. Trans., T. Forester. London, 1853 (Bohn). Bound with Chronicle of Henry of Huntingdon. Of limited value. XCVII THE HEXHAM CHRONICLES : Historia Johannis Prio- ns Hagiistaldensis Ecclesicc XXV. anno rum. Text ed. R. Howlett. No. XXXI, vol. iii. Historia pice meniorice Ricardi Prioris Plagiistaldensis, de Gestis Regis Stephani et de Bello Standardii. Text ed. R. Howlett. No. XXXI, vol. iii. Translation of both Chronicles in The Church Historians of England, vol. iv, pt. i. The Chronicle of Melrose will be found in same collection of translations. Reign of Stephen. SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS ZZ XCVII WILLIAM OF NEWBURY: Historia a Nonnannorum in Angliam ingrcssu usque ad aniiuin up/. Several editions of text, among them that of Hearne, Oxford, 1719. Trans. in Church Historians of England, vol. iv, pt. 2. Covers 1066-1198. Especially valuable for Reign of*Henry XCIX BENEDICT OF PETERBOROUGH: Bencdictus Abbas Pctroburgcnsis de vita et gcstis Hcnrici H ct Ricardi L, ed. Hearne. Oxford, 1735. Trans, and ed., W. Stubbs. No. XXXI. 1867. This work was probably written by Richard Fitz-Neal. "Indisputably the most important chronicle of the time." The preface to the edition by Bishop Stubbs is valuable. C ROGER OF HOVEDEN: Rogeri de Hoveden Annalimn, pars prior et posteriori. Text in Nos. LXIII a; XXIII; XXXI. 1868-71, etc. Trans. H. T. Riley. London, 1853 (Bohn). Covers period from 732-1201. From 1170-1201 it is of the greatest importance. CI RALPH OF DICETO: Radulfi de Diceto Decani Londe- niensis Opera Historica, ed. W. Stubbs for No. XXXI, 1876. Text also in No. LXIII, a, b; also No. XVIII. Reigns of Hen. II and Ric. I. Valuable. CII RICHARD OF DEVIZES: Chronicon Ricardi Divisiensis de Rebus gestis Ricardi Prinii, Regis Anglicc, ed. J. A. Giles. No. XXXVIII. 1841. Covers period 1 189- 1 192. Supplements preceding works. cm GIRALDUS CAMBRENSIS: Topographia Hibernia^; sive de Mirabilibus Hibcrnicr auctore Silvestro Gcraldo Cani- brense.. .Expugnatio PHbernicc, sive Historia vaticinalis 34 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY Silvestris Giraldi Cambrensis. Iteriarium CambricB; Cam- bria Descriptio. Texts in Nos. XVJII, XXXI, etc. Trans. T. Forester, R. C. Hoare. T. Wright. London (Bohn). Valuable authority in fields covered. CIV GLANVILL: Tractatus de Legibus ct Consuetudinibus regni Anglicp, tempore Regis Henrici Secundi compositus. Text in various editions, e.g., ed. J. Rayner, London, 1780, and in No. LXIV. Trans. J. Beames. London, 1812, The first book on English Law. CV DIALOGUES ON THE EXCHEQUER : Dialogiis de Scac- cario, by Richard, Bishop of London. Text in Madox's History of the Exchequer; Stubbs' Constitutional Docu- ments. "An extraordinary mass of information on every important point in the development of constitutional principles before the great Charter." CVI STATUTES OF THE REALM from Original Records and Authentic Manuscripts Printed by Command of His Ma- jesty King George the Third. London, 1810. See XLVIII C a. Begin to be of value in this period. (THE FGEDERA: See Treaties No. LXVIII^.) SECTION 6. — FROM THE CHARTER TO THE REFORMATION CVII ROGER OF WENDOVER'S FLOWERS OF HISTORY: Rogeri de Wendover Chronica, sive Flores Historiarum, ed. H. R. Luard in No. XXXI, also in No. LXIII A. Trans. J. A. Giles. London, 1849 (Bohn). Source for period of Magna Charta, 1214-1235. CVIII MATTHEW PARIS: Matthcoi Parisiensis Monachi Sancti Albani, Chronica Majora, ed. H. R, Luard. No. XXXI. SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 35 1872-80. Matthcci Parisicnsis Historia Anglorum, sive, nt z'ltlgo dicitur, Historia Minor, ed. F. Madden. No. XXXI. 1866-69. Trans, of period from 1235-73. J. A. Giles. London, 1852. From 1259 the work is by an author as to whose name authorities disagree. Continues Roger of Wendover. Source for 1235- 1273. ax WILLIAM RISHANGER'S CHRONICLE: Wilhelmi Rishanger Chronica et Annates, ed. H. T. Riley. No. XXXI. Also under title Contimiatio Matthcci ah anno J2^p ad usque annum 12/2 in Watt's adition of M. Paris. See also De Bellis Lezves et Eversham, or the Chronicle of William de Rishanger of the Baron's Wars. J. O. Halli- well for No. XXVI. 1840. Translation. Continuation in Matthew of Paris. Source for period 1259-1306. CX NICHOLAS TRIVET'S ANNALS: Annates sex Regum Anglicc qui a comitibus Andegavensihiis originem traxe- runt, ed. T. Hog. No. XXXVIII. 1845. Contemporary source for reign of Edward I. CXI CHRONICA MONASTERII, .S. Atbani, ed. H. T. Riley. No. XXXI. London, 1863-76. These chronicles contain valuable historical material of which the most important is contained in Vol. I, Walsing- ham's Historia Anglicana, 1272-1422 (valuable from 1377 to 1395); II, Rishanger's Chronica et Annates, 1259-1307; III, Trokelowe and Blaneforde, Chr. et Ann., 1259-1296,1307-1324, 1392-1406; IV, Gesta Abbatum, 793-1411, CXII MONASTIC ANNALS: Annates Monastici, ed. H. R. Luard. No. XXXI. 1864-69. Valuable sources. Covers period 1004-1432. Particularly refer to the reigns of John, Henry III., and Edward I. CXIII WALTER HEMINGFORD: Ctironica Walteri de Heming- burg, ed. H. C. Hamilton. No. XXXVIII. Text also in No. LXIII A ; also edition by Hearne, Oxon. 1731. 26 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY Extends from 1066 to 1346. Extremely valuable for last hundred years, covered partly by Walter, partly by other hands. CXIV CHRONICLES OF LONDON. Various chronicles; con- sult No. XXVI for 1844, 1846, 1858; also No. XXXI for Munimenfa GildhaUce Londoniensis, ed. H. T. Riley. This contains laws, regulations, etc., as well as city trans- actions. Valuable from a political, economical, and social, as well as legal standpoint. cxv BRACTON: De Legihns et Consnetndinihus Anglicr, ed. T. Twiss. No. XXXI. 1878-83. Also several other texts. Translation. Indispensable for law of the thirteenth century. CXVI BRACTON'S NOTE BOOK. Ed. by T. W. Maitland. London, 1887. This work is of great importance, not only because of its being the first book on "case-law," but for the light it throws on the life of the thirteenth century. CXVII CORRESPONDENCE : Royal and other Historical Letters illustrative of the reign of Henry IIL, ed. W. W. Sherley. No. XXXI. 1862-66. Of the reign of Henry IV., ed. F. C. Hingeston: No. XXXI. i860. Edward IV., Richard III., and Henry VII., ed. J. Gairdner: No. XXXI. Letters of Bishop Grosseteste, illustrative of the Social Condition of his Time, ed. H. R. Luard : No. XXXI. Papal Letters are in several editions. See No. XXIV, H, I. CXVIII MO.NUMENTA BRITANNICA ex Antographis Romano- nun Pontificitm. Covers period 1216-1759; ed. by Marini. These letters are extremely valuable. They present infor- mation not elsewhere obtainable. CXIX ROBERT OF AVESBURY: Roherti de Aveshiiry, Historia de mirabilis gestis Edzvard Tertii, ed. Hearne, Oxen. 1720. Especially good for relations of England with France prior to the battle of Crecy. SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 37 cxx HIGDEN'S POLYCHRONICON: Polychronicon Ranulphi Higdcni, ed. C. C. Babington. No. XXXI. Translation by Trevisa, ed. by Babington, Churchill, and Liimby, ac- companies text. Text also in No. LXIII d. Contemporary source for first half of the fourteenth cen- tury. CXXI CAPGRAVE'S CHRONICLE: The Chronicle of England from the Creation to 141/, by John Cap grave, ed. F. C. Hingeston. No. XXXI. 1858. Very valuable for period 1328- 1388. CXXII THE BOOK OF THE NOBLE HENRYS: Johannis Cap- grave Liber de Illnstribus Henricis, ed. F. C. Hingeston. No. XXXI. 1858. Translation by same ed. The work is valuable for its later portion only. CXXIII ADAM OF USK'S CHRONICLE: Chronicon Adcc de Usk ed. with Translation by E. M. Thompson. London, 1876. Serviceable for 1377- 1404. CXXIV THOMAS ELMHAM'S LIFE OF HENRY V.: Thomce de Elmham Vita et Gesta Henrici Quinti, Anglorum Regis, ed. T. Hearne. 1732. Also in No. XXXI. For other lives consult No. XXXVITI, 1846, also Titi Livii Foro-Juliensis. l^ita Henrici Quinti, Regis Anglicr, ed. by Hearne. 1716. Of some value for period. cxxv THE CONCORDANCE OF HISTORIES: The New Chronicle of England and France, in tzvo parts, by Robert Fabyan, ed. H. Ellis. 181 1. Valuable for history of London during War of the Roses. CXXVI JOHN AMUNDESHAM'S ANNALS: Johannis Amundes- ham, Monachi Monasterii S. Albani, tit videtur, Annates, ed. Riley in No. XXXI. For period 1421-1440. 38 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY CXXVII JOHN WHETHAMSTEDE'S REGISTER: Registrum Ahhatice Johannis Whethamstede, Ahbatis Monasterii Sancti Albani, iterum susceptcs, ed. Riley in No. XXXI. 1452- 1461. The time of the War of the Roses. CXXVIII Letters and Papers illustrative of the Wars of the English in France during the Reign of Henry VI, ed. J. Stevenson. No. XXXI. 1861, 1864. This collection includes the An- nals and Collections of William of Worcester, the Chron- icle of Jean le Bel; the collection is continued by the same editor in Narratives of the Expulsion of the English from Normandy. 1449-50. No. XXXI. 1863. Valuable source. — The French text is translated. CXXIX FROISSART'S CHRONICLES: Chroniques, qui traitent des merveilleuses emprises . . en France, Angleterre, Bre- taigne, Burgogne, Escosse, Espagne, Portingal et cs Autres Parties, ed. J. A. C. Buchon. Paris, 1835. Many translations and editions. Most interesting. Covers period 1326-1400. cxxx MONSTRELET'S NARRATIVES : Chroniques d'Enguer- rand de Monstrelet, ed. J. A. Buchon. Paris, 1826, Sev- eral translations, one by T. Johnes. London, 1849 (Bohn). Begins where Froissart ends. Terminates 1467. See also Robert Blondel in No. XXXI, 1863. CXXXI HISTORIE OF THE ARRIVAL OF EDWARD IV. in England and the Finall Reconcrye of his Kingdomes from . Henry VI., ed. J. Bruce. No. XXVI. 1838. Valuable contemporary account. CXXXII PASTON LETTERS. Ed. by J. Gairdner. 1872-75. Other editions. 1422-1509. Light on social life of period. Overrated source. The prefaces of the editor are more valuable than the sources. SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 39 CXXXIII CONTINUATION OF THE CROYLAND CHRONICLE: Petri Blesensis continuatio ad Historiam Ingulphi. Gale, Fell and Fulman's Scriptures; also elsewhere. Transla- tions. H. T. Riley. London, 1854 (Bohn). Important for reign of Edward IV. Not to be confounded with the Ingufian forgery. CXXXIV PECOCKS REPRESSOR: The Repressor of over much Blaming of the Clergy, ed. C. Babington. No. XXXI. i860. This work indicates the theological movement of the fif- teenth century. cxxxv LITTLE BUNDLE OF TARES: Fasciculi Zizaniorum Magistri Johannis Wyclif cum Tutico, ascribed to T. Netter; ed. W. W. Shirley. No. XXXI. 1858. The contemporary account of the rise of Lollardy. Strongly anti-Lollard. / CXXXVI WYCLIF' S WORKS. These have appeared in many edi- tions and by various editors. Among them. Select English Works, ed. T. Arnold. 1871. The English Works of Wyclif hitherto unprinted, ed. F. D. Matthew. No. XXXVII. 1880. CXXXVII MORE'S EDWARD V AND RICHARD III: Historic of the pitifull life and unfortunate death of Edzvard the Fifth. Also, The History of Richard the Third. In various edi- tions ; also in Kennett's Complete History of England. London, 171 9. Considered by S, R. Gardiner as a contemporaneous ac- coimt. CXXXVIII Grants, etc. From the Crown during the Reign of Edzvard The Fifth from the Original Docket-Book and Two Speeches for Opening Parliament, ed. J. G. Nichols. 1854. Of some value for a period not well illustrated. 40 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY SECTION 7. — THE TUDOR PERIOD CXXXIX MATERIALS FOR A HISTORY OF THE REIGN OF HENRY VIL, ed. W. Campbell. No. XXXI. 1873, 1877. From original documents. Furnishes valuable material for the study of the reign. CXL POLYDORE VIRGIL: Polydori Vergilii Urhinatis Angli- cce Histori Lihri Vigintiseptem. Basel, 1534. Also in No. XXVI. Translation, first VIII books, in No. XXVI. Very high authority from the time of Henry VI., where contemporay record becomes scanty. Somewhat biassed, violently opposed to Wolsey, but otherwise accurate. Should be read in connection with No. CXLVIII. CXLI BERNARD ANDRE: Historia Regis Henrici Septimi a Bernardo Andrea Tholosate conscript a, necnon alia quce- dam ad eundem re gem spectantia, ed. J. Gairdner. No. XXXI. 1858. Best contemporary record of reign of Henry VII. It is to be found in Memorials of Henry VII, ed. J. Gairdner. No. XXXI, 1847. This work contains other valuable material. CXLII VENETIAN RELATION: A Relation, or rather a true account, of the Isle of England; with sundry particulars of the customs of these People and of the Royal Revenues under Kng Henry the Seventh about the year 1500. Trans- lation. No. XXVI. 1847. Political, commercial, financial data of reign of Hen. VII. CXLIII STATE PAPERS OF THE TUDOR PERIOD. The col- lection of manuscripts is extremely large. It has been in- dexed and epitomized in the various Calendars which have been issued by the Record Commission under the following title: Calendar of Letters and Papers, Foreign and Do- mestic, of the Reign of Henry VIII. ; Calendar of State Papers, Domestic Series, of the Reigns of Edzvard VI., Mary, Elisabeth, and James /.; Calendar of State Papers, SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 4t Foreign Series, of the Reign of Edzvard VI.; Calendar of State Papers, Foreign Series, of the ReigJi of Mary; Calen- dar of State Papers, Foreign Series, of the Reign of Eliza- beth; Calendar of State Papers and Manuscripts relating to English Affairs preserved in the Archives of Venice and other Libraries of Northern Italy, 1202-i^Qi; Calendar of Letters, Despatches and State Papers dealing zvith the Negotiations between England and Spain, preserved in the Archives of Simancas and elsezvhere, 148^154^. Selec- tions from the State Papers of Henry VIII. have been issued by the Record Commission under the following titles : Domestic Correspondence; Correspondence Relating to Ireland; Correspondence Relating to Scotland; Cor- respondence between England and other Courts. See No. XXV. CXLIV HARPSFIELD'S TREATISE: The Pretended Divorce be- tween Henry VIII. and Catharine of Aragon, by Nicholas Harpsfield. No. XXVI, 1878, ed. N. Pococke. Written from the Catholic point of view. Consult also Reginald Pole's treatise de Unitate Ecclesice. CXLV RECORD OF THE REFORMATION. Oxford, 1870, ed. by N. Pococke. Valuable material for period 1527- 1533. CXLVI MORE'S UTOPIA: A truteful and pleasannt worke of the beste State of a publyque weale, and of the nezve yle called Utopia: Written in Latine by Syr Thomas More Knyght, and translated into Englyshe by Ralphe Robynson Citizein and Goldsmythc of London, at the procurement and earnest request of George Tadlozve Citizein and Haberdassher of the same city. London, 1551. Arbers' English Reprints 1869, also other editions. Social and political evils and abuses of first half of the sixteenth century. CXLVII STARKEY'S ENGLAND in the reign of King Henry the Eighth, ed. S. J. Herrtage. No. XXXVII. 1878. Social and political evils and abuses of the sixteenth cen- tury. 42 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY CXLVIII HALL'S CHRONICLE: Containing the History of England during the Reigti of Henry the Fourth and the succeeding Monarchs to the End of the Reign of Henry the Eighth, in which are particularly described the Manners and Customs of these Periods. Various editions. 1548, 1550, 1809. Should be considered with the work of Polydore Virgil, upon which it is very largely based. Virgil is bitterly op- posed to Woolsey and his partisans ; Hall flatters them. These books well illustrate the opposing parties of the reign of Henry VHL for which period they are contemporary sources. CXLIX HOLINSHED'S CHRONICLES of England, Scotland and Ireland. Various edits. First in 1557, 1586. Various Chronicles. Valuable sources. Last edition brings record to 1586. First edition contains passages sup- pressed in succeeding editions but printed separately in 1723. STOW, JOHN (a) A Summarie of the Chronicles of England dili- gently collected, abridged, and continued unto this present year of Christ 1604. London, 1604. (h) Annales or a Generall Chronicle of England. Be- gun by John Stow: Continued and augmented zvith mat- ters Foreign and Domestique, Ancient and Moderne, unto the end of this present yeere, 16^1. By Edmund Howes, Gent. London, 1631. (c) A Survey of the Cities of London and Westminister and the Burough of Southwark. Containing the Original, Antiquity, Increase, present State and Government of those Cities. Written at first in the Year i6p8 by John Stow, Citizen and Native of London. Corrected, improved, and very much enlarged in the Year 1/20 by John Strype, M. O. A native also of the said City. The Survey and History brought down to the present time by careful hands. With an appendix. London, 1754. Several other edits. These works of Stow are extremely valuable. Stow was unbiassed, well informed, and accurate in description. SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 43 CLI FOXE'S BOOK OF MARTYRS: History of the Acts and Monuments of the Church, by John Foxe. Many editions. among them that edited by J. Cummings. London, 1861. Covers Reformation period to 1559. Although strongly anti-Catholic, the history is valuable as a source. CLII ZURICH LETTERS. Ed. by H. Robinson. No. LVIL Vol. I contains from the Reformation to 1557; II, 1558- 1579; III, 1558-1602. These letters have as their originals the Epistolcc Tigurina, so often cited by Froude. CLIII CHRONICLES OF THE GREY FRIARS OF LONDON. Ed. J. G. Nichols. No. XXVI. 1852. Valuable as source for religious tendencies of time. CLIV THREE CHAPTERS OF LETTERS relating to the Sup- pression of the Monasteries. Edited from the Originals in the British Museum. Ed. T. Wright. No. XXVT. 1843- These letters possess interest as a contemporary private description of the suppression of the monasteries. CLV NARRATIVES OF THE DAYS OF THE REFORMA- TION, chiefly from the manuscripts of John Foxe the Martyrologist, zvith tzvo contemporary biographies of Archbishop Cranmer, ed. J. G. Nichols. No. XXVI. 1859. Interesting and occasionally valuable. CLVI LITERARY REMAINS OF KING EDWARD THE SIXTH, edited from his Autograph Manuscripts, zvith historical notes and a biographical memoir, by J. G. Nichols. Roxburghe Club. 1857. Especially interesting as containing the private journal of the young king. BIOGRAPHIES. For this period there are a number of valuable contemporary biographies of the principal per- sons of the day, notably of More, W^olsey, Carew, Eliza- beth. Consult catalogues under surname of person whose biography is desired. 44 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY CLVII THE CHRONICLE OF QUEEN JANE and of Two Years of Queen Mary, and especially of the Rebellion of Sir Thomas Wyat, written by a resident in the Tower of London, edited with illustrative documents and notes by J. G. Nichols. No. XXVL 1850. The Authority for the days of "Jane the Queen." CLVIII THE HISTORY OF THE KIRK OF SCOTLAND by Mr. David Calderwood some time minister of Crailing, edited from the original manuscript preserved in the British Museum by T. Thomson. The Wodrow Society. Edin- burgh, 1 842- 1 849. Various editions. Covers period 15 14-1625. Strongly anti-episcopal. Whole work tinged with prejudice. CLIX HISTORY OF THE CHURCH OF SCOTLAND, begin- ning the Year of Our Lord 20^ and continued to the end of the reign of King James VI. By the Right Rev. John Spottiswoode, Archbishop of St. Andrew, and Lord Chan- cellor of Scotland, ed. M. Russell. Spottiswoode Society. Edinburgh, 1847. From beginning of 14th century it is most valuable as a source. It is moderate and fair in tone. CLX HARDWICKE PAPERS: Miscellaneous State Papers, ed. by Earl of Hardwicke. Front i^oi to 1/26. London, 1778. These papers are of great interest and value. In matters political they give a side light of great service to the student. CLXI THE COMPLEAT AMBASSADOR, or tzvo Treaties of the intended marriage of Queen Elisabeth of Glorious Memory; comprised in Letters of Negotiation of Sir Francis Walsingham, her Resident in France. Together with the Answers of the Lord Burleigh, the Earl of Leicester, Sir Tho. Smith, and others. Wherein, as in a clear Mirror, may be seen the Faces of the two Courts of England and France, as they then stood, with many re- markable passages of State, not at all mentioned in any his- 'X SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 43 tory. Faithfully Collected by the truly Honourable Sir Dudley Deggs, Knight, late Master of the Roll. London, 1655- Valuable as giving the personal expressions of some of the greatest men of the time. CLXII CABALA SIVE SCRINIA SACRA : Mysteries of State and Government, in Letters of Illiistrious Persons, and Great Ministers of State, as zvell Foreign as Domestick, in the Reigns of King Henry the Eighth, Queen Elizabeth, King James, and King Charles. Wherein such secrets of Em- pire, and Publick Affairs as zvcre then in Agitation are clearly Represented; and many remarkable Passages faith- fully collected. To zvhich is added in this Third Collection, a Second Part, consisting of a choice collection of Original Letters and Negotiations, never before published. London, 1691. An interesting collection of correspondence. CLXIII THE SOMERS TRACTS : A Collection of Scarce and Valu- able Tracts, on the most Interesting and Entertaining Sub- jects; but chiefly such as relate to the History and Con- stitution of these Kingdoms. Selected from an infinite number in Print and Manuscript, in the Royal, Cotton, Sion, and other Public as zvell as Private Libraries, par- ticularly that of the Late Lord Somers. The Second Edi- tion Revised, Augmented, and Arranged, by Walter Scott. London, 1809. Principally valuable for the seventeenth century. Very extensive. CLXIV D'EWES JOURNALS of the Elizabethan Parliaments: The Journals of all the Parliaments during the reign of Queen Elizabeth, both of the House of Lords and House of Commons. Collected by Sir Simons D'Ezves of Stozv- Hall in the Country of Suffolk, Knight and Baronet. Re- vised and Published by Paul Bozves, of the Middle Temple London, Esq. London, 1682. Interesting and valuable. Incorporated in Cobbett (No. 46 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY CLXV TOWNSHEND'S HISTORICAL COLLECTIONS: His- torical Collections: An Exact Account of the Proceedings of the Four Last Parliaments of Queen Elizabeth of Fa- mous Memory. Wherein is contained the Compleat Jour- nals both of the Lords and Commons, Taken from the Original Records of their Houses, as also the m,ore par- ticular Behaviours of the Worthy Members during all the last notable Sessions; comprehending the Motions, Speeches, and Arguments of the Renowned and Learned Secretary Cecill, Sir Francis Bacon, Sir Walter Razvleigh, Sir Edw. Hobby, and divers other eminent Gentlemen. Together with the most considerable Passages of the His- tory of those times Faithfully and Laboriously collected, by Heywood Townshend Esq., a Member in those Parlia- ments. The like never Extant before. London, 1680. Exhaustive account of proceedings of parliaments named in title. CLXVI BURLEIGH PAPERS: {A) A Collection of State Papers Relating to Affairs in the reigns of King Henry VIII., King Edward VI., Queen Mary and Queen Elizabeth, From the Year 1542 to 1570. Transcribed from Original Letters and other Authentick Memorials, Never before published. Left by William Cecill Lord Burghley, and now remaining at Hatfield House, in the Library of the Right Honourable the present Earl of Salesbury, by Samuel Haynes, A. M. Rector of Hatfield in Hertfordshire. London, 1740. {B) A Collection of State Papers Relating to Affairs in the reign of Queen Elizabeth from the year i^yi to 1596. Transcribed from Original Papers and other Authentic Memorials never before published, left by Wil- liam Cecil Lord Burghley and Reposited in the Library at Hatfield House. By William Murdin, B. D. Rector of Morrow and Vicar of Shalford in Surrey. London, 1759- Valuable for period 1542- 1596. CLXVII GRANVELLE PAPERS: {A) Papiers d'Etat du Cardinal de Granvelle d'apres les manuscrits de la Bibliotheque de Besangon, ed. C. Weiss. Paris, 1841. {B) Correspon- SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 47 dance du Cardinal de Granvelle, 156^ to 1586, by various editors, in Documents inedits sur I'Histoire de France. 1877-1894. Bruxelles. Very important source for foreign relations during six- teenth century. CLXVIII THE FRENCH DISPATCHES: (A) Inventaire Chrono- logique des Documents Relatifs a I'Histoire d'Ecosse, ed. J. B. A. T. Teulet. Abbottsford Club. Edinburgh, 1839. {B) Relations Politiques de la France et de I'Espagne avec VEcosse ail XVI Siecle, ed. A. Teulet. Paris, 1862. Other editions. Valuable for accounts of negotiations between France and Scotland. CLXIX THE NOAILLES DISPATCHES: Amhassades de Mes- sieurs de Noailles en Angleterre, Vertot. Leyden, 1763. Contain accounts of plots against Queen Mary. CLXX LETTRES, INSTRUCTIONS ET MEMOIRES DE MARIE STUART, Reine d'Ecosse; piiblie sur les origi- naux et les manuscrits du State Paper office de Londres et des Principales Archives et Bibliotheques de I'Europe, et accompagnees d'lin resuuie chronologique par le Prince Alexandre Lahanoff. London, 1844. There are many editions of the letters of Mary Queen of Scots. Also sev- eral collections of historical materials. Throw much light on the character of the Queen of Scots. CLXXI LETTRES, INSTRUCTIONS ET MEMOIRES DE as regular, and of other Catholics, of both Sexes, that have suffered death in England on Religions accounts from the year of Our Lord ij/j to 1684, by R. Challoner. First pub. 1741. Reprint, 1878, Edinburgh. This, and the work that follows, should be read in con- nection with Foxe's Book of Martyrs. Persecution and death was not the lot of one sect alone in the years of the Tudor Dynasty. 4.8 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY CLXXII RECORDS OF THE ENGLISH PROVINCE OF THE SOCIETY OF JESUS : Historic Facts illustrative of the Labours and Sufferings of its Members in the Sixteenth and Seventeenth Centuries, ed. H. Foley. London, 1877. The Jesuit view of the religious persecutions. CLXXIII THE TROUBLES OF OUR CATHOLIC FORE- FATHERS, related by themselves, ed. J. Morris. Lon- don, 1872. Setting forth the sufferings of the Catholics in Protestant England. CLXXIV WINWOOD'S MEMORIALS: Memorials of Affairs of State in the Reigns of Queen Elisabeth and K. James I. Collected (chiefly) from the Original Papers of the Right Honourable Sir Ralph Winwood, Kt. Sometime one of the Principal Secretaries of State. Comprehending likewise the negotiations . . . at the Courts of France and Spain and in Holland, Venice, etc., ed. E. Sawyer. 1725. Chiefly valuable upon foreign relations, 1 596-161 3. CLXXV SELECT STATUTES AND OTHER CONSTITUTION- AL DOCUMENTS, illustrative of the Reigns of Elisa- beth and James I., ed. G. W. Prothero. Oxford, 1894. The best handy collection for the period covered. Profes- sor Prothero has in preparation a like volume devoted to the early Tudor Period. CLXXVI HARRISON'S DESCRIPTION OF ENGLAND. See Holingsheds Chronicle, a.d. 1577-87. Also Reprint ed. J. J. Furnival in New Shakspere Soc. Pubs. Excellent description of condition of English people in . latter part of sixteenth century. CLXXVII PHILLIP STUBBE'S Anatomy of the Abuses in England in Shakspere' s Youth, a.d. 1583. Reprint ed. by F. J. Furnival in N. S. Soc. Pubs. An Interesting arraignment of the sins of the time, 1583 to 1595- SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 49 CLXXVIII WILLIAM STAFFORD'S Compendious or brief e Examina- tion of certayne ordinary Complaints of divers of our countrymen in these our dayes. a.d. 1549, ed. Elizabeth Lamoud. Cambridge, 1893. Deals with status of trade and agriculture. Important source. Has caused revision of various economic theories. SECTIONS. — THE STUGGLE FOR CONSTITUTIONAL GOVERNMENT CLXXIX CALENDARS OF STATE PAPERS. Furnish much valuable information. Have been issued of many of the public documents for the reigns of James I., Charles I., and Charles 11.. as well as for the period of the Commonwealth. Period of James H. in preparation. The student should keep himself informed regarding late publica- tions of this series. CLXXX KENNET'S Complete History of England; vol. v, Camden's Annals of King James /.; vol. vi, Wilson's History of King James I. Second ed., London, 17 19. A well edited and impartial collection. Covers period from earliest Britain to death of William HI. Made up of monographs upon various reigns. Most of the historirs in- cluded are of considerable value. Those after vol. W are most useful. CLXXXI COURT OF KING JAMES THE FIRST, by Dr. Godfrey Goodman, Bishop of Gloucester; to which are added, Letters illustrative of the personal history of the most dis- tinguished characters in the Court of that monarch and his predecessors, ed. J. S. Brewer. London, 1839. Written from a royalist standpoint. To be read in con- nection with works of Puritan authors, and balance struck. CLXXXII STATE PAPERS, and Miscellaneous Correspondence of Thomas, Earl of Melrose, ed. for No. XV by John Hope. Edinburgh, 1837. Covers period 1599- 1625. 50 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY CLXXXII LETTERS from George Lord Carew to Sir Thomas Roe, Ambassador to the Count of the Great Mogul, i6iyi6iy, ed. J. Maclean. No. XXVI. i860. General summary and comment of events occurring 161 5 to 1617. CLXXXIV THE HISTORY OF THE REBELLION AND CIVIL WARS IN ENGLAND, to which is nozv added an his- torical view of the affairs of Inland by Edward Emil of Clarendon (1625-1660). Oxford, 1842. See also State Papers collected by Edzvard, Earl of Clarendon, Commen- cing from the year MDCXXI. Containing the materials from which his history of the Great Rebellion was com- posed, and the authorities on which the truth of his rela- tion is founded. Oxford, 1767. See also Calendar of the Clarendon State Papers preserved in the Bodleian Library. 1623-57. Oxford, 1872-76. Principally devoted to period 1641-1660, Royalist in bias. Important source. CLXXXV MEMORIALS AND LETTERS relating to the History of Britain, {A) in the reign of James the First, 26. ed., 1756. (B) in the reign of Charles the First. Published from the originals. The second edition corrected and enlarged by Sir David Dalrymple, Lord Hailes. Glasgow, 1766. Anti-royalist. Compare with No. CLXXXI. CLXXXVI PROCEEDINGS IN PARLIAMENT: Parliamentary De- bates. 1610, ed. S. R. Gardiner. No. XXVI, 1862. Pro- ceedings and Debates. 1620-21 ; in Parliamentary His- tory, vol. V. London, 1763. Notes of Debates. 1621, ed. S. R. Gardiner. No. XXVI. 1870. 1624-26, same ed. No. XXVI. 1879. 1625, same ed. No. XXVL 1874; 1618-29. Rushworth Collections. London, 1659; Somers Tracts supra; Protests of the Lords. 1624-1874, ed. J. T. Rogers. Oxford, 1875. See also edit, of London, 1767. 1640-53. The History of the Parliament of England which began Nov. 2, 1640; T. May. Oxford, 1854. Notes SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 51 of Proceedings in the Long Parliament, temp. Charles I., by Ralph Verney, ed. J. Bruce. No. XXVI. 1845. ^ Collection of acts and ordinances of General Use, etc., by H. Scobell. London, 1658. - See also No. XXX and No. LXII. CLXXXVII VERNEY PAPERS: Letters and Papers of The Verney Family down to the end of the year i6^p. Printed from the original MSS. in the possession of Sir Harry Verney, Bart, ed. J. Bruce. No. XXVI. 1851. This volume is one of a number devoted to the period of the Puritan Revolution and published in No. XXVI, the catalogue of which should be consulted. CLXXXVIII WALKER'S DISCOURSES: Historical Discourses upon Several Occasions . . .by Sir Edward Walker. London, 1705- Mainly valuable for negotiations between Charles I. and Parliament, in 1648, in Isle of Wight. CLXXXIX ENGLAND'S RECOVERY: Anglia Rediviva; England's Recovery, being the History of the motions, actions and successes of the army tinder the immediate conduct of his excellency Sir Thomas Fairfax, ed. J. Sprigg. New edit. Oxford, 1854. "The acts of Fairfax and his independent army till the reduction of Oxford and the King." cxc LETTERS OF KING CHARLES THE FIRST to Queen Henrietta Maria, ed. J. Bruce. No. XXVI. 1856. Written in 1646. Show the double-dealing of the King. (RYMER'S Focdera: See No. LXVIII A.) (DUMONT'S Corps Universel Diplomatique du Droit des Gens: See No. LXVIII B.) CXCI CONSTITUTIONAL DOCUMENTS OF THE PURITAN REVOLUTION {1623-1660), ed. S. R. Gardiner, 2d ed. Oxford, 1899. For the period covered, the most suitable single-volume collection for university use. 52 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY CXCII BURTON'S CROMWELLIAN DIARY: Diary of Thomas Burton, Esq., Member in the Parliaments of Oliver and Richard Cromwell from 1656 to i6^p; noiu first published from the original autograph manuscript. With an intro- duction containing an account of the Parliament of 16^4 from the Journal of Guibon Goddard, Esq., M.P., also now first printed, ed. J. T. Rutt. London, 1828. Valuable for proceedings of the parliament of the Com- monwealth. CXCIII BURNET'S HISTORY OF HIS OWN TIME: with notes by the Earls of Dartmouth and Hardwicke, Speaker Onslow, and Dean Szvift, etc. Oxford, 1823. Several other editions. 1660-1713. Much chaff, some wheat, CXCIV KENNET'S REGISTER: A Register and chronicle eccle- siastical and civil: containing matters of fact, Delivered in the words of the most authentick Books, Papers, and Records ; Digested in exact Order of Time, ivith proper Notes and References Tozvards discovering and connecting the True History of England From the Restauration of King Charles II. Vol. I (only one printed). London, 1728. 1660-1662. "A valuable collection of materials." cxcv ANGLIC NOTITIA or, t4ie Present State of England com- pleat. Together with Divers Reflections upon the ancient state thereof, by Edw. Chamberlayne. Many editions. First edition London, 1669. On the institutions, customs and social life of England. CXCVI EVELYN'S DIARY: Diary and Correspondence of John Evelyn. To zvhich is subjoined The Private Correspon- dence between King Charles I. and Sir Edward Nicholas, and between Sir Edward Hyde, afterwards Earl of Claren- don, and Sir Richard Browne, ed. from the original MSS. at Wollon by Bray and Wheatley. London, 1879. 1620-1706. "A storehouse of illustration as regards the political, literary and scientific movements of his age." SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 53 CXCVII PEPYS'S DIARY: The Diary of Samuel Pepys .. .Tran- scribed from the shorthand manuscript in the Pepysian Library Magdalene College Cambridge by M. Bright, with Lord Braybrooke's Notes, ed. H. B. Wheatley. London, 1893. Several other editions. Wheatley's edition (1893), though the most exhaustive, is not as suitable for students' use as are earlier editions. See Braybrooke's ed., Lond. 1893- An interesting, though, from an historical point of view, overrated source. CXCVIII LUTTRELL'S DIARY: A Brief Historical Relation of State Affairs from September 16/8 to April 1/14, by Nar- cissus LuttreU. Printed from MS. in Library of All Souls' College, Oxford, 1857. A methodical narration of contemporary events. CXCIX ELWOOD'S HISTORY: The History of Thomas Ehvood, zvritten by himself, ed. Morley. London, 1886. Valuable for information regarding the "Friends" under Charles II. See also Stephen Crisp and his Correspondence, London, 1892; The Pcnns and Pcnningtons of the 17th Century. CC WHITELOCK'S MEMORIALS : Memorials of the English Affairs {A) from the supposed Expedition of Brute to this Island to the End of the Reign of King James the First, by Sir Bidstrode Whitelock. London, 1709. {B) From the beginning of the Reign of King Charles the First to the Happy Restoration of King Charles the Sec- ond, by Bidstrode Whitelock. Oxford, 1853. First com- plete edition. Lond. 1732. Avoid ed. of 1682. {B) is valuable as "containing the public transactions, civil and military, together with the private consultations and secrets of the Cabinet." CCI THURLOE PAPERS : A Collection of the State Papers of John Thurloe, Esq.; Secretary, First, to the Council of State, and afterzvards to the Tivo Protectors, Oliver and 54 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY Richard Cromwell . . . Containing Memorials of the Eng- lish Affairs from the year 16^8 to the Restoration of King Charles II. Published from the originals, ed. T. Birch. London, 1742. Thurloe's position gave him unusual facilities, which he successfully employed. ecu NALSON'S COLLECTION: An Impartial Collection of the Great affairs of State from the Beginning of the Scotch Rebellion in the Year MDCXXXIX. To the Mur- ther of King Charles I. Taken from Authentic Records, and Methodically Digested by lohn Nalson, LL.D. Lon- don, 1682. Ultra-royalist. Well expresses views of extreme court party. CCIII ORMONDE PAPERS: A Collection of Original Letters and Papers concerning the Affairs of England, from the year 1641 to 1660, found among the Duke of Ormonde's Papers, ed. T. Carte. London, 1739. See also Contem- porary History of Affairs in Ireland, 1641-52, ed. J. T. Gil- bert for the Irish Archaeological and Celtic Society. 1879. Also Memoirs of Denzil Lord Holies. From the year 1641-1648. London, 1699. Valuable for history of Ireland. See Nos. XLVII and LVI and the publications of J. Grasco, J. Gutch, R. Lascelles, R. Theiner and others. CCIV GUTHRY'S MEMOIRS: The Memoirs of Henry Guthry, late Bishop of Dunkeld, in Scotland: wherein the Con- spiracies and Rebellion against King Charles I. of Blessed Memory To the time of the Murther of that Monarch are briefly and faithfully related. London, 1702. An impartial narration. Useful for period. ccv DALRYMPLE'S MEMOIRS: Memoirs of Great Britain and Ireland from the Dissolution of the last Parliament of Charles II. until the sea-battle off La Hague, by Sir lohn Dalrymple. 2d edition. London and Edinburgh, 177 1. Consisting chiefly of lej^ters from the French Ambassadors in England to their Courts and from Charles II., James II., SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 55 King William and Queen Mary, and the Ministers and Generals of those Princes, from the originals. SECTION 9. — THE HANOVERIAN PERIOD CCVI D'AVAUX'S DISPATCHES: The Negotiations of Count D'Avmix, Ambassador from the Most Christian King, Lezvis XIV. to the States General of the United Provinces, containing besides the secret History of the Rise and Mo- tives of the Duke of Monmouth's Rebellion, the Steps taken by the Prince of Orange to ascend the Throne of Great Britain; and the Intrigues of the Court of France to counteract his measures during that interesting Period. Translated from the French. London, 1754-55. Interesting and valuable for inner history of movements described. See also Negotiations de M. le Cointc d'Avanx en Ireland, dcpuis 1689 jusqu'en 1690. Priv. print., Lond., 1830. CCVII DE COMINGE'S CORRESPONDENCE: A French Am- bassador at the Court of Charles II. Translated by J. J. Jusserand, N. Y. and London, 1892. A vivid picture of diplomacy and intrigue at Charles' court. CCVIII RELIQUI^ BAXTERIAN^: or Mr. Richard Baxter's Narrative of the most Memorable Passages of his life and Times. Faithfully published from his own original manu- script by Matthezv Sylvester. London, 1696. Written from the independent standpoint. Deals with people rather than politics. CCIX NORTH'S LIVES OF THE NORTHS : The Lives of the Right Hon. Francis North, Baron Guilford, Lord Keeper of the Great Seal binder King Charles II. and King James II.; The Hon. Sir Dudley North, Commissioner of the Customs and afterwards of the Treasury, to King Charles II. and The Hon. and Rev. Dr. John North, master of Trinity College, Cambridge, and clerk of the Closet to King Charles II. by The Hon. Roger North. New ed. London, 1826. Taking the brothers North as examples of their class, the book well illustrates the manners and motives of the time. 56 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY ccx DRYDEN : The Works of John Dryden, ed. Walter Scott. Edinburgh, 1821. The poUtical works of Dryden ilhistrate the controversial literature of the royalist type, as do those of Milton the Puritan. CCXI MONMOUTH'S REBELLION: Some Sources of History for the Monmouth Rebellion and the Bloody Assizes, ed. A. L. Humphreys. Taunton, 1893. May be supplemented by The Bloody Assizes, A Compleat History of the Life of George, Lord Jeffries, ed. Goldsmith. CCXII SHREWSBURY'S CORRESPONDENCE: Private and Original Correspondence of Charles Talbot, Duke of Shrewsbury, with King William, the Leaders of the Whig Party, and other disting^iished statesmen . . ., ed. W. Coxe. London, 1821. Part I. Correspondence with William to 1700. Part 2. With Admr. Russell in 1695-96, with Galway in 1695-96 on Grand Alliance. Part 3. Confidential correspondence with Sunderland, Somers, Wharton, Russell, Oxford and Halifax 1695- I 704. CCXIII MACPHERSON PAPERS : Original Papers containing the Secret History of Great Britain from the Restoration to the accession of the House of Hanover, To which are pre- fixed extracts from the life of James II. as written by him- self, ed. J. Macpherson. London, 1775. Other editions. Worthy of study, although tainted by suspicion engendered by the Ossianic forgeries. CCXIV STATE TRACTS : A Collection of State Tracts Published on occasion of the Late Revolution in 1688 and during the Reign of King William III. To zvhich is prefixed The History of the Dutch War in 16/2. Translated from the French Copy printed at Paris in 1682, which was supprest at the instance of the English Ambassador, because of the Discoveries it made of the League betwixt the Kings of France and England for enslaving Europe, and intro- ducing the Popish Religion into their Kingdoms, and the United Provinces. London, 1705. A curious book, illustrating the spirit of the times. It em- bodies much of the work of the pamphleteers. SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 57 ccxv CARSTARE'S STATE PAPERS AND LETTTERS : State-Papers and Letters addressed to William Carstares, confidential Secretary to K. William during the whole of his Reign; afterwards Principal of the University of Edin- burgh. Relating to Public Affairs in Great-Britain, but more partictdarly in Scotland, during the Reigns of K. William and Q. Anne . . . Published from the originals by J. McCormick, Edinburgh, 1774. A carefully compiled volume of some value. CCXVI DEAN SWIFT : The Works of Jonathan Szvift DD. Dean of St. Patricks, Dublin; Containing additional Letters, Tracts and Poems, not hitherto Published; zvith notes, and a life of the author, by Walter Scott Esq. Edinburgh, 1814. In the works of Swift we find some of the most valuable material for this period. History of the Four Last Years of Queen Anne's Reign and Journal to Stella are particularly important for period covered. See also therein : On the Conduct of tJic Allies, on national policy; Tale of a Tub, satire on ecclesiastical quarrels ; Drapicr Letters, etc., etc. CCXVII BOLINGBROKE: The Works of the Right Honourable Henry St. John, Lord Viscount Bolingbroke. 5 vols., ed. O. Mallet. London, 1754. Letters and Correspondence, public and private, of Lord Bolingbroke, ed. G. Parke. London, 1798. Valuable although marred by partisanship and self-justifi- cation. CCXVIII BOYER'S HISTORY OF QUEEN ANNE: The History of Queen Anne, zvherein all the Civil and Military Trans- actions of that memorable Reign are faithfully compiled from the best Authorities. The whole intermixed zvith Several authentic and remarkable Papers; together zvith all the more Important Debates in Parliament ; A compleat IJst of the most Eminent Persons zvho died in the course of this Reign; zvith proper characters of those zvho ren- dered themselves most conspicuous in Church and State, ed. A. Boyer. London, 1735. Useful as an accessible source. 58 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY CCXIX OLDMIXON'S HISTORY: The History of England Dur- ing the reigns of King William and Queen Mary, Queen Anne and King George I. Being the sequel of the Reigns of the Stuarts , . ., ed. J. Oldmixon. London, 1735. Though coloured by violent partisanship of the Whig pol- icy, this is a useful source. It contains extracts from Parlia- mentary Debates and from political publications. ccxx RAPIN'S HISTORY OF ENGLAND CONTINUED: The History of England by Mr, Rapin de Thoyras. Continued ■from the Revolution to the Accession of King George II., ed. N. Tindal. London, 1747. The work was extended to include reign of George II and was republished Lend. 1757. Impartial, accurate, and comprehensive. Covers period 1 649- 1 820. CCXXI FLETCHER OF SALTOUN : The Political Works of An- drew Fletcher, Esq. Reprint, Lond. 1732. Opinions of party opposed to union between England and Scotland. CCXXII HERVEY'S MEMOIRS : Memoirs of the Reign of George the Second from his accession to the Death of Queen Caroline.. .By John, Lord Hervcy, ed. from the original mss. by J. W. Croker. London, 1848. 1737-1742. Court Life and the inner political management. Valuable source. CCXXIII KER'S MEMOIRS: The Memoirs of John Ker of Kersland in North Britain Esq.; containing His secret transactions and negotiations in Scotland, England, the Courts of Vienna, Hanover, and other Foreign Parts. With an ac- count of the Rise and Progress of the Ostend Company in the Austrian Netherlands. London, 1726. Ker was a secret agent of the Government, and his work not only throws light upon the policy of the Ministry, but gives a clear idea of the methods of the service in which he was engaged. CCXXIV LETTERS OF WILLIAM III. AND LOUIS XIV. and of their ministers, illustrative of the Domestic and Foreign SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 59 politics of England from the Peace of Ryswick to the ac- cession of Phillip V. of Spain. i6<)j-i'/00, ed. P. Grimblot. London, 1848. Useful in the field indicated in title. ccxxv CALENDARS: of Home Office Papers of the Reign of George HI. 1760-65; 1766-6^; i'/6o-'/2; of Treasury Papers, 1557-17^0. London, 1878-81. See No. XXV. Extremely valuable. CCXXVI BEDFORD CORRESPONDENCE: Correspondence of John, Fourth Duke of Bedford; selected from the original at Wohurn Abbey. With an introduction by Lord John Russell. London, 1842-46. Generally useful for political history in period 1742-1770. CCXXVII PITT CORRESPONDENCE: Correspondence of William Pitt, Earl of Chatham . . . published from the original manuscripts. London, 1838. Covers period 1741-1778. The position of the writer en- ables him to give much information not elsewhere obtain- able. CCXXVIII THE GRENVILLE PAPERS : being the correspondence of Richard Grenville, Earl Temple, K.G., and the Rt. Hon. George Grenville, their friends and contemporaries. Ed. W. J. Smith, Lond., 1852. Begins 1742. Particularly important after 1755. CCXXIX ROSE CORRESPONDENCE: Diaries and Correspondence of the Right Hon. George Rose; containing original Letters of the most disingulshed statesmen of his day, ed. L. V. Harcourt. London, 1860-62. Period of 1782- 181 5. Useful. CCXXX AUCKLAND CORRESPONDENCE: The Journal and Corespondence of William, Lord Auckland, ed. The Bishop of Bath and Wells. London, 1861-62. Period of 1782-1814. Scholarly and impartial. 6o SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY ^H ccxxxi ■ MEMOIRS OF THE LAST TEN YEARS OF THE REIGN OF GEORGE IL, hy Horace Walpole. London, 1822. Also Memoirs of the Early Reign of George III, hy Horace Walpole, ed. from original MSS. by D. Le Marchant. London, 1845. Also Correspondence of, ed. Cunningham. London, 1840-51, and 1888. Also Journal of the Reign of George III [i 771 -1783], ed. Doran. Lon- don, 1859. Also Letters of, ed. C. D. Yonge, 1891. The standard source for the period. CCXXXII ANNUAL REGISTER, or a viezv of the History, Politics and Literature for the year 1758. (Continued to date.) Each volume of this important series contains a summary of the principal events of the year in England and foreign countries. Particular attention given to parliamentary pro- ceedings. Texts of important acts and treaties are often quoted. Although in many cases the editor shows bias, this is so readily perceptible as to be of little disadvantage. CXXXIII CAVENDISH'S DEBATES: Henry Cavendish's Debates of the House of Commons During the Thirteenth Parlia- melit of Great Britain, commonly called the Unreported Parliament ; to which are appended Illustrations of the Parliamentary History of the Reign of George the Third; consisting of unpublished letters. Private Journals, Me- moirs, etc. Drawn up from the original manuscripts by J. Wright. London, 1841-43. Covers period 1 768-1 771. CCXXXIV BUBB DODINGTON'S DIARY: The Diary of the late George Bubb Dodington, from Mar. 8, 1/48-4^ to Feby. 6, i'j6i. With an Appendix containing many curious and interesting Papers referred to in the Diary. Ed. H. P. Wyndham from, the original MSS. 14th edition. 1809. Useful for period 1 748-1 761. ccxxxv NORTH CORRESPONDENCE: The Correspondence of King George the Third zvith Lord North from 1/68-1/8^, ed. from the originals by W. B. Donne. London, 1867. Period of 1768- 1783. SOURCES ARRANGED BY EPOCHS 6i CCXXXVI MALMESBURY CORRESPONDENCE: Diaries and Cor- respondence of James Harris, First Earl of MaUnesbury ; containing an account of His Mission to the Courts of Madrid, Frederick the Great, Catherine the Second, and the Hague ; and his special missions to Berlin, Brunswick and the French Republic, ed. Earl of Malmesbury. Lon- don, 1844. Period of 1 767-1 797. CCXXXVII BURKE'S WORKS : The Works and Correspondence of Edmund Burke. London, 1852. Speeches of, Lond. 1859. For missing correspondence, completing this valuable source, see T. Macknight's Life and Times of Edmund Burke, London, 1858-1861. CCXXXVIII CORNWALLIS CORRESPONDENCE : Correspondence of Charles, First Marquis Cornzvallis. Ed. C. Ross, Lond., 1859. Period of 1776-1806. Colonial affairs. CCXXXIX MEMOIRS OF THE COURT AND CABINETS OF GEORGE THE THIRD. From original family docu- ments by the Duke of Buckingham and Chandos. Lon- don, 1853-55. Period of 1782-1800. Valuable for letters of eminent per- sons. SECTION 10. — THE NINETEENTH CENTURY The source material for the study of the history of the Nineteenth Century is so voluminous as to preclude even an attempt to outline its resources within the limits of the space at command. The student will, however, by following the bibliographical lines indicated for preceding periods, have no difficulty in securing an ample supply of material for the study of recent history. PART II THE PRE-NORMAN PERIOD (425 B.C. TO 1066 A.D.) 63 CHAPTER III THE BRITAIN OF THE ANCIENTS II. First Mention of the Islands afterwards called British Herodotus Herodotus (b. circa 484 B.C.; d. 408 B.C.?) was the earliest Grecian historian. His History contains the first authentic allu- sion to the British Islands. The form of the reference indicates that definite knowledge of the *'Tin Islands," — the Cassiterides, generally believed to be the British Islands, — was current among the trading countries of the Mediterranean at a period somewhat earlier than that of Herodotus. Of the extremities of Europe towards the west I cannot speak with certainty, . . . nor am I acquainted with the islands Cassiterides, from which tin is brought to us. {Herodoti Historiaruvt libro HI" § 115, ed. Abicht-Kallenberg, Teubner Text Leipsic, 1890.) 12. First Mention of the Islands by Name Aristotle Aristotle (b. c'lrca 384 b.c. : d. 2^22 b.c. ?) Controversies have more than shaken the belief that The Universe was written by Aristotle; yet the undoubted antiquity of the work justifies the insertion of the excerpt given below. If we accept the attribution of The Universe to the great Stagirite we may confidently assert that therein is contained the earliest recorded allusion by name to the British Islands. Without which [the Pillars of Hercules] the ocean flows round the earth; in this ocean, however, are two islands, and those very large, called Bretannic, Albion and lerne, which are larger than those before mentioned and lie beyond the Celti ; and other tw^o not less than these, Taprobane, beyond the Indians, lying obliquely in respect of the main land, and that called Phebol, situate over against the Arabic Gulf; moreover not a few small islands, around the Bretannic Isles, and Iberia, encircle as with a diadem this earth, which we have already said to be an island. {Aristoteles de Mundo capite iii, Prussian Royal Academy. Ed. , Berlin, 183 1-70.) 65 66 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 13. Evidence of increasing Interest in the British Islands The great History of Polybius (b. circa 204 B.C.; d. 122 B.C.?) is chiefly devoted to the affairs of Greece, but it contains many allusions to the contemporaneous history of other countries. From the excerpt given, the increasing interest in and knowledge of the British Islands are apparent. Not only are these islands mentioned by name, but their connection with the tin trade is definitely stated. Perhaps indeed some will enquire w^hy, having made so long a discourse concerning places in Lybia and Iberia, we have not spoken more fully of the outlet at the Pillars of Hercules, nor of the exterior sea, and of the peculiarities which occur therein, nor yet indeed of the Bretannic Isles, and the working of tin; nor again, of the gold and silver mines of Iberia; concerning which writers, controverting each other, have discoursed very largely. Polybii Historiarum libro III. c. 57, ed. Buttner-Wobst and Dindorf, Teubner Text, 1882.) 14. First Roman Invasion of Britain CcEsar In the Commentaries on the Gallic War, by Julius C^sar (b. 100 B.C.; d. 44 B.C.) we possess an invaluable source of con- temporary information concerning the first two invasions of Britain. Caesar could speak not only authoritatively as being the leader of the Roman armies, but with clearness and accuracy as being an observant scholar. These matters being arranged, finding the weather favour- able for his voyage, he set sail about the third watch, and ordered the horse to march forward to the farther port, and there embark and follow him. As this was performed rather tardily by them, he himself reached Britain with the first squadron of ships, about the fourth hour of the day, and there saw the forces of the enemy drawn up in arms on all the hills. The nature of the place was this : the sea was confined by mountains so close to it that a dart could be thrown from their summit upon the shore. Considering this by no means a fit place for disembarking, he remained at anchor till the ninth hour, for the other ships to arrive there. Having in the meantime assembled the lieutenants and military tribunes, he told them both what he had learnt from Volusenus, and what he wished to be done; and enjoined them (as the prin- ciple of military matters, and especially as maritime affairs, which have a precipitate and uncertain action, required) that all things should be performed by them at a nod and at the I THE BRITAIN OF THE ANCIENTS 67 instant. Having dismissed them, meeting both with wind and tide favourable at the time, the signal being given and the anchor weighed, he advanced about seven miles from that place, and stationed his fleet over against an open and level shore. But the barbarians, upon perceiving the design of the Romans, sent forward their cavalry and charioteers, a class of warriors of whom it is their practice to make great use in their battles, and following with the rest of their forces, en- deavoured to prevent our men landing. In this was the greatest difficulty, for the following reasons, namely, because our ships, on account of their great size, could be stationed only in deep water ; and our soldiers, in places unknown to them, with their hands embarrassed, oppressed with a large and heavy weight of armour, had at the same time to leap from the ships, stand amidst the waves, and encounter the enemy ; whereas they, either on dry ground, or advancing a little way into the water, free in all their limbs, in places thoroughly known to them, could confidently throw their weapons and spur on their horses, which were accustomed to this kind of service. Dismayed by these circumstances and altogether untrained in their mode of battle, our men did not all exert the same vigour and eagerness which they had been wont to exert in engagements on dry land. When Caesar observed this, he ordered the ships of war, the appearance of which was somewhat strange to the bar- barians and the motion more ready for service, to be with- drawn a little from the transport vessels, and to be propelled by their oars, and to be stationed a little toward the open flank of the enemy, and the enemy to be beaten off and driven away, with slings, arrows, and engines : which plan was of great service to our men : for the barbarians being startled by the form of our ships and the motions of our oars and the nature of our engines, which was strange to them, stopped, and shortly after retreated a little. And while our men were hesitating [whether they should advance to the shore], chiefly on account of the depth of the sea, he who carried the eagle of the tenth legion, after supplicating the gods that the matter might turn out favourably to the legion, exclaimed, "Leap, fellow-soldiers, unless you wish to betray your eagle to the enemy. I, for my part, will perform my duty to the commonwealth and my general." When he had said this with a loud voice, he leaped from the ship and pro- ceeded to bear the eagle toward the enemy. Then our men, 6s SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY exhorting one another that so great a disgrace should not be incurred, all leaped from the ship. When those in the nearest vessels saw them, they speedily followed and approached the "enemy. The battle was maintained vigorously on both sides. Our men, however, as they could neither keep their ranks, nor get firm footing, nor follow their standards, and as one from one ship arid another from another assembled around whatever standards they met, were thrown into great confusion. But the enemy, who were acquainted with all the shallows, when from the shore they saw any coming from a ship one by one, spurred on their horses, and attacked them while embar- rassed; many surrounded a few, others threw their weapons upon our collected forces on their exposed flank. When Csesar observed this, he ordered the boats of the ships of war arid the spy sloops to be filled with soldiers, and sent them up "to the succour of those whom he had observed in distress. Our men, as soon as they made good their footing on dry ground, and all their comrades had joined them, made an attack upon the enemy, and put them to flight, but could not pursue them very far, because the horse had not been able to maintain their course at sea and reach the island. This alone was wanting to Caesar's accustomed success. (CcBsar^s Conime7itaries on the Gaelic IVar, book IV, c. 23-26.) 15. A Description of the Britons CcFsnr The characteristics of the Britons and their country are well described by C^sar. He possessed keen perception and cool judgment, and he was accustomed to impartially record all which personal interests did not tempt him to colour. The interior portion of Britain is inhabited by those of whom they say that it is handed down by tradition that they were born in the island itself: the maritime portion by those who had passed over from the country of the Belgse for the purpose of plunder and making war; almost all of whom are called by the names of those states from which being sprung they went thither, and having waged war, continued there and began to cultivate the lands. The number of the people is countless, and their buildings exceedingly numerous, for the most part very like those of the Gauls: the number of cattle is great. They use either brass or iron rings, determined at a certain weight, as their money. Tin is produced in the mid- land regions; in the maritime, iron; but the quantity of it THE BRITAIN OF THE ANCIENTS 69 is small : they employ brass, which is imported. There, as in Gaul, is timber of every description, except beech and fir. They do not regard it lawful to eat the hare, and the cock, and the goose ; they, however, breed them for amusement and pleasure. The climate is more temperate than in Gaul, the colds being less severe . . . The most civilized of all these nations are they who in- habit Kent, which is entirely a maritime district, nor do they differ much from the Gallic customs. Most of the inland in- habitants do not sow corn, but live on milk and flesh, and are clad with skins. All the Britains, indeed, dye themselves with wood, which occasions a bluish colour, and thereby have a more terrible appearance in fight. They wear their hair long, and have every part of their body shaved except their head and upper lip. Ten and even twelve have wives com- mon to them, and particularly brothers among brothers, and parents among their children ; but if there be any issue by these wives, they are reputed to be the children of those by whom respectively each was first espoused when a virgin. {Casar^s Coinmefitaries on the Gallic War, book V, c. 12, 14.) 16. The Characteristics of the Britons Strnho In the Fourth Book of the Geography of Strabo (b. circa 50 b.c. ; d. 21 A.D. ?) we find an interesting account of the British Islands and their inhabitants. Strabo gathers and reflects the opinions of the historians and geographers who preceded him, but he also adds much derived from his own research and observation. His description is not the less valuable because based on the accounts of Pytheas, Posidonius. Artemidorus, Ephorus, Timagenes, Aris- totle, Polybius, Asinius, Pollio, and Qesar. . . . The greatest portion of the island is level and woody, although many tracts are hilly. It produces corn, and cattle, and gold, and silver, and iron, which things are brought thence, and also skins and slaves, and dogs sagacious in hunt- ing: and the Celti use these for the purposes of war also, as well as their native dogs. The men are taller than the Celti, w^ith hair less yellow ; and slighter in their persons. As an instance of their height, we ourselves saw at Rome some youths who were taller by so much as half a foot than the tallest there; but they were distorted in their lower limbs, and in other respects not symmetrical in their conformation. Their manners are in part like those of the Celti, though in part more simple and barbarous ; insomuch that some of them, though possessing plenty of milk, have not skill enough to 70 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY make cheese, and are totally unacquainted with horticulture and other matters of husbandry. There are several states among them. In their wars they make use of chariots for the most part, as do some of the Celti. Forests are their cities : for having enclosed an ample space with felled trees, here they make themselves huts, and lodge their cattle, though not for any long continuance. Their atmosphere is more subject to rain than to snow; even in their clear days the mist con- tinues a considerable time, insomuch that throughout the whole day the sun is only visible for three or four hours about noontime ; and this must be the case also among the Morini and the Menapii, and among all the neighbouring people. The deified Caesar twice passed over to the island, but quickly returned, having effected nothing of consequence, nor pro- ceeded far into the country, as well on account of some com- motions in Celtica, both among his own soldiers and among the barbarians, as because of the loss of many of his ships at the period of the full moon, when both the flux and reflux of the tides were greatly increased. Nevertheless he gained two or three victories over the Britons, although he had transported thither only two legions of his army, and brought away hostages, and slaves, and much other booty. At the present time, however, some of the princes there having, by their embassies and court, gained the friendship of Caesar Augustus, have dedicated their offerings in the Capitol; and have brought the whole island into a state little short of intimate union with the Romans. They bear moderate taxes laid both on the imports and exports from Celtica ; which are ivory bracelets and necklaces, amber, and vessels of glass, and such like mean merchandise ; wherefore the island would be hardly worth a garrison, for it would require at least one legion and some cavalry to enforce tribute from them ; and the total expenditure for the army would be equal to the additional revenue : for if a tribute were levied, of necessity the imposts must be diminished, and at the same time some dangers would be incurred if force were to be employed. {Strabonis GeograpJdce, lib. I., ed, Meineke, Teubner Text, 1866.) 17. The Tin Mines of Britain Diodoms Sicnlns The History, or Bibliotheca, of Diodorus Siculus was probably written in the last half of the first century of our era. The work has not been preserved in its entirety. From the fragments re- lating to Britain I have selected one which speaks of the tin trade of that island. It was to the product of its mines that Britain owed its earliest importance. THE BRITAIN OF THE ANCIENTS 71 . . . Further they say that its aboriginal tribes inhabit Brit- ain, in their usages still preserving the primitive modes of life; for in their wars they use chariots, as the ancient Greek heroes are reported to have done in the Trojan war, and they have mean habitations, constructed for the most part of reeds or of wood, and they gather in their harvest by cut- ting off the ears of corn and storing them in subterraneous repositories : that they cull therefrom daily such as are old, and, dressing them, have thence their sustenance : that they are simple in their manners, and far removed from the cun- ning and wickedness of men of the present day : that their modes of living are frugal, and greatly differing from the luxury consequent on riches: that the island is thickly in- habited, and the temperature of the air exceedingly cold, in- asmuch as it lies directly beneath the north : and that they have many kings and princes, and for the most part live peaceably together. But concerning its institutions and other peculiarities we shall wTite at detail when we arrive at Caesar's expedition into Britain : at present we shall speak of the tin which is there produced. They who dwell near that promontory of Britain which is called Belerium are singularly fond of strangers, and, from their intercourse with foreign mer- chants, civilized in their habits. These people obtain the tin by skilfully working the soil which produces it; this being rocky, has earthy interstices, in which, working the ore, and then fusing, they reduce it to metal ; and when they have formed it into cubical shapes, they convey it to a certain is- land, lying off Britain, named Ictis: for at the low tides the intervening space being laid dry, they carry thither, in waggons, the tin in great abundance. A singular circum- stance happens with respect to the neighbouring islands lying between Europe and Britain ; for at the high tides, the inter- vening passage being flooded, they seem islands ; but at the low tides, the sea retreating and leaving much space dry, they appear peninsulas. From hence the merchants purchase the tin from the natives, and carry it across into Gaul ; and finally journeying by land through Gaul for about thirty days, they convey their burdens on horses to the outlet of the river Rhone. This much, therefore, to have spoken con- cerning tin may suffice. (Diodori Siculi Bibliothecce Historicce, ed. Vogel, Teubner Text, in progress.) 72 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY i8. Phases of the Roman Occupation 1 Tactiusi No Roman writer has given a description so comprehensive and clear of methods of war in Britain as has Tacitus. In the Life of Agricola this author furnishes information regarding the British Islands and their inhabitants, which is of utmost value to the student. Tacitus possessed peculiar facilities for directly obtaining authentic and minute information regarding the actual occurrences in the country of the Britons. Who were the first inhabitants of Britain, whether in- digenous or immigrants, is a question involved in the obscu- rity usual among barbarians. Their temperament of body is various, whence deductions are formed of their different origins. Thus, the ruddy hair and large limbs of the Cale- donians point out a German derivation. The swarthy com- plexion and curled hair of the Silures, together with their situation opposite to Spain, render it probable that a colony of the ancient Iberi possessed themselves of that territory. They who are nearest Gaul resemble the inhabitants of that country ; whether from the duration of hereditary influence, or whether it be that when lands jut forward in opposite directions, climate gives the same condition of body to the in- habitants of both. On a general survey, however, it appears probable that the Gauls originally took possession of the neighbouring coast. The sacred rites and superstitions of these people are discernible among the Britons. The lan- guages of the two nations do not greatly differ. The same audacity in provoking danger, and irresolution in facing it when present, is observable in both. The Britons, however, display more ferocity, not being yet softened by a long peace : for it appears from history that the Gauls were once re- nowned in war, till, losing their valour with their liberty, languor and indolence entered among them. The same change has also taken place among those of the Britons who have been long subdued; but the rest continue such as the Gauls formerly were. Their military strength consists in infantry: some nations also make use of chariots in war ; in the management of which, the most honourable person guides the reins, while his dependents fight from the chariot. The Britons were formerly governed by kings, but at present they are divided in factions and parties among their chiefs; and this want of union for concerting some general plan is the most favour- able circumstance to us, in our designs against so powerful a people. It is seldom that two or three communities concur THE BRITAIN OF THE ANCIENTS 73 in repelling the common danger ; and thus, while they engage singly, they are all subdued. The sky in this country is de- formed by clouds and frequent rains ; but the cold is never extremely rigorous. The length of the days greatly exceeds that in our part of the world. The nights are bright, and, at the extremity of the island, so short, that the close and the return of day is scarcely distinguished by a perceptible interval. It is even asserted that, when clouds do not inter- vene, the splendour of the sun is visible during the whole night, and that it does not appear to rise and set, but to move across. The cause of this is, that the extreme and flat parts of the earth, casting a low shadow, do not throw up the dark- ness, and so night falls beneath the sky and the stars. The soil, though improper for the olive, the vine, and other productions of warmer climates, is fertile, and suitable for corn. Growth is quick, but maturation slow ; both from the same cause, the great humidity of the ground and the atmos- phere. The earth yields gold and silver and other metals, the rewards of victory. The ocean produces pearls, but of a cloudy and livid hue ; which some impute to unskilfulness in the gatherers ; for in the Red Sea the fish are plucked from the rocks alive and vigorous, but in Britain they are collected as the sea throws them up. For my own part, I can more readily conceive that the defect is in the nature of the pearls, than in our avarice. The Britons cheerfully submit to levies, tributes, and the other services of government, if they are not treated in- juriously ; but such treatment they bear with impatience, their subjection only extending to obedience, not to servitude. Accordingly Julius Caesar, the first who entered Britain with an army, although he terrified the inhabitants by a success- ful engagement, and became master of the shore, may be con- sidered rather to have transmitted the discovery than the possession of the country to posterity . . . In the beginning of the next summer, Agricola . . . having sent forwards his fleet to spread its ravages through various parts of the coast, in order to excite an extensive and dubious alarm, he marched with an army equipped for expedition, to which he had joined the bravest of the Britons whose fidelity had been proved by a long allegiance, and arrived at the Grampian hills, where the enemy was already encamped. For the Britons, undismayed by the event of the former action, expecting revenge or slavery, and at length taught that the common danger was to be repelled by union alone, 74 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY had assembled the strength of all their tribes by embassies and confederacies. Upwards of thirty thousand men in arms were now descried ; and the youth, together with those of a hale and vigorous age, renowned in war, and bearing their several honorary decorations, were still flocking in . . . . . . They burst forth into cheerful acclamations, and in- stantly flew to arms. Thus eager and impetuous, he formed them so that the centre was occupied by the auxiliary in- fantry, in number eight thousand, and three thousand horse were spread in the wings. The legions were stationed in the rear, before the intrenchments ; a disposition which would render the victory signally glorious, if it were obtained without the expense of Roman blood; and would ensure support if the rest of the army were repulsed. The British troops, for the greater display of their numbers, and more formidable appearance, were ranged upon the rising grounds, so that the first line stood upon the plain; the rest, as if linked together, rose above one another upon the ascent. The charioteers and horsemen filled the middle of the field with their tumult and careering. Then Agricola, fearing from the superior number of the enemy lest he should be obliged to fight as well on his flanks as in front, extended his ranks; and although this rendered his line of battle less firm, and several of his officers advised him to bring up the legions, yet, filled with hope, and resolute in danger, he dis- missed his horse, and took his station on foot before the colours. At first the action w^as carried on at a distance. The Britons, armed with long swords and short targets, with steadiness and dexterity avoided or struck down our missile weapons, and at the same time poured in a torrent of their own. Agricola then encouraged three Batavian and two Tungrian cohorts to fall in and come to close quarters; a method of fighting familiar to these veteran soldiers, but embarrassing to the enemy from the nature of thefr armour; for the enormous British swords, blunt at the point, are unfit for close grappling, and engaging in a confined space. When the Batavians, therefore, began to redouble their blows, to strike with the bosses of their shields, and mangle the faces of the enemy; and, bearing down all those who resisted them on the plain, were advancing their line up the ascent; the other cohorts, fired with ardour and emulation, joined in the charge and overthrew all who came in their way : and so great was their impetuosity in the pursuit of victory, that they left I THE BRITAIN OF THE ANCIENTS 75 many of their foes half dead or unhurt behind them. In the meantime the troops of cavalry took to flight, and the armed chariots mingled in the engagement of cavalry ; since the men, long keeping their ground with difficulty, were forced along with the bodies of the horses ; and frequently, strag- gling chariots, and affrighted horses without their riders, flying variously as terror impelled them, rushed obliquely athwart or directly through the lines. Those of the Britons who, yet disengaged from the fight, sat on the summits of the hills, and looked with careless contempt on the smallness of our numbers, now began grad- ually to descend; and would have fallen on the rear of the conquering troops, had not Agricola, apprehending this very event, opposed four reserved squadrons of horse to their attack, which, the more furiously they had advanced, drove them back with the greater celerity. Their project was thus turned against themselves ; and the squadrons were ordered to wheel from the front of the battle and fall upon the enemy's rear. A striking and hideous spectacle now appeared on the plain : some pursuing ; some striking ; some making prisoners, whom they slaughtered as others came in their way. Now, as their several dispositions prompted, crowds of armed Britons fled before inferior numbers, or a few, even unarmed, rushed upon their foes, and offered them- selves to a voluntary death. Arms, and carcasses, and mans gled limbs, were promiscuously strewed, and the field was dyed in blood. Even among the vanquished were seen in- stances of rage and valour. When the fugitives approached the woods, they collected, and surrounded the foremost of the pursuers, advancing incautiously and unacquainted with the country ; and had not Agricola, who was everywhere present, caused some strong and lightly-equipped cohorts to encompass the ground, while part of the cavalry dismounted made way through the thickets, and part on horseback scoured the open woods, some disaster would have proceeded from the excess of confidence. But when the enemy saw their pursuers again formed in compact order, they renewed their flight, not in bodies as before, or awaiting for their companions, but scattered and mutually avoided each other ; and thus took their way to the most distant and devious retreats. Night and satiety of slaughter put an end to the pursuit. Of the enemy ten thousand were slain: on our part three hundred and sixty fell ; among whom was Aulus At- ticus, the prsefect of a cohort, who, by his juvenile ardour, 7§ SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY ■ and the fire of his horse, was borne into the midst of the enemy. Success and plunder contributed to render the night joyful to the victors; whilst the Britons wandering and forlorn, amid the promiscuous lamentations of men and women, were dragging along the wounded; calling out to the unhurt; abandoning their habitations, and in the rage of despair setting them on fire; choosing places of concealment, and then deserting them; consulting together, and then separat- ing. Sometimes, on beholding the dear pledges of kindred and affection, they were melted into tenderness, or more fre- quently roused into fury; insomuch that several, according to authentic information, instigated by a savage compassion, laid violent hands upon their own wives and children. On the succeeding day, a vast silence all around, desolate hills, the distant smoke of burning houses, and not a living soul descried by the scouts, displayed more amply the face of victory. After parties had been detached to all quarters without discovering any certain traces of the enemy's flight, or any bodies of them still in arms, as the lateness of the season rendered it impracticable to spread the war through the country, Agricola led his army to the confines of the Horesti. Having received hostages from this people, he ordered the commander of the fleet to sail round the island; for which expedition he was furnished with sufficient force, and preceded by the terror of the Roman name. He himself then led back the cavalry and infantry, marching slowly, that he might impress a deeper awe on the newly conquered nations ; and at length distributed his troops into their winter- quarters. {Life of Agricola, Tacitus, London, 1874, II, p. 355 et seq.) 19. Consequences of the Withdrawal of the Romans Gildas The short treatise De Excidio Britannice was written by Gildas (b. circa 516; d. 570?) about 560 a.d. Gildas cannot therefore be styled a contemporary source for the Romano-British period of English History, yet he is the accepted and sole — though not wholly satisfactory — authority for the period extending from the early part of the fifth century until about 560 a.d. The Romans, therefore, left the country . . . No sooner were they gone, than the Picts and Scots, like worms which in the heat of mid-day come forth from their holes, hastily land again from their canoes, in which they had been carried beyond the Cichican valley, differing one from another in THE BRITAIN OF THE ANCIENTS 77 manners, but inspired with the same avidity for blood, and all more eager to shroud their villainous faces in bushy hair than to cover with decent clothes those parts of their body which required it. Moreover, having heard of the departure of our friends, and their resolution never to return, they seize with greater boldness than before on all the country towards the extreme north as far as the wall. To oppose them there was placed on the heights a garrison equally slow to fight and ill adapted to run away, a useless and panic- struck company, who slumbered away days and nights on their unprofitable watch. Meanwhile the hooked weapons of their enemies were not idle, and our wretched countrymen were dragged from the wall and dashed against the ground. Such premature death, however, painful as it was, saved them from seeing the miserable sufferings of their brothers and children. But why should I say more ? They left their cities, abandoned the protection of the wall, and dispersed them- selves in flight, more desperately than before. The enemy, on the other hand, pursued them with more unrelenting cruelty than before, and butchered our countrymen like sheep, so that their habitations were like those of savage beasts ; for they turned their arms upon each other, and for the sake of a little sustenance, imbrued their hands in the blood of their fellow-countrymen. Thus foreign calamities were augmented by domestic feuds ; so that the whole coun- try was entirely destitute of provisions, save such as could be procured in the chase. Again, therefore, the wretched remnant, sending to ^tius, a powerful Roman citizen, address him as follows: — "To yEtius, now consul for the third time : the groans of the Britons." And again a little further, thus: — "The barbari- ans drive us to the sea; the sea throws us back on the bar- barians: thus two modes of death await us, we are either slain or drowned." The Romans, however, could not assist them . . . (The works of Gildas, ' The History,' §§ 19, 20. In Six Old English Chronicles. London, 1872.) 20. The Power of Britain Revives Bede The distress and despair into which the Britons fell at the withdrawal of the Romans is well shown by the preceding selec- tion from GiLDAS. The condition of depression did not endure. The valour of the native Britons re-asserted itself, and gave to the island a period of prosperity. 78 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY In the meantime, the aforesaid famine distressing the Brit- ons more and more, and leaving to posterity lasting memo- 1 rials of its mischievous effects, obliged many of them to ^ submit themselves to the depredators; though others still held out, confiding in the Divine assistance, when none was to be had from men. These continually made excursions from the mountains, caves, and woods, and, at length, began to inflict severe losses on their enemies, who had been for so many years plundering the country. The Irish robbers thereupon returned home, in order to come again soon after. The Picts, both then and afterwards, remained quiet in the farthest part of the island, save that sometimes they would do some mischief, and carry off booty from the Britons. When, however, the ravages of the enemy at length ceased, the island began to abound with such plenty of grain as had never been known in any age before. (Bede's Ecclesiastical History, book 1, c. 14, ed. J. A. Giles, London, 1894.) CHAPTER IV THE BIRTH OF THE ENGLISH NATION 21. The Ancient Germans Co'sar The famous Commentaries of Cesar contain the first accurate and comprehensive account of the primitive Germans, the an- cestors of the English. In connection with the excerpt given, the Gennania of Tacitus may be read with profit. The Germans differ much from these usages, for they have neither Druids to preside over sacred offices, nor do they pay great regard to sacrifices. They rank in the number of gods those alone whom they behold, and by whose instru- mentality they are obviously benefited, namely, the sun, fire, and the moon ; they have not heard of the other deities even by report. Their whole life is occupied in hunting and in the pursuits of the military art; from childhood they devote themselves to fatigue and hardships. Those who have re- mained chaste for the longest time, receive the greatest com- mendation among their people . . . They do not pay much attention to agriculture, and a large portion of their food consists in milk, cheese, and flesh ; nor has any one a fixed quantity of land or his own individual limts; but the magistrates and the leading men each year apportion to the tribes and families, who have united to- gether, as much land as, and in the place in which, they think proper, and the year after compel them to remove elsewhere. For this enactment they advance many reasons — lest seduced by long-continued custom, they may exchange their ardour in the w^aging of war for agriculture ; lest they may be anx- ious to acquire extensive estates, and the more powerful drive the weaker from their possessions; lest they construct their houses with too great a desire to avoid heat and cold ; lest the desire of wealth spring up, from which cause divisions and discords arise; and that they may keep the common people in a contented state of mind, when each sees his own means placed on an equality with [those of] the most powerful. 79 8o SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY It is the greatest glory to the several States to have as wide deserts as possible around them, their frontiers having been laid waste. They consider this the real evidence of their prowess, that their neighbours shall be driven out of their ■! lands and abandon tTiem, and that no one dare settle near them; at the same time, they think that they shall be on that account the more secure, because they have removed the ap- prehension of a sudden incursion. When a State either repels war waged against it, or wages it against another, magis- trates are chosen to preside over that war with such author- ity, that they have power of life and death. In peace there is no common magistrate, but the chiefs of provinces and can- tons administer justice and determine controversies among their own people. Robberies which are committed beyond the boundaries of each State bear no infamy, and they show that these are committed for the purpose of disciplining their youth and of preventing sloth. And when any of their chiefs has said in an assembly ''that he will be their leader, let those who are willing to follow, give in their names" ; they who approve of both the enterprise and the man arise and promise their assistance and are applauded by the people ; such of them as have not followed him are accounted in the number of deserters and traitors, and confidence in all mat- ters is afterwards refused them. To injure guests they regard as impious ; they defend from wrong those who come to them for any purpose whatever, and esteem them inviol- aWe; to them the houses of all are open and maintenance is freely supplied. (Caesar's Coniinetitaries on the Gallic War, book VI, c. 21, 22, 23., 22. The Coming of Hengist and Horsa Bede The accounts of the coming of the Teutons to the Isle of Thanet are extremely unsatisfactory. Although this is the case, yet to the student of history the beginning of the Teutonic in- vasion of Briton is of such importance as to demand an illustra- tion. The statement of Bede possesses at least an element of probability. They consulted what was to be done, and where they could seek assistance to prevent or repel the cruel and frequent in- cursions of the Northern Nations ; and they all agreed with their King Vortigern to call over to their aid, from the parts beyond the sea, the Saxon nation ... In the year of our Lord 449 . . . then the nations of the Angles, or Saxons, being invited by the aforesaid King, arrived in Britain with three THE 'BIRTH OF THE ENGLISH NATION 81 long ships, and had a place assigned them to reside in by the same king, in the eastern part of the island, that they might thus appear to be fighting for their country, whilst their real intentions were to enslave it. Accordingly they engaged w^ith the enemy, who were come from the north to give battle, and obtained the victory; which, being known at home in their own country, as also the fertility of the country, and the cowardice of the Britons, a more considerable fleet was quickly sent over, bringing a still greater number of men, which, being added to the former, made up an invincible army. The newcomers received of the Britons a place to inhabit, upon condition that they should wage war against their enemies for the peace and security of the country, whilst the Britons agreed to furnish them with pay. Those who came over were of the three most powerful nations of Germany — Saxons, Angles, and Jutes. From the Jutes are descended the people of Kent, and of the Isle of Wight, and those also in the province of the West- Saxons who are to this day called Jutes, seated opposite to the Isle of Wight. From the Saxons, that is, the country which is now called Old Saxony, came the East-Saxons, the South-Saxons, and the West- Saxons. From the Angles, that is, the country which is called Anglia, and which is said, from that time, to remain desert to this day, between the provinces of the Jutes and the Saxons, are descended the East- Angles, the Midland- Angles, Mercians, all the race of the Northumbrians, that is, of those nations that dwell on the north side of the river Huniber, and the other nations of the English. The two first commanders are said to have been Hengist and Horsa. Of whom Horsa, being afterwards slain in battle by the Britons, was buried in the eastern parts of Kent, where a monument, bearing his name, is still in existence. They were the sons of Victgilsus, whose father was Vecta, son of Woden ; from whose stock the royal race of many provinces deduce their original. In a short time, swarms of the aforesaid nations came over into the island, and they began to increase so much, that they became terrible to the natives themselves who had invited them. Then, having on a sudden entered into league with the Picts, whom they had by this time repelled by the force of their arms, they began to turn their weapons against their confederates. At first, they obliged them to furnish a greater quantity of provisions; and, seek- ing an occasion to quarrel, protested, that unless more plenti- ful supplies were brought them, they would break the con- 82 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY federacy, and ravage all the island; nor were they backward in putting their threats in execution. In short, the fire kindled by the hands of these pagans, proved God's just re- venge for the crimes of the people; not unlike that which, being once lighted by the Chaldeans, consumed the walls and city of Jerusalem. For the barbarous conquerors acting here in the same manner, or rather the just Judge ordaining that they should so act, they plundered all the neighbouring cities and coimtry, spread the conflagration from the eastern to the western sea, without any opposition, and covered almost every part of the devoted island. Public as well as private structures were overturned; the priests were everywhere slain before the altars; the prelates and the people, without any respect of persons, were destroyed with fire and sword; nor was there any to bury those who had been thus cruelly slaughtered. Some of the miserable remainder, being taken in the mountains, were butchered in heaps. Others, spent with hunger, came forth and submitted themselves to the enemy for food, being destined to undergo perpetual servi- tude, if they were not killed even upon the spot. Some, with sorrowful hearts, fled beyond the seas. Others, continuing in their own country, led a miserable life among the woods, rocks, and mountains, with scarcely enough food to support life, and expecting every moment to be their last. (Bede's Ecclesiastical History of Englatid, book I, c. i6, Ed. J. A. Giles, London, 1894.) 23. England becomes One Kingdom Anglo-Saxon Chronicle The development of the over-lordship of the kings of Wessex, and the establishment of the dynasty of its ruler Ecgbert as Bret- walders of England, is set forth in the Anglo-Saxon Chronicle. This old chronicle is unique among histories, stretching as it does from the beginning of the Christian era to 11 54 a.d. and being contemporary history from the fifth century. It is be- lieved to have been an annual compilation, made at one of the chief monasteries, and its authority is in the main accepted. There are several manuscript copies extant. Details supplementary to the statements of the chronicle of the progress of the union of England into one kingdom under Ecgbert — from whom every sovereign of England, including the Danish kings and William the Conqueror, has claimed descent — may be found in Bede's Ecclesiastical History. KENT BEGUN A. 455. This year Hengist and Horsa fought against king Vortigern at the place which is called ^gels-threp [Ayles- THE BIRTH OF THE ENGLISH NATION 83 ford] and his brother Horsa was there slain, and after that Hengist obtained the kingdom, and .Esc his son. SUSSEX BEGUN A. 477. This year ^lla, and his three sons, Cymen, and Wlencing, and Cissa, came to the land of Britain with three ships, at a place which is named Cymenes-ora, and there slew many Welsh, and some they drove in flight into the wood that is named Andreds-lea. WESSEX BEGUN A. 495. This year two ealdormen came to Britain, Cerdic and Cynric his son, with five ships, at the place which is called Cerdics-ore, and the same dav they fought against the Welsh. NORTHUMBRIA BEGUN A, 547. This year Ida began to reign, from whom arose the royal race of North-humbria ; and he reigned twelve years, and built Bambrough, which was at first enclosed by a hedge, and afterwards by a wall. SUPREMACY OF NORTHUMBRIA A. 617. This year Ethelfrid the king of the North-hum- brians was slain by Redwald king of the East-Angles, and Edwin the son of Alia succeeded to the kingdom, and subdued all Britain, the Kentish-men alone excepted. And he drove out the ethelings, sons of Ethelfrid ; that is to say, first Ean- frid, Oswald, and Owsy, Oslac, Oswudu, Oslaf, and Offa. SUPREMACY OF MERCIA A. 792. This year Offa, king of the Mercians, commanded the head of king Ethelbert to be struck off. And Osred, who had been king of the Northumbrians, having come home after his exile, was seized and slain on the i8th before the Kalends of October ; and his body lies at Tinemouth. A. 796. This year Kenulf, king of the Mercians, laid waste Kent as far as the marshes, and took Pren their king, and led him bound into Mercia, and let his eyes be picked out and his hands be cut off. SUPREMACY OF WESSEX A. 823. This year there was a battle between the Welsh and the men of Devon at Camelford : and the same year Eg- bert king of the West-Saxons and Bernulf king of the Mer- cians fought at Wilton, and Egbert got the victory, and there was great slaughter made. 84 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY EGBERT OVERLORD OF BRITAIN A. 827. . . . And the same year king Egbert conquered the kingdom of the Mercians, and all that was south of the Hum- ber; and he was the eighth king who was Bretwalda. ■{ (From the An^-lb-Saxou Chronicle, for years named. Ed. Thorpe, Rolls Series.) 24. The Re-Establishment of Christianity Bede Although the venerable Bede (673 to circa 735) was born a century after the landing of St. Augustine, we turn to his Eccle- siastical History as the native source of our knowledge of the regeneration of Christianity in Britain. Bede has been termed the Father of English History. His learning was great, his in- dustry constant, and his means of information at once extensive and uniflue. His History is an indispensable source for the period ol which it treats. Augustine, thus strengthened by the confirmation of the blessed father Gregory, returned to the work of the word of God, with the servants of Christ, and arrived in Britain. The powerful Ethelbert was at that time king of Kent; he had extended his dominions as far as the great river Hum- ber, by which the Southern Saxons are divided from the Northern. On the east of Kent is the large Isle of Thanet containing according to the English way of reckoning, 600 families, divided from the other land by the river Wantsum, which is about three furlongs over, and fordable only in two places, for both ends of it run into the sea. In this island landed the servant of our Lord, Augustine, and his com- panions, being, as is reported, nearly forty men. They had, by order of the blessed Pope Gregory, taken interpreters of the nation of the Franks, and sending to Ethelbert, signified that they were come from Rome, and brought a joyful mes- sage, which most undoubtedly assured to all that took advan- tage of it everlasting joys in heaven, and a kingdom that would never end, with the living and true God. The king having heard this, ordered them to stay in that island where they had landed, and that they should be furnished with all necessaries, till he should consider what to do with them. For he had before heard of the Christian religion, having a Christian wife of the royal family of the Franks, called Bertha; whom he had received from her parents, upon con- dition that she should be permitted to practise her religion with the bishop Luidhard, who was sent with her to preserve THE BIRTH OF THE ENGLISH NATION 85 ker faith. Some days after, the king came into the island, and sitting in the open air, ordered Augustine and his com- panions to be brought into his presence. For he had taken precaution that they should not come to him in any house, lest, according to an ancient superstition, if they practised any magical arts, they might impose upon him, and so get the better of him. But they came furnished with Divine, not with magic virtue, bearing a silver cross for their banner, and the image of our Lord and Saviour painted on a board; and singing the litany, they offered up their prayers to the Lord for the eternal salvation both of themselves and of those to whom they were come. When he had sat down, pursuant to the king's commands, and preached to him and his attend- ants there present, the word of life, the king answered thus : — ''Your words and promises are very fair, but as they are new to us, and of uncertain import, I cannot approve of them so far as to forsake that which I have so long followed with the whole English nation. But because you are come from far into my kingdom, and, as I conceive, are desirous to im- part to us those things which you believe to be true, and most beneficial, we will not molest you, but give you favourable entertainment, and take care to supply you with your neces- sary sustenance ; nor do we forbid you to preach and gain as many as you can to your religion." Accordingly he per- mitted them to reside in the city of Canterbury, which was the metropolis of all his dominions, and, pursuant to his promise, besides allowing them sustenance, did not refuse them liberty to preach. It is reported that, as they drew near to the city, after their manner, with the holy cross, and the image of our sovereign Lord and King, Jesus Christ, they, in concert, sung this litany: "We beseech thee, O Lord, in all thy mercy, that thy anger and wrath be turned away from this city, and from thy holy house, because we have sinned. Hallelujah." There was on the east side of the city, a church dedicated to the honour of St. Martin, built whilst the Romans were still in the island, wherein the queen, who, as has been said before, was a Christian, used to pray. In this they first began to meet, to sing, to pray, to say mass, to preach, and to baptize, till the king, being converted to the faith, allowed them to preach openly, and build or repair churches in all places. 86 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY Nor was it long before he gave his teachers a settled resi- dence in his metropolis of Canterbury, with such possessions of different kinds as were necessary for their subsistence. (Bede's Ecclesiastical History of England, book I, c. 25. Ed. J. A. Giles, London, 1894.) CHAPTER V ANGLO-SAXON LAWS jThe Dooms of the Kings Alfred, Athelstan, and Edgar, 'Ancient Laws and Institutes of England, ed. Thorpe The importance of the Anglo-Saxon laws as sources of Eng- lish History is enhanced by the absence of authentic contem- porary literature. Were it not for those laws, we should know but little of the period. The law of a people is synchronous with the development of that people. Legislation not only indicates the progress of a race, but preserves its characteristics from generation to gen- eration. In the selections given below it is sought to indicate the development of early English law from the crudest customary law to the more scientific enactments of the later Anglo-Saxon kings, and also to give the material which best illustrates the development of fiscal, political, and legal institutions of the early English. 25. Of a Man's Eye-Wound and of Various Other Limbs From the Laws of King Alfred If a man strike out another's eye, let him pay LX. shillings, and VL shillings and VI. pennies and a third part of a penny, as ''bot." If it remain in the head, and he cannot see aught therewith, let one third part of the "bot" be retained. If a man strike off another's nose, let him make "bot" with LX. shillings. If a man strike out another's tooth in the front of his head, let him make "bot" for it with VIII. shillings: if it be the canine tooth, let IV. shillings be paid as "bot." A man's grinder is worth XV. shillings. If a man's tongue be done out of his head by another man's deeds, that shall be as eye-"bot." If a man be wounded on the shoulder so that the joint-oil flow out, let "bot" be made with XXX. shillings. If the thumb be struck off. for that shall be XXX. shillings as "bot." If the nail be struck off, for that shall be V. shillings as "bot." 87 88 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 3oW If the shooting [i.e. fore] finger be struck off, the "bo is XV. shillings; for its nail it is IV. shillings. If a man's thigh be pierced, let XXX. shillings be paid him as "bot"; if it be broken, the "bot" is likewise XXX. shil- lings. If the great toe be struck off, let XX. shillings be paid him as "bot"; if it be the second toe, let XV. shillings be paid as "bot" ; if the middlemost toe be struck off, there shall be IX. shillings as "bot"; if it be the fourth toe, there shall be VI. 'shillings as "bot"; if the little toe be struck off, let V. shil- lings be paid him. If a man's arm, with the hand, be entirely cut off before the elbow, let "bot" be made for it with LXXX. shillings. For every wound before the hair, and before the sleeve, and beneath the knee, the "bot" is two parts more. 26. Of Lordless Men From the Laws of King Athelstan And we have ordained : respecting those lordless men of whom no law can be got, that the kindred be commanded that they domicile him to folk-right, and find him a lord in the folk-mote; and if they then will not or cannot produce him at the term, then be he thenceforth a "flyma," and let him slay him for a thief who can come at him : and whoever after that shall harbour him, let him pay for him according to his "wer," or by it clear himself. 27. Of Landless Men From the Laivs of Khig Athelstan And we have ordained: if any landless man should become a follower in another shire, and again seek his kinsfolk ; that he may harbour him on this condition, that he present him to folkright if he there do any wrong, or make "bot" for him. 28. Of the Doom concerning Hot Iron and Water Fro7n the Laws 0/ King Athelstan And concerning the ordeal we enjoin by command of God, and of the archbishop, and of all bishops : that no man come within the church after the fire is borne in with which the ordeal shall be heated, except the mass-priest, and him who shall go thereto : and let there be measured nine feet from the stake to the mark, by the man's feet who goes thereto. But if it be water, let it be heated till it low to boiling. And be the kettle of iron or of brass, of lead or of clay. And if it be a single accusation, let the hand dive after the stone up ■ ANGLO-SAXON LAWS 89 to the wrist; and if it be threefold, up to the elbow. And when the ordeal is ready, then let two men go in of either side; and be they agreed that it is so hot as we before have said. And let go in an equal number, of men of either side, and stand on both sides of the ordeal, along the church ; and let these all be fasting, and abstinent from their wives on that night ; and let the mass-priest sprinkle holy water over them all, and let each of them taste of the holy water, and give them all the book and the image of Christ's rood to kiss : and let no man mend the fire any longer when the hallowing is begun; but let the iron lie upon the hot embers till the last collect : after that, let it be laid upon the "stapela" ; and let there be no other speaking within, except that they earnestly pray to Almighty God that he make manifest what is sooth- est. And let him go thereto ; and let his hand be enveloped, and be it postponed till after the third day, whether it be foul or clean within the envelope. And he who shall break this law, be the ordeal with respect to him void, and let him pay to the king CXX. shillings as *'wite." "Wal-reaf is a ''nithing's" deed: if any one desire to deny it, let him do so with eight and forty full-born thanes. 29. Of Wer-Gilds From the Laws of King Atliehtan 1. The North people's king's ''gild" is XXX. thousand "thrymsas" ; fifteen thousand "thrymsas" are for the "wer- gild," and X\^. thousand for the "cyne-dom." The *Sver" belongs to the kindred, and the "cyne-bot'' to the people. 2. An archbishop's and an atheling's "wer-gild" is XV. thousand "thrymsas." 3. A bishop's and an "ealdorman's," VIII. thousand "thrymsas." 4. A "hold's" and a king's high-reeve's, IV. thousand "thrymsas." 5. A mass-thane's and a secular thane's, II. thousand "thrymsas.'' 6. A "ceorl's" "wer-gild" is CC. and LXVI. "thrymsas," that is CC. shillings by Mercian law. 7. And if a "Wilisc"-man thrive so that he have a hide of land, and can bring forth the king's "gafol," then is his "wer- gild" CXX. shillings. And if he thrive not except to half a hide, then let his "wer" be LXXX. shillings. 8. And if he have not any land, and yet be free, let him be paid for with LXX. shillings. 96 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 9. And if a "ceorlish" man thrive, so that he have V. hides of land for the king's "ut-ware," and any one slay him, let him be paid for with two thousand "thrymsas." 10. And though he thrive, so that he have a helm and coat of mail, and a sword ornamented with gold, if he have not that land, he is nevertheless a "ceorl." 11. And if his son and his son's son so thrive, that they have so much land ; afterwards, the offspring shall be of "gesithcund" race, at two thousand ["thrymsas"]. 12. And if they have not that, nor to that can thrive, let them be paid for as "ceorlish." 30. Of People's Ranks and Law From the Laws of King Athelstan 1. It was whilom, in the laws of the English, that people and law went by ranks, and then were the counsellors of the nation of worship worthy, each according to his condition, "eorl" and '"ceorl," "thegen" and "theoden." 2. And if a "ceorl" thrived, so that he had fully five hides of his own land, church and kitchen, bell-house and "burh"- gate-seat, and special duty in the king's hall, then was he thenceforth of thane-right worthy, 3. And if a thane thrived, so that he served the king, and on his summons, rode among his household; if he then had a thane who him followed, who to the king's "ut-ware," five hides had, and in the king's hall served his lord, and thrice with his errand went to the king; he might thenceforth, with his "fore-oath," his lord represent, at various needs, and his plaint lawfully conduct, wheresoever he ought. 4. And he who so prosperous a vicegerent had not, swore for himself according to his right, or it forfeited. 5. And if a thane thrived, so that he became an "eorl," then was he thenceforth of "eorl"-right worthy. 6. And if a merchant thrived, so that he fared thrice over the wide sea by his own means; then was he thenceforth of thane-right worthy. 7. And if there a scholar were, who through learning thrived, so that he had holy orders, and served Christ; then was he thenceforth of rank and power so much worthy, as then to those orders rightfully belonged, if he himself con- ducted so as he should; unless he should misdo, so that he those orders' ministry might not minister. 8. And if it happened, that any one a man in orders, or a ANGLO-SAXON LAWS 91 stranger, anywhere injured, by word or work; then pertained it to king and to the bishop, that they that should make good, as they soonest might. 31. This is the Ordinance how the Hundred shall be Held From the Laws of King Edgar First, that they meet always within four weeks : and that every man do justice to another. 2. That a thief shall be pursued . . . If there be present need, let it be made known to the hundred-man, and let him [make it known] to the tithing- men ; and let them all go forth to where God may direct them to go: let them do justice on the thief, as it was formerly the enactment of Edmund. And let the ''ceap-gild" be paid to him who owns the cattle, and the rest be divided into two ; half to the hundred, half to the lord, excepting men; and let the lord take possession of the men. 3. And the man who neglects this, and denies the doom of the hundred, and the same be afterwards proved against him ; let him pay to the hundred XXX. pence, and for the second time sixty pence; half to the hundred, half to the lord. If he do so a third time, let him pay half a pound: for the fourth time, let him forfeit all that he owns, and be an outlaw, un- less the king allow him to remain in the country. 4. And we have ordained concerning unknown cattle ; that no one should possess it without the testimonies of the men of the hundred, or of the tithing-man ; and that he be a well trusty man : and, unless he have either of these, let no vouch- ing to warranty be allowed him. 5. We have also ordained : if the hundred pursue a track into another hundred, that notice be given to the hundred- man, and that he then go with them. If he neglect this, let him pay thirty shillings to the king. 6. If any one flinch from justice and escape, let him who held him to answer for the offence pay the ''angylde." And if any one accuse him of having sent him away, let him clear himself, as it is established in the country. 7. In the hundred, as in any other "gemdt," we ordain: that folk-right be pronounced in every suit, and that a term be fixed when it shall be fulfilled. And he who shall break that term, unless it be his lord's decree, let him make "hot" with XXX. shillings, and, on the day fixed, fulfil that which he ought to have done before. 92 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 8. An oxes bell, and a dog's collar, and a blast-horn ; either of these three shall be worth a shilling, and each is reckone.d an informer. 9. Let the iron that is for the threefold ordeal weigh III pounds; and for the single, one pound. 32. Here is the Ordinance of King Edgar From the Laws of King Edgar This is the ordinance that King Edgar, with the counsel of his "witan," ordained, in praise of God, and in honour to himself, and for the behoof of all his people. These then are first: that God's churches be entitled to every right; and that every tithe be rendered to the old minster to which the district belongs ; and that be then so paid, both from a thane's "inland," and from "geneat-land," so as the plough traverses it. Of Church-Scots But if there be any thane who on his "boc-land" has a church, at which there is a burial-place; let him give the third part of his own tithe to his church. If any one have a church at which there is not a burial-place, then, of the nine parts, let him give to his priest what he will ; and let every church-scot go to the old minster, according to every free hearth ; and let plough-alms be paid, when it shall be fifteen days over Easter. 33. Of Tithes Front the Laws of King Edgar And let a tithe of every young be paid by Pentecost; and of the fruits of the earth by the equinox ; and every church- scot by Martinmass, on peril of the full "wite" which the doom-book specifies : and if any one will not then pay the tithe, as we have ordained, let the king's reeve go thereto, and the bishop's, and the mass-priest of the minster, and take by force a tenth part for the minster to which it is due ; and assign to him the ninth part; and let the eight parts be di- vided into two, and let the land-lord take possession of half, half the bishop ; be it a king's man, be it a thane's. 34. Of the Hearth-Penny From the L aws of King Edgar And let every hearth-penny be rendered by St. Peter's mass-day : and he who shall not have paid it by that term, let him be led to Rome, and in addition thereto [pay] XXX. ANGLO-SAXON LAWS 93 pence, and bring then a certificate thence, that he has there rendered so much ; and when he comes home, pay to the king a hundred and twenty shillings. And if again he will not pay it, let him be led again to Rome, and with another such "bot" ; and when he comes home again, pay to the king two hundred shillings. At the third time, if he then yet will not, let him forfeit all that he owns. 35. Of Festivals and Fasts From the Laws of King Edgar And let the festivals of every Sunday be kept, from noon- tide of the Saturday, till the dawn of Monday, on peril of the "wite" which the doom-book specifies; and every other mass- day, as it may be commanded: and let every ordained fast be kept with every earnestness ; and every Friday's fast, unless it be a festival : and let soul-scot be paid for every Christian man to the minster to which it is due; and let every church- "grith" stand as it has best stood. 36. Secular Ordinance From the Laws of King Edgar Now this is the secular ordinance which I will that it be held. This then is first what I will : that every man be worthy of "folk-right," as well poor as rich : and that right- eous dooms be judged to him ; and let there be such remission in the "bot" as may be becoming before God and tolerable before the world. IN CASE ANY ONE APPLY TO THE KING: AND OF TH^ "wEr"' And let no man apply to the king, in any suit, unless he at home may not be worthy of law, or cannot obtain law. If the law be too heavy, let him seek a mitigation of it from the king: and, for any "b5t"-worthy crime, let no man forfeit more than his "v/er." OF UNRIGHTEOUS JUDGMENT And let the judge who judges wrong to another pay to the king one hundred and twenty shillings as "bot" ; unless he dare to prove on oath, that he knew it not more rightly; and let him forfeit forever his thaneship; unless he will buy it of the king, so as he is willing to allow him: and let the bishop of the shire exact the "bot" into the king's hands. IN CASE ANY ONE ACCUSE ANOTHER And he who shall accuse another wrongfully, so that he, either in money or prosperity, be the worse ; if then the other 94 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY can disprove that which any one would charge to him ; be he liable in his tongue; unless he make him compensation with his "wer." OF GEMOTS And let the hundred-"gemot" be attended as it was before fixed ; and thrice in the year let a "burh-gemot" be held ; and twice, a shire-"gem6t" ; and let there be present the bishop of the shire and the "ealdorman," and there both expound the law of God as the secular law. OF "borhs" And let every man so order that he have a "borh" ; and let the "borh" then bring and hold him to every justice; and if any one then do wrong and run away, let the "borh" bear that which he ought to bear. But if it be a thief, and if he can get hold of him within twelve months ; let him deliver him up to justice, and let be rendered to him what he before had paid. OF "tiht-bysig" persons And he who is "tyht-bysig," and is untrue to the people, and has shunned these "gemots" thrice ; then let there be chosen from the "gemot" those who shall ride to him, and then let him yet find a "borh" if he can : but if he cannot, let them seize him as they can, whether alive or dead; and take all that he owns ; and let the accuser be paid an "angylde" for his "ceap-gild" : and let the lord moreover take half, half the hundred; and if either a kinsman or a stranger refuse the riding, let him pay to the king a hundred and twenty shil- lings : and let a notorious thief seek whatever he may seek, or he who is found plotting against his lord, so that they never seek life; unless the king will grant them salvation of life. OF MONEY AND MEASURES And let one money pass thoughout the king's dominion; and that let no man refuse : and let one measure and one weight pass ; such as is observed at London and at Win- chester; and let the wey of wool go for CXXX. pence; and let no man sell it cheaper; and if any one sell it cheaper, either publicly or privately, let each pay XL. shillings to the king, both him who sells it, and him v/ho buys it. This then is what I will : that every man be under "borh," both within the "burhs," and without the "burhs"; and let witness be appointed to every "burh" and to every hundred. ANGLO-SAXON LAWS 95 To every "burh," let there be cliosen XXXIII. as witness. To small "burhs," and in every hundred, XII.; unless ye desire more. And let every man, with their witness, buy and sell every of the chattels that he may buy or sell, either in a "burh" or in a wapentake; and let every of them, when he is first chosen as witness, give the oath that he never, neither for money, nor for love, nor for fear, will deny any of those things of which he was witness, nor declare any other thing in witness, save that alone which he saw or heard: and of such sworn men, let there be at every bargain two or three as witness. CHAPTER VI THE DANES IN ENGLAND 37. The Danish Invasions Anglo-Saxon Chronicle The Danish invasions of England extended from 787 through three centuries. During this period there was no decade free from harrying and slaughter. Ireland and Scotland did not escape the ravagers, but England had to bear the brunt of the struggle. The Anglo-Saxon Chronicle tells us of the first com- ing of the Danes in 787, and then marks the progress of the Danish power until this culminated in the reign of Canute. The selections given, from the Chronicle and from Asser's Life of Alfred, note but a few of the salient points in the history of the establishment of the Danish power. The works cited should be consulted for details. A. 787. This year king Bertric took to wife Eadburga, king Of fa's daughter; and in his day first came three ships of Northmen, out of Hseretha-land [Denmark]. And then the reve rode to the place, and would have driven them to the king's town, because he knew not who they were : and they there slew him. These were the first ships of Danishmen which sought the land of the English nation. A. 855. This year the heathen men, for the first time, remained over winter in Sheppey : . . . A. 878. This year, during midwinter, after twelfth night, the army stole away to Chippenham, and overran the land of the West-Saxons, and sat down there; and many of the people they drove beyond sea, and of the remainder the greater part they subdued and forced to obe)^ them, except king Alfred: and he, with a small band, with difficulty re- treated to the woods and to the fastnesses of the moors. And the same winter the brother of Hingwar and of Halfdene came with twenty-three ships to Devonshire in Wessex; and he was there slain, and with him eight hundred and forty 96 I THE DANES IN ENGLAND 97 men of his army: and there was taken the war-flag which they called the Raven. After this, at Easter king Alfred with a small band constructed a fortress at Athelney; and from this fortress, w^ith that part of the men of Somerset which was nearest to it, from time to time they fought against the army. Then in the seventh week after Easter he rode to Brixton, on the east side of Selwood; and there came to meet him all the men of Somerset, and the men of Wiltshire, and that portion of the men of Hampshire which was on this side of the sea ; and they were joyful at his presence. On the following day he went from that station to Iglea [Iley], and on the day after this to Heddington, and there fought against the whole army, put them to flight, and pursued them as far as their fortress : and there he sat down fourteen days. And then the army delivered to him hostages, with many oaths, that they would leave his kingdom, and also promised him that their king should receive baptism : and this they accordingly fulfilled. And about three weeks after this king Gothrun came to him, with some thirty men who were of the most distinguished in the army, at Aller, which is near Athelney : and the king was his godfather at baptism ; and his chrism-loosing was at Wedmore : and he was twelve days with the king; and he greatly honoured him and his companions with gifts. {Anglo-Saxon Chronicle, for years given, ed. cited.) 38. Alfred at Athelney Asser ASSER, a monk of St. David's, afterward Bishop of Sherborne, was an adviser and intimate of King Alfred. He wrote a Life of the king, which, though containing few facts not also to be found in the Anglo-Saxon Chronicle, is of interest and value. The following selection graphically describes the period of discour- agement which formed the prelude to the victories of the greatest of the early English kings, as well as the battle in which the power of the Danes was overthrown. The same year, after Easter, king Alfred, with a few fol- lowers, made for himself a stronghold in a place called Athel- ney, and from thence sallied with his vassals and the nobles of Somersetshire, to make frequent assaults upon the pagans. Also, in the seventh week after Easter, he rode to the stone of Egbert, w-hich is in the eastern part of the wood which is called Selwood, which means in Latin Silva Magna, the Great Wood, but in British Coit-mawr. Here he was met by all the neighbouring folk of Somersetshire, and Wiltshire, and Hampshire, who had not, for fear of the pagans, fled 98 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY beyond the sea ; and when they saw the king alive after such great tribulation, they received him, as he deserved, with joy and acclamations, and encamped there for one night. When the following day dawned, the king struck his camp, and went to Okely, where he encamped for one night. The next morn- ing he removed to Edington, and there fought bravely and perseveringly against all the army of the pagans, whom, with the divine help, he defeated with great slaughter, and pur- sued them flying to their fortification. Immediately he slew all the men, and carried off all the booty that he could find without the fortress, which he immediately laid siege to with all his army; and when he had been there fourteen days, the pagans, driven by famine, cold, fear, and last of all by de- spair, asked for peace, on the condition that they should give the king as many hostages as he pleased, but should receive none of him in return, in which form they had never before made a treaty with any one. The king, hearing that, took pity on them, and received such hostages as he chose; after which the pagans swore, moreover, that they would imme- diately leave the kingdom; and their king, Gothrnn, promised to embrace Christianity, and receive baptism at king Alfred's hands. All of which articles he and his men fulfilled as they had promised. For after seven weeks Gothrun, king of the pagans, with thirty men chosen from the army, came to Al- fred at a place called Aller, near Athelney, and there king Alfred, receiving him as his son by adoption, raised him up from the holy laver of baptism on the eighth day, at a royal villa named Wedmore, where the holy chrism was poured upon him. After his baptism he remained twelve nights with the king, who, with all his nobles, gave him many fine houses. (Asser's Annals of the Reign of Alfred the Great, ed. J. A. Giles, in Six Old English Chronicles, London, 1872.) 39. Alfred and Guthrum's Peace Front the Laws of King Alfred After the defeat of Guthrum and the Danes in 878, a peace was sworn between the rival forces. This was recorded in the treaty of Chippenham — sometimes incorrectly called the Peace of Wedmore. By this treaty, England was divided between Alfred and Guthrum, and laws were provided for the government of the respective portions. This is the peace that king Alfred, and king Guthrum, and the "witan" of all the English nation, and all the people that are in East-Anglia, have all ordained and with oaths con- THE DANES IN ENGLAND 99 firmed, for themselves and for their descendants, as well for born as for unborn, who reck of God's mercy or of ours. 1. First, concerning- our land-boundaries: up on the Thames, and then up on the Lea, and along the Lea unto its source, then right to Bedford, then up the Ouse unto Wat- ling-Street. 2. Then is this: if a man be slain, we estimate all equally dear, English and Danish, at VIIL half-marks of pure gold ; except the "ceorl" who resides on "gafol-land," and their "liesings" : they also are equally dear, either at CC. shillings. 3. And if a king's thane be accused of man-slaying, if he dare to clear himself, let him do that with XIL king's thanes. If any one accuse that man who is of less degree than the king's thane, let him clear himself with XL of his equals, and with one king's thane. And so in every suit which may be for more than IV. "mancuses." And if he dare not, let him pay for it three-fold, as it may be valued. OF WARRANTORS 4. And that every man know his warrantor for men, and for horses, and for oxen. 5. And we all ordained on that day that the oaths were sworn, that neither bond nor free might go to the host with- out leave, no more than any of them to us. But if it happen, that from necessity any of them will have traffic with us, or we with them, with cattle and with goods, that is to be al- lowed in this wise; that hostages be given in pledge of peace, and as evidence whereby it may be known that the party has a clean back. {Aftcient Laws and histiiiites of England, ed. cited. 40. The Second Period of Danish Invasion Anglo-Saxon Chronicle For many years after the peace between Alfred and Guthrum the Danes refrained from attacking England; this not so much because of the treaty, as because of the strong kings who suc- ceeded Alfred. But with ^thelred the Redeless came the second series of invasions. These led to the overthrow of the English kings and the establishment of Canute upon the throne. A. 980. In this year abbat Ethelgar was consecrated bishop on the 6th before the Nones of May, to the episcopal seat at Selsey. And in the same year was Southampton ravaged by a ship-force, and the most part of the townsmen sfain, and led captive. And that same year was Thanet-land ravaged I. of p. 160 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY by a ship-force, and the most part of the townsmen slain, and led captive. And that same year was Legecester-shire [Chester] ravaged by a northern ship-force. In this year St. Dunstan and Alfere the ealdorman fetched the holy king's body, St. Edward's, from Wareham, and bore it with much solemnity to Shaftsbury. A. 991. This year was Ipswich ravaged; and after that, very shortly, was Britnoth the ealdorman slain at Maldon. And in that year it was decreed that tribute, for the first time, should be given to the Danish-men, on account of the great terror which they caused by the sea-coast; that was at first ten thousand pounds : this counsel was first given by arch- bishop Siric. A. 994. In this year came Olave and Sweyn to London, on the nativity of St. Mary, with ninety-four ships ; and they then continued fighting stoutly against the city, and would also have set fire to it. But they there sustained more harm and evil than they ever supposed that any citizens would be able to do unto them. But the holy mother of God, on that day, shewed her mercy to the citizens and delivered them from their foes. And they then went- thence, and wrought the utmost evil that ever any army could do, by burning, and plundering, and by man-slaying, both by the sea-coast and among the East-Saxons, and in the land of Kent, and in Sus- sex, and in Hampshire. And at last they took to themselves horses, and rode as far as they w^ould, and continued doing unspeakable evil. Then the king and his witan decreed that they should be sent to, and promised tribute and food, on con- dition that they should cease from their plundering: w^hich terms they accepted. And then all the army came to South- ampton, and there took up their winter-quarters : and there they were victualled from all the realm of the West-Saxons, and they were paid sixteen thousand pounds of money. Then the king sent bishop Elphege [IL] and Ethelwerd the ealdor- man after king Olave, and the while, hostages were delivered to the ships; and they then led Olave with much worship to the king at Andover. And king Ethelred received him at the bishop's hands, and royally gifted him. And then Olave made a covenant with him, even as he also fulfilled, that he never again would come hostilely to the English nation. A. 1002. . . . And in that year the king ordered all the THE DANES IN ENGLAND loi Danish-men who were in England to be slain. This was done on St. Brice's mass-day . . . A. loii. In this year sent the king and his witan to the army, and desired peace, and promised them tribute and food, on condition that they would cease from their plundering. They had then overrun, ist, East-Anglia, and 2d, Essex, and 3d, Middlesex, and 4th, Oxfordshire, and 5th, Cambridge- shire, and 6th, Hertfordshire, and 7th, Buckinghamshire, and 8th, Bedfordshire, and 9th, half of Huntingdonshire, and loth, much of Northamptonshire; and south of Thames, all Kent, and Sussex, and Hastings, and Surry, and Berkshire, and Hampshire, and much of Wiltshire. All these misfor- tunes befel us through unwise counsel, that they were not in time offered tribute, or fought against ; but when they had done the most evil, then peace and truce were made with them. And nevertheless, for all the truce and tribute, they went everywhere in bands, and plundered our miserable people, and robbed and slew them . . . A. 1016. . . . The army then went again up into Essex, and passed into Mercia, and destroyed whatever it over-ran. When the king learned that the army was upward, then assembled he, for the fifth time, all the English nation, and followed after them, and overtook them in Essex, at the down which is called Assingdon : and there they strenuously joined battle. Then did Edric the ealdorman, as he had oft before done, begin the flight first with the Maisevethians, and so betrayed his royal lord and the whole people of the English race. There Canute had the victory; and all the English nation fought against him . . . A. 1017. In this year king Canute obtained the whole realm of the English race, and divided it into four parts: Wessex to himself, and East-Anglia to Thurkill, and Mercia to Edric, and North-humbria to Eric. A. 1017. This year Canute was chosen king. {Afi£-/o-Saxon Chronicle for years given, ed. dited.) 41. The Laws of Canute Ancient Laws and Institutes of England The examples of the laws of the Danish kings of England prove, among other things, the continuity of the legal principles developed in the days of the Anglo-Saxon kings. They also demonstrate the justice and equity of Canute, a king whose great- ness endeared him, despite his alien birth, to that heterogeneous mass which was. called the English People. I02 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY THAT EVERY MAN SHALL BE IN A TITHING And we will, that every freeman be brought into a hundred, and into a tithing, who wishes to be entitled to "lad" or to "wer," in case any one shall slay him after he is XII. years of age; or let him not afterwards be entitled to any free rights, be he "heorth-foest," be he follower. And that every one be brought into a hundred and in "borh" ; and let the "borh" hold and lead him to every plea. Many a powerful man will, if he can and may, defend his man in whatever way it seems to him that he may the more easily defend him; whether as a freeman or a "theow." But we will not allow that injustice. SECULAR DOOMS Cap. 17. And let no one apply to the king unless he may not be entitled to any justice within his hundred; and let the hundred gemot be applied to under penalty or the "wite," so as it is right to apply to it. Cap. 18. And thrice a year let there be a "burh-gemot," and twice a "shire-gemot" ; under penalty of the "wite," as is right, unless there be need oftener. And let there be present the bishop of the shire and the ealdorman, and there let both expound as well the law of God as the secular law. Cap. 19. And let no man take any distress either in the shire or out of the shire, before he has twice demanded his right in the hundred. If at the third time he have no jus- tice, then let him go at the fourth time to the "shire-gemot," and let the shire appoint him a fourth term. If that then fail, let him take leave either from hence or from thence, that he may seize his own. Cap. 20. And we will that every free man be brought into a hundred and a tithing . . . And that every one be brought into a hundred and in "borh"; and let the "borh" hold and lead him to every plea . . . Cap. 21. And we will that every man above XII. years make oath that he will neither be a thief nor cognisant of theft. Cap. 70. This then is the alleviation which it is my will to secure to all the people of that which they before this were too much oppressed with. That then is first; that I com- mand all my reeves that they justly provide on my own, and maintain me therewith ; and that no man need give them anything as "feorm-fultum" unless he himself be willing. And if any one after that demand a "wite," let him be liable in his "wer" to the king. THE DANES IN ENGLAND 103 Cap. 71. And if any one depart this life intestate, be it through his neglect, be it through sudden death ; then let not the lord draw more from his property than his lawful heriot. And according to his direction, let the property be distributed very justly to the wife and children and relations, to every one according to the degree that belongs to him. Cap. 72. And let the heriots be as it is fitting to the degree. An elor's such as thereto belongs, that is, eight horses, four saddled and four unsaddled, and four helmets and four coats of mail, and eight spears and as many shields, and four swords and 200 mancuses of gold. And after that, a king's thegn's, of those who are nearest to him ; four horses, two saddled and two unsaddled, and two swords and four spears and as many shields, and a helmet and a coat of mail and fifty mancuses of gold. And of the medial thegns, a horse and his trappings and his arms; or his "healsfang" in Wessex ; and in Mercia two pounds ; and in East Anglia two pounds. And the heriot of a king's thegn among the Danes, who has his soken, four pounds. And if he have further relation to the king, two horses, one saddled and the other unsaddled, and one sword and two spears and two shields and fifty mancuses of gold ; and he who is of less means, two pounds. Cap. 81. And I will that every man be entitled to his hunt- ing in wood and in field, on his own possession. And let every one forego my hunting: take notice where I will have it untrespassed on, under penalty of the full "wite." Cap. 83. And I will that every man be entitled to "grith" to the "gemot" and from the "gemot," except he be a noto- rious miei. {Ancient Laws and Institutes of England, ed. Thorpe.) 42. Charter of Canute York Gospel Book The Charter of Liberties given by Canute should be studied in connection with those later charters which render notable the reigns of Henry I. and John. The even-handed justice assured to all men, both English and Danes, finds a parallel in the laws enforced by William the Conqueror. Canute, the king, greets his archbishops and his suffragan bishops, and Thurcyl the earl, and all his earls and all his people, twelfhynde and twyhynde, clerk and lay, in England, friendly ; and I do you to wit that I will be kind lord and un- failing to God's rights and to right secular law. I took to my remembrance the writing and the word that archbishop Lyfing brought me from Rome from the Pope, that I should 104 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY everywhere maintain the glory of God and put down wrong, and work full peace by the might that God would give me. Now I shrank not from my cost while hostility was in hand among you; now I with God's help took away at my cost that of which men told me that it threatened me with more harm than well pleased us ; and then went I myself into Den- mark, with the men that went with me, from whence most harm came to you; and that have I with God's help taken precautions for that never henceforth should enmity come to you from thence whilst ye men rightly hold, and my life lasteth. Now I thank God Almighty for his help and mercy, that I have so allayed the great harms that threatened us, that we need expect from thence no harm, but to full peace and to deliverance if need be. Now I will that we all rever- ently thank God Almighty for the mercy that he has done for our help. Now I beseech my archbishops and all my suf- fragan bishops that they all be attentive about God's right, every one in his district which is committed to him; and also my ealdormen I command that they help the bishops to God's right and to my royal authority and to the behoof of all the people. If any be so bold, clerk or lay, Dane or Eng- lish, as to go against God's law and against my royal author- ity, or against secular law, and be unwilling to make amends, and to alter according to my bishop's teaching, then I pray Thurcyl my earl, and also command him, that he bend that unrighteous one to right if he can ; if he cannot, then will I with the strength of us both that he destroy him in the land or drive him from out of the land, be he better, be he worse ; and also I command all my reeves, by my friendship and by all that they own, and by their own life, that they everywhere hold my people rightly and do judge right judgments by the shire bishop's witness, and do such mercy therein as the shire bishop thinks right, as a man may attain to; and if any har- bour a thief, or neglect the pursuit, be he answerable to me as the thief should, unless he can clear himself towards me with full purgation. And I will that all people, clerk and lay, hold fast Edgar's law, which all men have chosen and sworn to at Oxford, for that all the bishops say that it right deeply offends God, that a man break oaths or pledges; and like- wise they further teach us that we should with all might and main, alike seek, love, and worship the eternal merciful God, and eschew all unrighteousness ; that is, slaying of kinsmen, and murder, and perjury, and witchcraft and enchantment, and adultery, and incest; and also they charge in the name of THE DANES IN ENGLAND 105 God Almighty, and of all his saints, that no man be so bold as to marry a hallowed nun or mynchen ; and if any have done so, be he outlaw towards God, and excommunicated from all Christendom, and answerable to the king in all he has, unless he quickly alter and deeply make amends to God; and further still, we admonish that men keep Sunday's festi- val with all their might, and observe it from Saturday's noon to Monday's dawning; and no man be so bold that he either go to market or seek any court on that holy day ; and all men, poor and rich, seek their church, and ask forgiveness for their sins, and keep earnestly every ordained fast, and earn- estly honour the saints that the mass priests shall bid us, that we may altogether through the mercy of the everlasting God and the intercession of his saints come to the joy of the king- dom of heaven, and dwell with him who liveth and reigneth for ever without end. Amen. {Select Charters and other Illustrations of English Constitutional History, /rom the Earliest Times to the Reign of Edward I., ed. William Stubbs, Oxford, 1870.) 43. Letter of Canute to his People Florence of U 'orcester The letter of Canute to his people after his return from Rome is of great value because of the insight into the king's character given in its quaint phraseology. Canute, king of all England, and of Denmark, Norway, and part of Sweden, to Ethelnote, metropolitan, and Alfric, arch- bishop of York, and to all the bishops and prelates, and to the whole nation of the English, both the nobles and the com- mons, greeting : — I notify to you that I have lately taken a journey to Rome, to pray for the forgiveness of my sins, and for the welfare of my dominions, and the people under my rule. I had long since vowed this journey to God, but I have been hitherto prevented from accomplishing it by the affairs of my king- dom and other causes of impediment. I now return most humble thanks to my God Almighty for suffering me in my lifetime to visit the sanctuary of his apostles, SS. Peter and Paul, and all others which I could find either within or with- out the city of Rome, and there in person reverentially wor- ship according to my desire. I have performed this chiefly, because I have learnt from wise men that St. Peter the apostle has received from God great power in binding and in loosing, and carries the keys of the kingdom of heaven ; and therefore I esteemed it very profitable to seek his special patronage with the Lord. io6 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY Be it known to you that, at the celebration of Easter, a great assembly of nobles was present with our lord, the pope John, and Conrad the emperor; that is to say, all the princes of the nations from Mount Garganus to the neighbouring sea. All these received me with honour and presented me with magnificent gifts; but more especially was I honoured by the emperor with various gifts and valuable presents, both in gold and silver vessels, and in palls and very costly robes. I spoke with the emperor himself, and the lord pope, and the princes who were there, in regard to the wants of my people, English as well as Danes; that there should be granted to them more equal justice and greater security in their jour- neys to Rome, and that they should not be hindered by so many barriers on the road, nor harassed by unjust tolls. The emperor assented to my demands, as well as king Rodolph, in whose dominions these barriers chiefly stand; and all the princes made edicts that my people, the merchants as well as those who go to pay their devotions, shall pass to and fro in their journeys to Rome in peace, and under the security of just laws, free from all molestation of the guards of barriers or the receivers of tolls. I made further complaint to my lord the pope, and expressed my high displeasure, that my archbishops are sorely aggrieved by the demand of immense sums of money, when, according to custom, they resort to the apostolical see to obtain the pallium ; and it is decreed that it shall no longer be done. All things, therefore, which I re- quested for the good of my people from my lord the pope, and the emperor, and king Rodolph, and the other princes through whose territories our road to Rome lies, they have most freely granted, and even ratified their concessions by oath ; to which four archbishops, twenty bishops, and an innumerable multi- tude of dukes and nobles who were there present, are wit- nesses. Wherefore I return most hearty thanks to Almighty God for my having successfully accomplished all that I had desired, as I had resolved in my mind, and having satisfied my wishes to the fullest extent. Be it known therefore to all of you, that I have humbly vowed to the Almighty God himself henceforward to amend my life in all respects, and to rule the kingdom and the people subject to me with justice and clemency, giving equitable judgments in all matters; and if, through the intemperance of youth or negligence, I have hitherto exceeded the bounds of justice in any of my acts, I intend by God's aid to make an entire change for the better. I therefore adjure and com- THE DANES IN ENGLAND 107 mand my counsellors to whom I have entrusted the affairs of my kingdom, that henceforth they neither commit themselves, nor suffer to prevail, any sort of injustice throughout my dominions, either from fear of me, or from favour to any powerful person. I also command all sheriffs and magis- trates throughout my whole kingdom, as they tender my regard and their own safety, that they use no unjust violence to any man, rich or poor, but that all, high and low, rich or poor, shall enjoy alike impartial law; from which they are never to deviate, either on account of royal favour, respect of person in the great, or for the sake of amassing money wrongfully, for I have no need to accumulate wealth by iniquitous exactions. I wish you further to know that, returning by the way I went, I am now going to Denmark to conclude a treaty for a solid peace, all the Danes concurring, with those nations and peoples who would have taken my life and crown if it had been possible ; but this they were not able to accomplish, God bringing their strength to nought. — May He, of his merciful kindness, uphold me in my sovereignty and honour, and henceforth scatter and bring to nought the power and might of all my adversaries ! When, therefore, I shall have made peace with the surrounding nations, and settled and reduced to order all my dominions in the East, so that we shall have nothing to fear from war or hostilities in any quarter, I pro- pose to return to England as early in the summer as I shall be able to fit out my fleet. I have sent this epistle before me in order that my people may be gladdened at my success; because, as you yourselves know, I have never spared, nor will I spare, myself or my exertions, for the needful service of my whole people. I now therefore command and adjure all my bishops and the governors of my kingdom, by the duty they owe to God and myself, to take care that before I come to England all dues belonging to God, according to the old laws, be fully discharged; namely, plough-alms, the tythe of animals born in the current year, and the pence payable to St. Peter at Rome, whether from towns or vills; and in the middle of August the tythes of corn ; and at the feast of St. Martin the first-fruits of grain [payable] to every one's parish church, called in English ciric-sceat. If these and such-like dues be not paid before I come, those who make default will incur fines to the king, according to the law, which will be strictly inforced without mercy. Farewell. {Chronicle of Florence of Worcester, for yeario^i, trans, by T.Forester, Lond., 1854.) PART III . FROIwJlHi, CONQUEST TO THE CHARTER (1066-I215) 109 CHAPTER VII THE NORMAN RULE 44. Invasion of England by Harold Hardrada and Tostig — Invasion by William, Duke of Normandy — Battle of Stamford Bridge — Battle of Hastings Ordericus Vitalis No good contemporary account of the invasion of the Nor- mans exists. The writers of the succeeding century are quite as unsatisfactory as their predecessors. The account by Ordericus Vitalis (1075 to circa 1143) which is given below, though erro- neous in many particulars, presents the most vivid description of the fall of Harold which remains to us. Vitalis was an Englishman, born on the banks of the Severn. His life was spent in the study of history, in collecting historical materials, and in writing his Ecclesiastical History of England and Nor- mandy. Though it is marred by inaccuracies, it is valuable as a source of the history of the Norman Period. In the month of August, Harold, king of Norway, and Tostig, with a powerful fleet set sail over the wide sea, and, steering for England with a favourable apartic.or north wind, landed in Yorkshire, which was the first object of their in- vasion. Meanwhile, Harold of England, having intelligence of the descent of the Norwegians, withdrew his ships and troops from Hastings and Pevensey, and the other sea-ports on the coast lying opposite to Neustria, which he had care- fully guarded with a powerful armament during the whole of the year, and threw himself unexpectedly, with a strong force by hasty marches on his enemies from the north. A hard- fought battle ensued, in which there was great effusion of blood on both sides, vast numbers being slain with brutal rage. At last the furious attacks of the English secured them the victory, and the king of Norway as well as Tostig, with their whole army, were slain. The field of battle may be easily discovered by travellers, as great heaps of the bones of the slain lie there to this day, memorials of the prodigious numbers which fell on both sides. Ill 112 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY While however the attention of the English was diverted by the invasion of Yorkshire, and by God's permission they neglected, as I have already mentioned, to guard the coast, the Norman fleet, which for a whole month had been waiting for a south wind in the mouth of the river Dive and the neighbouring harbours, took advantage of a favourable breeze from the west to gain the roads of St, Valeri. While it lay there innumerable vows and prayers were offered for the safety of themselves and their friends, and floods of tears were shed. For the intimate friends and relations of those who were to remain at home, witnessing the embarcation of fifty thousand knights and men-at-arms, with a large body of infantry, who had to brave the dangers of the sea, and to attack an unknown people on their own soil, were moved to tears and sighs, and full of anxiety both for themselves and their countrymen, their minds fluctuating between fear and hope. Duke William and the whole army committed them- selves to God's protection, with prayers, and offerings, and vows, and accompanied a procession from the church, carry- ing the relics of St. Valeri, confessor of Christ, to obtain a favorable wind. At last when by God's grace it suddenly came round to the quarter which was the object of so many prayers, the duke, full of ardour, lost no time in embarking the troops, and giving the signal for hastening the departure of the fleet. The Norman expedition, therefore, crossed the sea on the night of the third of the calends of October [29th September], which the Catholic Church observes as the feast of St. Michael the archangel, and meeting with no resistance, and landing safely on the coast of England, took possession of Pevensey and Hastings, the defence of which was en- trusted to a chosen body of soldiers, to cover a retreat and guard the fleet. Meanwhile the English usurper, after having put to the sword his brother Tostig, and his royal enemy, and slaugh- tered their immense army, returned in triumph to London. As however wordly prosperity soon vanishes like smoke be- fore the wind, Harold's rejoicings for his bloody victory were soon darkened by the threatening clouds of a still heavier storm. Nor was he suffered long to enjoy the secu- rity procured by his brother's death ; for a hasty messenger brought him the intelligence that the Normans had embarked. Learning soon afterwards that they had actually landed, he made preparations for a fresh conflict. For his intrepidity was dauntless, and his conduct of affairs admirable, while THE NORMAN RULE 113 his personal strength was great, his presence commanding, and he had the arts of a persuasive eloquence, and of a courtesy which endeared him to his supporters. Still his mother Githa, who was much afflicted by the death of her son Tostig, and his other faithful friends, dissuaded him from engaging in battle with the Normans ; his brother, Earl Gurth, thus addressing him : "It is best, dearest brother and lord, that your courage should be tempered by discretion. You are worn by the conflict with the Norwegians from which you are only just come, and you are in eager haste to give battle to the Normans. Allow yourself, I pray you, some time for rest. Reflect also, in your wisdom, on the oath you have taken to the duke of Normandy. Beware of incurring the guilt of perjury, lest by so great a crime you draw ruin on yourself and the forces of this nation, and stain forever the honour of our own race. For myself, I am bound by no oaths, I am under no obligations to Count William. I am therefore in a position to fight with him undauntedly in de- fence of our native soil. But do you, my brother, rest awhile in peace, and wait the issue of the contest, so that the liberty which is the glory of England, may not be ruined by your fall." Harold was very indignant at this speech. Holding in contempt the wholesome advice of his friends, he loaded his brother with reproaches for his faithful counsel, and even forgot himself so far as to kick his mother when she hung about him in her too great anxiety to detain him with her. For six days Harold sent forth the summons to call the people to arms from all quarters, and having assembled vast numbers of the English, he led them by forced marches against the enemy. It was his design to take them unawares, and crush them at once by a night attack, or, at least, by a sudden onset, and, that they might not escape by sea, he caused a fleet of seventy ships, full of soldiers, to guard the coast. Duke William, having intelligence of Harold's ap- proach, ordered his troops to take to their arms on the morn- ing of Saturday. He then heard mass, strengthening both body and soul by partaking of the consecrated host ; he also reverently suspended from his neck the holy relics on which Harold had sworn. Many of the clergy had followed the Norman army, among who were two bishops. Odo, of Bayeux, and Geoffrey, of Coutances, with attendant clerks and monks, whose duty it was to aid the war with their prayers and counsels. The battle commenced at the third 114 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY hour of the Ides [14th] of October, and was fought despe- rately the whole day, with the loss of many thousand men on both sides. The Norman duke drew up his light troops, con- sisting of archers and men armed with cross-bows, in the first line; the infantry in armour formed the second rank; and in the third were placed the cavalry, in the centre of which the duke stationed himself with the flower of his troops, so as to be able to issue his commands, and give sup- port to every part of the army. On the other side, the English troops, assembled from all parts of the neighborhood, took post at a place which was anciently called Senlac, many of them personally devoted to the cause of Harold, and all to that of their country, which they were resolved to defend against the foreigners. Dis- mounting from their horses, on which it was determined not to rely, they formed a solid column of infantry, and thus stood firm in the position they had taken. Turstin, son of Rollo, bore the standard of Normandy. The sound of the trumpets in both armies was the terrible signal for beginning the battle. The Normans made the first attack with ardour and gallantry, their infantry rushing for- ward to provoke the English, and spreading wounds and dea^h through their ranks by showers of arrows and bolts. The English, on their side, made a stout resistance, each man straining his powers to the utmost. The battle raged for some time with the utmost violence between both parties. At length the indomitable bravery of the English threw the Bretons, both horse and foot, and the other auxiliary troops composing the left wing, into confusion, and, in their rout, they drew with them almost all the rest of the duke's army, who, in their panic, believed that he was slain. The duke, perceiving that large bodies from the enemy had broken their ranks in pursuit of his flying troops, rode up to the fugitives and checked their retreat, loudly threatening them, and striking with his lance. Taking off his helmet, and ex- posing his naked head, he shouted : "See, I am here ; I am still living, and, by God's help, shall yet have the victory." Suddenly the courage of the fugitives was restored by these bold words of the duke; and, intercepting some thousands of their pursuers, they cut them down in a moment. In this manner, the Normans, twice again pretending to retreat, and when they were followed by the English, suddenly wheeling their horses, cut their pursuers off from the main body, sur- rounded and slew them. The ranks of the English were THE NORMAN RULE 115 much thinned by these dangerous feints, through which they fell separated from each other ; so that, when thousands were thus slaughtered, the Normans attacked the survivors with still greater vigour. They were charged home by the troops of Maine, France, Brittany, and Aquitaine, and great num- bers of them miserably perished. Among others present at this battle, were Eustace, Count de Boulogne, William, son of Richard, Count d'Evreux, Geoffrey, son of Robert, Count de Mortagne, William Fitz- Osbern, Robert, son of Robert de Beaumont, a novice in arms, Aimer, Viscount de Thouars, Earl Hugh, the con- stable, Walter Giffard, and Ralph Toni, Hugh de Grant- mesnil, and William de Warrenne, with many other knights illustrious for their military achievements, and whose names merit a record in the annals of history amongst the most famous warriors. Duke William surpassed them all in cour- age and conduct ; for he nobly performed the duties of a gen- eral, staying the flight of his troops, re-animating their courage, their comrade in the greatest dangers, and more frequently calling on them to follow where he led, than com- manding them to advance before him. He had three horses killed under him in the battle ; thrice he remounted, and did not suffer his steeds to be long unavenged. Shields, helmets, and coats of mail were shivered by the furious and impatient thrusts of his sword ; some he dashed to the earth with his shield, and was at all times as ready to cover and protect his friends, as to deal death among his foes. Although the battle was fought with the greatest fury from nine o'clock in the morning, King Harold was slain in the first onset, and his brother Earl Leofwin fell some time afterwards, with many thousands of the royal army. To- wards evening, the English finding that their king and the chief nobles of the realm, with a great part of their army, had fallen, while the Normans still showed a bold front, and made desperate attacks on all who made any resistance, they had recourse to flight as expeditiously as they could. Vari- ous were the fortunes which attended their retreat; some recovering their horses, some on foot, attempted to escape by the highways ; more sought to save themselves by striking across the country. The Normans, finding the English com- pletely routed, pursued them vigorously all Sunday night, but not without suffering a great loss ; for, galloping onward in hot pursuit, they fell unawares, horses and armour, into an ancient trench, overgrown and concealed by rank grass, ii6 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY and men in their armour and horses rolling over each other, were crushed and smothered. This accident restored con- fidence to the routed English, for, perceiving the advantage given them by the mouldering rampart and a succession of ditches, they rallied in a body, and, making a sudden stand, caused the Normans severe loss. At this place Eugenulf, lord of Laigle, and many others fell, the number of Normans who perished being, as reported by some who were present, nearly fifteen thousand. Thus did Almighty God, on the eve of the Ides of October, punish in various ways the innumer- able sinners in both armies. For, on this Saturday, the Nor- mans butchered with remorseless cruelty thousands of the English, who long before had murdered the innocent prince Alfred and his attendants ; and on the Saturday before the present battle, had massacred without pity King Harold ana Earl Tostig, with multitudes of Norwegians. The righteous Judge avenged the English on Sunday night, when the furi- ous Normans were precipitated into the concealed trench ; for they had broken the divine law by their boundless covetous- ness ; and, as the Psalmist says : "Their feet were swift to shed blood," whereupon, "sorrow and unhappiness was in their ways." Duke William, perceiving that the English troops suddenly rallied, did not halt; and when he found Count Eustace with fifty men-at-arms retreating, and the count wished him to have the signal sounded for recalling the pursuers, he com- manded him with a loud voice to stand firm. The count, however, familiarly approaching the duke, whispered in his ear that it would be safer to retreat, predicting his sudden death if he persisted in the pursuit. While he was saying this, Eustace received a blow between the shoulders, so vio- lent that the noise of the stroke was plainly heard, and it caused blood to flow from his mouth and nostrils, and he was borne off b}^ his comrades in a dying state. The victory being secured, the duke returned to the field of battle, where he viewed the dreadful carnage, which could not be seen without commiseration. There the flower of the youth and nobility of England covered the ground far and near stained with blood. Harold could not be discovered by his features, but was recognized by other tokens, and his corpse, being borne to the duke's camp, was, by order of the conqueror, delivered to William Mallet for interment near the sea-shore, which had long been guarded by his arms. {T/ie Ecclesiastical History of England and Normandy, by Ordericus Vitalis. Trans. T. Forester, London, 1853, book III, c. 14.) THE NORMAN RULE 117 45. Coronation Oath of William the Conqueror Flore7ice of Worcester The coronation oaths of the sovereigns of England have been of varying force. In that of William the Norman is expressed in a few strong words all that other rulers promised with more of detail. See also Nos. 89, 148. Having first, as the archbishop required, sworn before the altar of St. Peter the Apostle, in the presence of the clergy and people, to defend the holy churches of God and their governors, and also to rule over the w^hole people subject to him justly and with royal providence ; to enact and to pre- serve right law, and straitly to forbid violence and unjust judgments. (Chronicle of Florence of Worcester, ed. cited. 46. The Administration of William Ordericus Vitalis The administration of William the Norman has been the object of varied criticism. Perhaps the best contemporary view can be found in the following excerpt from Ordericus Vitalis, After his coronation in London, King William ordered many affairs with prudence, justice, and clemency. Some of these concerned the profit and honour of that city, others were for the advantage of the whole nation, and the rest were intended for the benefit of the church. He enacted some laws founded on admirable principles. No suitor ever de- manded justice of this king without obtaining it: he con- demned none but those whom it would have been unjust to acquit. He enjoined his nobles to comport themselves with grave dignity, joining activity to right judgment, having con- stantly before their eyes the Eternal King who had given them the victory. He forbade their oppressing the con- quered, reminding them that they were their own equals by their Christian profession, and that they must be cautious not to excite revolt by their unjust treatment of those whom they had fairly subdued. He prohibited all riotous assem- blages, murder, and robbery, and as he restrained the people by force of arms, he set bounds to arms by the laws. The taxes and all things concerning the royal revenues were so regulated as not to be burdensome to the people. Robbers, plunderers, and malefactors had no asylum in his dominions. Merchants found the ports and highways open, and were pro- tected against injury. Thus the first acts of his reign were all excellent, and eminent for the great benefits flowing from ii8 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY good government conferred on his subjects, which were con- firmed by perseverance in a right course, with plain indica- tions of a successful result. {Ordericus Vitalis, ed. cited, book IV, c. i.) 47. The Character of William Anglo-Saxon Chronicle William of Normandy was of a character too subtle to be readily comprehended. The estimate in the Anglo-Saxon Chronicle is rather laudatory, but does not scruple to call atten- tion to the misdeeds of the Conqueror. A. 1087. ... If any would know what manner of man king William was, the glory that he obtained, and of how many lands he was lord; then will we describe him as we have known him, we, who have looked upon him, and who once lived in his court. This king William, of w^hom we are speaking, was a very wise and a great man, and more hon- oured and more powerful than any of his predecessors. He was mild to those good men who loved God, but severe be- yond measure towards those who withstood his will. He founded a noble monastery on the spot where God permitted him to conquer England, and he established monks in it, and he made it very rich. In his days the great monastery at Canterbury was built, and many others also throughout Eng- land; moreover this land was filled with monks who lived after the rule of St. Benedict; and such was the state of religion in his days that all that would, might observe that which was prescribed by their respective orders. King William was also held in much reverence : he wore his crown three times every year when he was in England : at Easter he wore it at Winchester, at Pentecost at Westminster, and at Christmas at Gloucester. And -at these times, all the men of England were with him, archbishops, bishops, abbats, and earls, thanes, and knights. So also, was he a very stern and a wrathful man, so that none durst do anything against his will, and he kept in prison those earls who acted against his pleasure. He removed bishops from their sees, and abbats from their offices, and he imprisoned thanes, and at length he spared not his own brother Odo. This Odo was a very powerful bishop in Normandy, his see was that of Bayeux, and he was foremost to serve the king. He had an earldom in England, and when William was in Normandy he was the first man in this country, and him did he cast into prison. Amongst other things the good order that William estab- THE NORMAN RULE 119 lished is not to be forgotten ; it was such that any man, who was himself aught, might travel over the kingdom with a bosom-full of gold unmolested; and no man durst kill an- other, however great the injury he might have received from him. He reigned over England, and being sharp-sighted to his own interest, he surveyed the kingdom so thoroughly that there was not a single hide of land throughout the whole, of which he knew not the possessor, and how much it was worth, and this he afterwards entered in his register. The land of the Britons was under his sway, and he built castles therein; moreover he had full dominion over the Isle of Man [Angle- sey] : Scotland also was subject to him from his great strength ; the land of Normandy was his by inheritance, and he possessed the earldom of Maine ; and had he lived two years longer he would have subdued Ireland by his prowess, and that without a battle. Truly there was much trouble in these times, and very great distress ; he caused castles to be built, and oppressed the poor. The king was also of great sternness, and he took from his subjects many marks of gold, and many hundred pounds of silver, and this, either with or without right, and with little need. He was given to avarice, and greedily loved gain. He made large forests for the deer, and enacted laws therewith, so that whoever killed a hart or a hind should be blinded. As he forbade killing the deer, so also the boars; and he loved the tall stags as if he were their father. He also appointed concerning the hares, that they should go free. The rich complained and the poor mur- mured, but he was so sturdy that he recked nought of them; they must will all that the king willed, if they would live; or would keep their lands; or would hold their possessions; or would be maintained in their rights. Alas ! that any man should so exalt himself, and carry himself in his pride over all ! May Almighty God show mercy to his soul, and grant him the forgiveness of his sins ! We have wTitten concern- ing him these things, both good and bad, that virtuous men might follow after the good, and wholly avoid the evil, and might go in the way that leadeth to the kingdom of heaven. (^A7iglo-Saxo7i Chronicle for year 1087, ed. cited.) 48. Doomsday Survey Anglo-Saxon Chronicle The years 1085 and 1086 were of great constitutional and politi- cal importance to England. In the first, the Doomsday survey was made. In the second, the Gemot of Salisbury was held. 120 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY The survey was the greatest fiscal work England had ever known, nor did she for several centuries know another of equal importance. The survey furnished the basis of taxation and military service, as well as that for the establishment and main- tenance of the English feudal system. The utility of the return was established at the national gathering, or Gemot, on Salisbury Plain. There William exacted from every landholder oaths of homage, fealty, and allegiance, binding each man directly to the king instead of to the mesne lord — the great difference between English and Continental feudalism. A. 1085. ... At midwinter the king was at Gloucester with his witan; and he held his court there five days; arid afterwards the archbishop and clergy held a synod during three days; and Maurice was there chosen to the bishopric of London, William to that of Norfolk, and Robert to that of Cheshire; they were all clerks of the king. After this the king had a great consultation, and spoke very deeply with his watan concerning this land, how it was held and what were its tenantry. He then sent his men over all England, into every shire, and caused them to as- certain how many hundred hides of land it contained, and what lands the king possessed therein, what cattle there were in the several counties, and how much revenue he ought to receive yearly from each. He also caused them to write down how much land belonged to his archbishops, to his bishops, his abbats, and his earls, and, that I may be brief, what property every inhabitant of all England possessed in land or in cattle, and how much money this was worth. So ivery narrowly did he cause the survey to be made, that there was not a single hide nor a rood of land, nor — it is shame- ful to relate that which he thought no shame to do — was there an ox, or a cow, or a pig passed by, and that was not set down in the accounts, and then all these writings were brought to him. A. 1086. This year the king wore his crown and held his court at Winchester at Easter, and he so journeyed forward that he was at Westminster during Pentecost, and there he dubbed his son Henry a knight. And afterwards he trav- elled about, so that he came to Salisbury at Lammas ; and his witan, and all the land-holders of substance in England, whose vassals soever they were, repaired to him there, and they all submitted to him, and became his men, and swore oaths of allegiance, that they would be faithful to him against all others. {Anglo-Saxo7i Chronicle for years ioSs-ioS6, ed. cited.) THE NORMAN RULE 121 49. A Doomsday Manor: Hecham, Essex, A.D. 1086 Doovisday Book Many extracts from Doomsday Book would no better serve our purpose than does this single one. Herein we can see the method of the examiners in ascertaining the extent of a manor. The purpose was to give the state of the manor as well as an enumera- tion and valuation of the property as it existed in the days of both Edward and William. Peter de Valence holds in domain Hecham, which Haldane a freeman held in the time of King Edward, as a manor, and as 5 hides. There have always been 2 ploughs in the de- mesne, 4 ploughs of the men. At that time there were 8 villeins, now 10; then there were 2 bordars, now 3; at both times 4 servi, woods for 300 swine, 18 acres of meadow. Then there were 2 fish ponds and a half, now there are none. At that time there was i ox, now there are 15 cattle and I small horse and 18 swine and 2 hives of bees. At that time it was worth 60s., now £4 los. When he received this manor he found only i ox and i planted acre. Of those 5 hides spoken of above, one was held in the time of King Edward by 2 freemen, and was added to this manor in the time of King William. It was worth in the time of King Edward los., now 22s., and William holds this from Peter de Valence. {Doomsday Book, II, 78b.) 50. William I to Gregory VII William I . The following letter from the Conqueror to the Pope presents better than any other single document the relation of the English Church to the Papal See in the eleventh century. The King does not deny the rightfulness of the ecclesiastical tax, for he believed this to be due from all Christians. He, however, positively repudiates the theory that England was a fief of Rome, and sharply checks the interference of Rome in the civil affairs of his kingdom. In this connection, see also No. 51. To Gregory, the most noble Shepherd of the Holy Church, William, by the grace of God renowned king of the English, and duke of the Normans, greeting w-ith amity. Hubert, your legate, Holy Father, coming to me in your behalf, bade me to do fealty to you and your successors, and to think better in the manner of the money which my predecessors were wont to send to the Roman Church : the one point I agreed to, the other I did not agree to. I refused to do fealty, nor will I, because neither have I promised it, nor do I find that my predecessors did it to your predecessors. 122 SOURCE-BOOK OP ENGLISH HISTORY The money for nearly three years, whilst I was in Gaul, has been carelessly collected; but now that I am come back to my kingdom, by God's mercy, what has been collected is sent by the aforesaid legate, and what remains shall be dispatched when opportunity serves, by the legate of Lan- franc, our faithful archbishop. Pray for us, and for the good estate of our realm, for we have loved your predeces- sors and desire to love you sincerely, and to hear you obediently before all. {Orighial Letters Illustrative of English History, ed. H. Ellis, London, 1846.) 51. Royal Supremacy Eadmer William I. was firm in his determination to prevent the en- croachment of ecclesiastical authority upon the civil administra- tion. The following selection not only illustrates this principle, but shows the independence of the English State as to papal con- trol. This independence was not seriously questioned by the popes as long as a strong king ruled in the island realm. Eadmer says : "Some of those novel points I will set down which he [William] appointed to be observed . . . 1. He would not then allow any one settled in all his dominion to acknowledge as apostolic the pontiff of the City of Rome, save at his own bidding, or by any means to receive any letter from him if it had not first been shown to him- self. 2. The primate also of his realm, I mean the Archbishop of Canterbury or Dorobernia, presiding over a general Coun- cil assembled of bishops, he did not permit to ordain or forbid anything save what had first been ordained by himself as agreeable to his own will. 3. He would not suffer that any, even of his bishops, should be allowed to implead publicly, or excommunicate, or constrain by any penalty of ecclesiastical rigour, any of his barons or ministers accused of incest, or adultery, or any capital crime, save by his command. {Ead7neri Monachi Cantuariensis Histories Novorujn ... I, 6, Lond. 1623.) 52. Separation of Spiritual and Lay Jurisdiction Anciefit Laws and Institutes of England The greatest legal change resulting from the Conquest was the separation of the civil and ecclesiastical courts of law. An end was put to the practice of churchmen sitting as judges in the civil courts, as well as to the administration by the laity of eccle- siastical affairs. The result of the law was to strengthen the power of the ecclesiastical courts. I I THE NORMAN RULE 123 William, by the grace of God king of the English, to R. Bainard, and G. de Magneville, and Peter de Valoines, and all my liege men of Essex, Hertfordshire and Middlesex greeting. Know ye and all my liege men resident in Eng- land, that I have by common council, and by the advise of the archbishops, bishops, abbots and chief men of my realm, determined that the episcopal laws be mended as not having been kept properly nor according to the decrees of the sacred canons throughout the realm of England, even to my own times. Accordingly I command and charge you by royal authority that no bishop nor archdeacon do hereafter hold pleas of episcopal laws in the Hundred, nor bring a cause to the judgment of secular men which concerns the rule of souls. But whoever shall be impleaded by the episcopal laws for any cause or crime, let him come to the place which the bishop shall choose and name for this purpose, and there answer for his cause or crime, and not according to the Hundred but according to the canons and episcopal laws, and let him do right to God and his bishop. But if any one, being lifted up with pride, refuse to come to the bishop's court, let him be summoned three several times, and if by, this means, even, he come not to obedience, let the authority and justice of the king or sheriff be exerted; and he who refuses to come to the bishop's judgment shall make good the bishop's law for every summons. This too I absolutely forbid that any sheriff, reeve, or king's minister, or any other layman, do in any wise concern himself with the laws which belong to the bishop, or bring another man to judgment save in the bishop's court. And let judgment be nowhere undergone but in the bishop's see or in that place which the bishop appoints for this purpose. {Ancient Laws and Institutes of England, I, 213.) 53. First Charter of the City of London Historical Charters This, the first charter granted to the City of London, although of great brevity, is of importance because of its recognition of the rights possessed by the citizens of that place. William the king friendly salutes William the bishop, and Godfrey the portreve, and all the burgesses within London, both French and English : And I declare, that I grant you to be all law-worthy, as you were in the days of King Edward; and I grant that every child shall be his father's 124 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY heir, after his father's days; and I will not suffer any per- son to do you wrong. God keep you. (^Historical Charters and Constitutional Documents of the City of London, p. I. Lond. 1884.) 54. Exactions of William Rufas Ordericus V'italis The striking contrast between the administration of William the Conqueror and that of his son, William Rufas, is clearly shown in the following quotation from the contemporary chron- icler Ordericus Vitalis. While these events were occurring in Normandy, beyond sea, and enormous sums were prodigally spent in useless armaments, Ranulph Flambard, now made bishop of Durham, and the other minions and officers of the king, were robbing England, and, worse than thieves, pillaged without mercy the granaries of the farmers and the stores of the merchants, not even restraining their bloody hands from plundering the church. On the death of the prelates, they immediately intruded themselves into their places by a violent exercise of the royal authority, and seized without decency whatever they found in their treasuries. They took into the king's hands the domains of the monasteries and the revenues of the bishoprics, and exacted from the abbots or bishops who still survived enormous sums of money. Thus amassing, by fair means or foul, an immense amount of contributions, they remitted it to the king beyond sea, to be employed on his own occasions whether good or bad. Vast sums, accumulated by these taxes, were presented to the king who used them ostentatiously to enrich foreigners. But the native in- habitants, unjustly spoiled of their goods, were iw great distress and cried lamentably to God, who delivered Israel from the hand of Moab, when Eglon the corpulent king was slain by Aoth, the left-handed. {Ordericus Vitalis, book X, c. 8, ed. cited.) 55. The Charter of Liberties of Henry I. Ancient Laws and Institutes of England William Rufas was succeeded by Henry, the third son of William the Conqueror. Henry's first public act was to issue a charter of liberties. This important charter was not only of great value to Henry's subjects, but a century later it was to form the basis of the demands which led King John to grant the Magna Charta (No. 80). The two documents should be studied together. THE NORMAN RULE 125 In the year of the incarnation of the Lord, iioi, Henry, son of King Wihiam, after the death of his brother William, by the grace of God, king of the English, to all faithful, greeting : 1. Know that by the mercy of God, and by the common counsel of the barons of the whole kingdom of England, I have been crowned king of the same kingdom; and because the kingdom has been oppressed by unjust exactions, T, from regard to God, and from the love which I have toward you, in the first place make the holy church of God free, so that I will neither sell nor place at rent, nor, when arch- bishop, or bishop, or abbot is dead, will I take anything from the domain of the church, or from its men, until a successor is installed into it. And all the evil customs by which the realm of England was unjustly oppressed will I take away, which evil customs I partly set down here. 2. If any one of my barons, or earls, or others who hold from me shall have died, his heir shall not redeem his land as he did in the time of my brother, but shall relieve it by a just and legitimate relief. Similarly also the men of my barons shall relieve their lands from their lords by a just and legitimate relief. 3. And if any one of the barons or other men of mine \vishes to give his daughter in marriage, or his sister or niece or relation, he must speak with me about it, but I will neither take anything from him for this permission, nor forbid him to give her in marriage, unless he should wish to join her to my enemy. And if when a baron or other man of mine is dead, a daughter remains as his heir. I will give her in marriage according to the judgment of my barons, along with her land. And if when a man is dead his wife remains, and is without children, she shall have her dowry and right of marriage, and I will not give her to a husband except to her will. 4. And if a wife has survived with children, she shall have her dowry and right of marriage, so long as she shall have kept her body legitimately, and I will not give her in marriage, except according to her will. And the guardian of the land and children shall be either the wife or another one of the relatives as shall seem to be most just. And I require that my barons should deal similarly with the sons and daughters or wives of their men. 5. The common tax on money which used to be taken through the cities and counties, which was not taken in the 126 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY time of King Edward, I now forbid altogether henceforth to be taken. If any one shall have been seized, whether a moneyer or any other, with false money, strict justice shall be done for it. 6. All fines and all debts which were owed to my brother, I remit, except my rightful rents, and except those payments which had been agreed upon for the inheritances of others or for those things which more justly affected others. And if any one for his own inheritance has stipulated anything, this I remit, and all reliefs which had been agreed upon for rightful inheritances. 7. And if any one of my barons or men shall become feeble, however he himself shall give or arrange to give his money, I grant that it shall be so given. Moreover, if he himself, prevented by arms, or by weakness, shall not have bestowed his money, or arranged to bestow it, his wife or his children or his parents, and his legitimate men shall di- vide it for his soul, as to them shall seem best. 8. If any of my barons or men shall have C9mmited an offence he shall not give security to the extent of forfeiture of his money, as he did in the time of my father, or of my brother, but according to the measure of the offence so shall he pay, as he would have paid from the time of my father backward, in the time of my other predecessors ; so that if he shall have been convicted of treachery or of crime, he shall pay as is just. 9. All murders moreover before that day in which I was crowned king, I pardon ; and those which shall be done henceforth shall be punished justly according to the law of King Edward. 10. The forests, by the common agreement of my barons, I have retained in my own hand, as my father held them. 11. To those knights who hold their land by the cuirass, I yield of my own gift the lands of their demesne ploughs free from all payments and from all labor, so that as they have thus been favoured by such a great alleviation, so they may readily provide themselves with horses and arms for my service and for the defence of my kingdom, 12. A firm peace in my whole kingdom I establish and re- quire to be kept from henceforth, 13. The law of King Edward I give to you again with those changes with which my father changed it by the counsel of his barons. 14. If any one has taken anything from my possessions THE NORMAN RULE 127 since the death of King William, my brother, or from the possessions of any one, let the whole be immediately returned without alteration, and if any one shall have retained any- thing thence, he upon whom it is found w^ill pay it heavily to me. Witnesses Maurice, bishop of London, and Gundulf, bishop, and William, bishop-elect, and Henry, earl, and Simon, earl, and Walter Giffard, and Robert de Montfort, and Roger Bigod, and Henry de Port, at London, when I was crowned. {Translations and Reprints. Published by the Department of History, University of Pennsylvania. Reprinted by permission.) 56. Charter of the City of London (From Henry I.) Historical Charters The City of London was the recipient of many charters, the first being that granted by WiUiam L (No. 53). That granted by Henry I. is, however, the first in which is given an account of the municipal government. A comparative study of these char- ters is of great value to those interested in municipal develop- ment. Henry, by the grace of God, king of England, to the arch- bishop of Canterbury, and to the bishops and abbots, earls and barons, justices and sheriffs, and to all his faithful sub- jects of England, French and English, greeting. Know^ ye that I have granted to my citizens of London, to hold Middlesex to farm for three hundred pounds, upon accompt to them and their heirs ; so that the said citizens shall place as sheriff whom they will of themselves; and shall place whomsoever, or such a one as they will of them- selves, for keeping of the pleas of the crown, and of the pleadings of the same, and none other shall be justice over the same men of London ; and the citizens of London shall not plead without the walls of London for any plea. And be they free from scot and lot and danegeld, and of all murder; and none of them shall wage battle. And if any one of the citizens shall be impleaded concerning the pleas of the crown, the man of London shall discharge himself by his oath, which shall be adjudged within the city; and none shall lodge within the walls, neither of my household, nor any other, nor lodging delivered by force. And all the men of London shall be quit and free, and all their goods, throughout England, and the ports of the sea, of and from all toll and passage and lestage, and all other customs; and the churches and barons and citizens 128 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY shall and may peaceably and quietly have and hold their sokes with all their customs; so that the strangers that shall be lodged in the sokes shall give custom to none but to him to whom the soke appertains, or to his officer, whom he shall there put: And a man of London shall not be adjudged in amerciaments of money but of one hundred shillings (I speak of the pleas which appertain to money) ; and further, there shall be no more miskenning in the hustings, nor in the folkmote, nor in other pleas within the city ; and the hustings may sit once in a week, that is to say, on Monday: And I will cause my citizens to have their lands, promises, bonds, and debts, within the city and without; and I will do them right by the law of the city, of the lands of which they shall complain to me : And if any shall take toll or custom of any citizen of London, the citizens of London in the city shall take of the borough or town, where toll or custom was so taken, as much as the man of London gave for toll, and as he received damage thereby: And all debtors, which do owe debts to the citizens of London, shall pay them in London, or else dis- charge themselves in London, that they owe none; but if they will not pay the same, neither come to clear themselves that they owe none, the citizens of London, to whom the debts shall be due, may take their goods in the city of London, of the borough or town, or of the county wherein he remains who shall owe the debt: And all citizens of London may have their chaces to hunt, as well and fully as their ancestors have had, that is to say, in Chiltre, and in Middlesex and Surrey. Witness the bishop of Winchester, and Robert son of Richier, and Hugh Bygot, and Alured of Toteneys, and William of Alba-spina and Hubert the king's Chamberlain, and William de Montfichet, and Hangulf de Taney, and John Bellet, and Robert son of Siward. At Westminster. (TAe Historical Charters and Constitutional Documents of the City of Londoji, p. 3. Lond. 1834.) 57. The Investiture Controversy Eadmer The policy of the Church forbade its ecclesiastics to receive in- vestiture from a layman, even though he were a king. It also forbade churchmen to render homage to laymen. Anselm, Arch- bishop of Canterbury, contested these points with Henry I. ; the result was the compromise set forth in the selection which fellows. THE NORMAN RULE 129 On the first of August an assemble of bishops, abbots, and nobles of the realm was held at London in the kinsf's palace. And for three successive days, in Anselm's absence, the matter was thoroughly discussed between king and bishops concerning church investitures, some arguing for this that the king should perform them after the manner of his father and brother, or according to the injunction and obedience of the pope. For the pope in the sentence which h^d been then published, standing firm, had conceded hom- age, which Pope Urban had forbidden, as well as investiture, and in this way had won over the king about investiture, as may be gathered from the letter which we have quoted above. Afterwards, in the presence of Anselm and a large concourse, the king agreed and ordained that henceforward no one should be invested with bishopric or abbacy in Eng- land by the giving of a pastoral staff or the ring, by the king or any lay hand : Anselm also agreeing that no one elected to a prelacy should be deprived of consecration to the office undertaken on the ground of homage, which he should make to the king. After this decision, by the advise of Anselm and the nobles of the realm, fathers were instituted by the king, without any investiture of pastoral staff or ring, to nearly all the churches of England which had been so long widowed of their shepherds. (^Eadmcri JSIonachi Cantiiarioisis Historiee Novorutn, ed, cited.) CHAPTER VIII THE EARLY ANGEVINS 58. Henry II and Thomas a Becket at the Council of Woodstock (July 1163) Edward Grim The reign of the strong king, Henry IL, was marred by his quarrel with Thomas a Becket. The assassination of the arch- bishop has tended to obscure in the mind of the younger student of history the principles which were at stake in the quarrel. As chancellor, Thomas was the king's servant, but when created archbishop he became the servant of the Church, and as such he resisted the encroachments of the Crown upon what he believed to be the ecclesiastical prerogative. The first issue with the king came in 1163 at the Council of Woodstock, upon a matter of taxation; the second at the Council of Westminster in the same year, upon the question of the rights of civil courts to try eccle- siastical persons. The dissension was partly healed, and at the Council of Clarendon the compromise effected between Church and State was embodied in the Constitutions of Clarendon But the dispute again broke out, and Becket fled from England. For years the struggle between ruler and prelate continued. In 1170 a reconciliation was effected, but only to be succeeded by more bitter strife. Some rash words of the king led to the murder of the archbishop. The sincerity of Henry's remorse may well be doubted. In consequence of the murder Henry was forced to submit himself to the pope. When the king was tarrying on his manor at Woodstock, with the archbishop and the great men of the land, among other matters a question was raised concerning a certain custom which obtained in England. Two shillings frofn each hide were given to the king's servants, who, in the post of sheriffs, guarded the shires. This sum the king wished to have enrolled in the treasury and added to his own revenue. Whom the archbishop resisted to the face, saying that it ought not to be exacted as revenue — "Nor will we," said he, "my lord king, give it as revenue, saving your pleasure ; but if the sheriffs, and servants, an(i ministers of the shires shall i-^o THE EARLY ANGEVINS 131 serve us fitly, and maintain and defend our dependants, in no way will we be behindhand in contributing to their aid." But the king, taking ill this answer of the archbishop, said "By the eyes of God, it shall be given as revenue, and in the king's scroll shall it be writ ; nor is it fit that thou shouldst gainsay, when no man would oppose your men against your will." The archbishop foreseeing and being aware lest by his suf- ferance a custom should be brought in whereby posterity should be harmed, answered, "By the reverence of the eyes by which you have sworn, my lord king, there shall be given from all my land or from the right of the Church not a penny." The king was silent, repulsed by the bold objection of the archbishop, but his indignation was not set at rest; for silently erewhile his fury from secular matters which seemed to be but little contrary to the archbishop, turned against the clergy, and his rage extended against the ministers of the church whose injuries specially redounded against the arch- bishop. (Edward Grim, Materials /or the History of Archbishop Becket. From St. Thomas of Canterbury, ed. W. H. Hutton, London, 1889. p. 36.) 59. The Council of Westminster (Oct. 1 163) Herbert of Boshatn The king when he explained the cause of the summons straightway demanded that clerks seized or convicted of great crimes should be deprived of the guardianship of the church and handed over to his officers, declaring that they would be the more prompt to evil unless after spiritual punishment they were subject to corporal penalty, and that those that were not restrained by the memory of their orders from such enormities would care little for the loss of orders : and that the more worthy they were than other persons of the privi- lege of clergy so much the worse was their guilt ; and hence they should be constrained by greater punishments whenever they were discovered in crime. Accordingly the king, ad- vised by certain who made a boast of their learning in either law, straitly demanded that such persons should be deprived of their orders and handed over to the civil courts, the which not only human law but also the canonical authority of the Divine law sanctioned. Whence also concerning such it is found in the canons, "let him be given over to the court." Whence those who were prepared with learning on the king's behalf alleged, in nowise should be sent to exile or a monas- 132 SOURCE-BOOK OP ENGLISH HISTORY tery, but rather, according to the canons, to the court, and this "to be handed over to the court" [they explained to mean] to be given over to the secular power to be punished. To the king and his party bringing forward these things, the archbishop, having had counsel with the bishops of his province and with prelates of learning, when he had an- swered at length and clearly on behalf of ecclesiastical liberty according to the canonical rule of the ancient fathers, at the end of his speech with all devotion besought the royal clem- ency to the rules of the holy fathers, under a new king Christ, and under a new law of Christ, by a new and strange kind of Lord. And this he besought humbly and oft for himself and for the security of the realm, again and again declaring that he neither ought to nor could endure it. The king nothing moved by this, but rather the more ex- cited as he saw the archbishop and the bishops opposing him and, as he reckoned, so unanimous and constant, demanded whether they would observe his royal custom. Whereon the archbishop, after counsel had with his breth- ren, said that he and his brethren would observe them saving their order. And the bishops each made the same answer when questioned singly by the king. But one, Hilary of Chichester, considering rather the king's anger than the opinion of the others, witho)it consulting the archbishop and the bishops changed the expression, saying that he would ob- serve the royal customs in good faith; and indeed for a good purpose, as I think, that he might soothe the mind of the king. But the king, in no way appeased, spurned his good- will with contumely; and turning to the archbishop and bish- ops, having heard the same speech from all, he said that they had formed a host against him and poison lay in that saying, "salvo or dine/' and that it was full of guile. Wherefore he demanded that absolutely and without qualification they should promise to obey the customs. The archbishop to this answered that they had sworn fealty to him in life and limb and earthly honour, salvo or dine suo; and that under earthly honour were comprehended the royal customs and that they would not be bound in another form to observe them, but only in that to which they had sworn. When the day was now far advanced the king, angrily and without saluting the prelates, departed hastily from the hall, in ire and much in- dignation. (Herbert of Bosham, as condensed in the Quadrilogus. From St. Thomas of Canterbury , ed. cited, p. 44.) THE EARLY ANGEVINS 133 60. The Constitutions of Clarendon ^ 4 • -^ Translations and Reprints In the year of the incarnation of the Lord, 1164, of the papacy of Alexander, the fourth year, of the most illustrious king of the English, Henry II., the tenth year, in the presence of the same king, has been made this memorial of acknowl- edgement of a certain part of the customs and franchises and dignities of his predecessors, that is to say of King Henry, his grandfather, and of the other kings, which ought to be ob- served and held in the kingdom. And on account of the dis- cussions and disputes which have arisen between the clergy and the justices of our lord the king and the barons of the kingdom concerning the customs and dignities, this acknowl- edgement is made in the presence of the archbishops and bishops and clergy and earls and barons and principal men of the kingdom. And these customs, acknowledged by the arch- bishops and bishops and earls and barons, and by the most noble and ancient of the kingdom, Thomas, archbishop of Canterbury, and Roger, archbishop of York, and Gilbert, bishop of London, and Henry, bishop of Winchester, and Nigel, bishop of Ely, and William, bishop of Norwich, and Robert, bishop of Lincoln, and Hilary, bishop of Chichester, and Jocelyn, bishop of Salisbury, and Richard, bishop of Chester, and Bartholomew, bishop of Exeter, and Robert, bishop of Hereford, and David, bishop of Man, and Roger, bishop-elect of Worcester have conceded, and in the word of truth by their living voice have firmly promised to the lord king and to his heirs should be held and observed, in good faith and without any evil intention ; the following being present : Robert, earl of Leicester, Reginald, earl of Cornwall, Conan, count of Brittany, John, count of Eu, Roger, earl of Clare, earl Geoffrey de Mandeville, Hugh, earl of Chester, William, earl of Arundel, Earl Patrick, William, earl Fer- rers, Richard de Lacy, Reginald de St. Valery, Roger Bigod, Reginald de Warenne, Richer de Aquila, William de Braose, Richard de Camville, Nigel de Mowbray. Simon de Warfield, Humphrey de Bohun, Matthew de Hereford, Walter de Med- way, Manasses Bisett, steward, William Malet, William de Courcy, Robert de Dunstanville, Jocelyn de Balliol, William de Lanvale, William de Cheyney, Geoffrey de Vere, William de Hastings, Hugh de Morville, Alan de Neville, Simon Fitz-Peter, William Malduit, chamberlain, John Malduit, John Marshall, Peter de Mare, and many others of the prin- cipal men and nobles of the kingdom, as well clergy as laity. J34 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY Of these acknowledged customs and dignities of the realm, a certain part is contained in the present writing. Of this part the heads are as follows : § I. If any controversy has arisen concerning the ad vow- son and presentation of churches between laymen, or between laymen and ecclesiastics, or between ecclesiastics, it is to be considered or settled in the court of the lord king. § 2. Churches of the fee of the lord king cannot be given perpetually without his assent and grant. § 3. Clergymen charged and accused of anything, when they have been summoned by a justice of the king shall come into his court, to respond there to that which it shall seem good to the court of the king for them to respond to, and in the ecclesiastical court to what it shall seem good should be responded to there; so that the justice of the king shall send into the court of holy church to see how the matter shall be treated there. And if a clergyman shall have been convicted or has confessed, the church ought not to protect him other- wise. § 4. It is not lawful for archbishops, bishops, and persons of the realm to go out of the realm without the permission of the lord king. And if they go out, if it please the lord king, they shall give security that neither in going nor in making a stay nor in returning will they seek evil or loss to the king or the kingdom. § 5. Excommunicated persons ought not to give per- manent security nor offer an oath, but only security and a pledge to stand to the judgment of the church, in order that they may be absolved. § 6. Laymen ought not to be accused except by definite and legal accusers and witnesses, in the presence of the bishop, so that the archdeacon shall not lose his right, nor anything which he ought to have from it. And if there are such persons as are blamed, but no one wishes or no one dares to accuse them, let the sheriff when required by the bishop cause twelve legal men of the neighbourhood or of the township to take an oath in the presence of the bishop that they will show the truth about it according to their con- science. § 7. No one who holds from the king in chief, nor any one of the officers of his demesnes shall be excommunicated, nor the lands of any one of them placed under an interdict, unless the lord king, if he is in the land, first agrees, or his justice, if he is out of the realm, in order that he may do right THE EARLY ANGEVINS 135 concerning him; and so that what shall pertain to the king's court shall be settled there, and for that which has respect to the ecclesiastical court, that it may be sent to the same to be considered there. § 8. Concerning appeals, if they should occur, they ought to proceed from the archdeacon to the bishop, from the bishop to the archbishop. And if the archbishop should fail to show justice, it must come to the lord king last, in order that by his command the controversy should be finally terminated in the court of the archbishop, so that it ought not to proceed further without the assent of the lord king. § 9. If a contest has arisen between a clergyman and a layman or between a layman and a clergyman, concerning any tenement which the clergymen wishes to bring into char- itable tenure, but the layman into a lay fief, it shall be settled by the deliberation of a principal justice of the king, on the recognition of twelve legal men, whether the tenement per- tains to charity or to a lay fief, in the presence of that justice of the king. And if the recognition shall decide that it be- longs to charity, the suit will be in the ecclesiastical court, but if to a lay fief, unless both are answerable to the same bishop or baron, the suit will be in the king's court. But if both shall be answerable concerning that fief before the same bishop or baron, the suit will be in his court, provided that the one who was formerly in possession shall not lose his possession on account of the recognition which has been made until it has been decided upon through the suit. § 10. If any one who is of a city or a castle or a borough or a demesne manor of the lord king has been summoned by the archdeacon or the bishop for any offence for which he ought to respond to them, and is unwilling to make answer to their summons, it is fully lawful to place him under an interdict, but he ought not to be excommunicated before the principal officer of the lord king for that place agrees, in order that he may adjudge him to come to the answer. And if the officer of the king is negligent in this, he himself will be at the mercy of the lord king, and afterward the bishop shall be able to coerce the accused man by ecclesiastical justice. § II. Archbishops, bishops, and all persons of the realm, who hold from the king in chief, have their possessions from the lord king as a barony, and are responsible for them to the justices and officers of the king, and follow and perform all royal rules and customs; and just as the rest of the barons 136 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY ought to be present at the judgment of the court of the lord king along with the barons, at least till the judgment reaches to loss of limbs or to death. § 12. When an archbishopric or bishopric or abbacy or priorate of the demesne of the king has become vacant, it ought to be in his hands and he shall take thence all its rights and products just as demesnes. And when it has come to providing for the church, the lord king ought to summon the more powerful persons of the church, and the election ought to be made in the chapel of the lord king himself, with the assent of the lord king and with the agreement of the persons of the realm whom he has called to do this. And there the person elected shall do homage and fealty to the lord king as to his liege lord, concerning his life and his limbs and his earthly honour, saving his order, before he shall be con- secrated. § 13. If any one of the great men of the kingdom has pre- vented archbishop, bishop or archdeacon from exercising justice upon himself or his, the lord king ought to bring him to justice. And if by chance anyone has deprived the lord king of his right, the archbishops and bishops and arch- deacons ought to bring him to justice in order that he may give satisfaction to the lord king. § 14. The chattels of those who are in forfeiture to the king no church or church-yard must detain against the jus- tice of the king, because they are the king's whether they have been found within the churches or without. § 15. Suits concerning debts which are owed through the medium of a bond or without the medium of a bond should be in the jurisdiction of the king. § 16. Sons of rustics ought not to be ordained without the assent of the lord upon whose land they are known to have been born. The acknowledgment of the aforesaid royal customs and dignities has been made by the aforesaid archbishops, and bishops, and earls, and barons, and the more noble and ancient of the realm, at Clarendon, on the fourth day before the Purification of the Blessed Mary, perpetual Virgin, Lord Henry being there present with his father, the lord king. There are, however, many other and great customs and dig- nities of holy mother church and of the lord king, and of the barons of the realm, which are not contained in this writing. These are preserved to holy church and to the lord king and to his heirs ard to the barons of the realm, and shall be ob- served inviolably forever. {Translations and Re:^rints, ed. cited.) THE EARLY ANGEVtNS 137 61. The King's Rash Words and Becket's Death William Fitz Stephen The Archbishops of York and the Bishops of London and Sahsbury, with the Archdeacon of Poictiers (the Archdeacon of Canterbury was delayed on the sea by bad weather), hav- ing crossed the water, came to the King's court. He had already heard of the suspension and excommunication of the bishops. They repeat to him the w^hole story. They lay all the blame upon the Archbishop; they declare him to be guilty of treason in what he has done. Falsehood doubles his offence. It had been told the King that the Archbishop was making the circuit of the kingdom at the head of a large body of men. The King asks the Archbishop of York and the Bishops of London and Salisbury to advise him what to do. "It is not our part," they say, "to tell you what must be done." At length one says, "My lord, while Thomas lives, you will not have peace or quiet or see another good day." On hearing this, such fury, bitterness, and passion took pos- session of the King, as his disordered look and gesture ex- pressed, that it was immediately understood what he wanted. When they saw his emotion, four knights, barons of the king's household, seeking to please him, named Reginald Fitz Urse, William de Traci, Hugh de Morville, Richard Brito having sworn the death of the Archbishop, departed sailing from different ports. By the guidance of the devil, the old enemy of all good, they met at the same hour on the morrow at the castle of the family of Broc, at Saltwood. Whilst we were lately assembled in council before our lord and king, and supposed we were going to discuss important matters connected with the Church, ... we are told by some who are just come over from England, that certain enemies of the archbishop, provoked to madness, it is said, by frequent causes of exasperation, have suddenly set upon him, and — I can hardly write for my tears — have attacked his person and put him to a cruel death. At the first words of the mes- senger the king burst into loud lamentations, and exchanged his royal robes for sackcloth and ashes, acting more like a friend than the sovereign of the deceased. At times he ceased his cries and became stupid ; after which he burst again into cries and lamentations louder than before. Three whole days he spent in his chamber, and would receive neither food nor consolation, but by the excess of his grief it seemed as if he had thoroughly made up his mind to die. The state of things indeed became alarming, and we had now 138 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY a double cause for anxiety. First we had to lament the death of the bishop, now we almost despaired of the life of the king, and so in losing one we thought our evil fortune would de- prive us of both. (William Fitz Stephen. From St. Thomas of Canterbury, ed. cited, p. 232.) 62. The Assize of Clarendon (1166) Select Charters The Assize of Clarendon is of great importance to the histori- cal student because of its re-arrangement of judicial processes. It is a valuable legal landmark. By it the custom of the country was crystallised in the provision for a jury of presentment, anal- ogous to the modern grand jury. The old form of compurgation was finally superseded, and that of collective responsibility re- affirmed. The whole document is worthy of intensive study. Here begins the Assize of Clarendon, made by King Henry H. with the assent of the archbishops, bishops, ab- bots, earls and barons of all England. § I. In the first place, the aforesaid King Henry, with the consent of all his barons, for the preservation of the peace and the keeping of justice, has enacted that inquiry should be made through the several counties and through the several hundreds, by twelve of the most legal men of the hundred and by four of the most legal men of each manor, upon their oath that they will tell the truth, whether there is in their hundred or in their manor, any man who has been accused or publicly suspected of himself being a robber, or murderer, or thief, or of being a receiver of robbers, or mur- derers, or thieves, since the lord king has been king. And let the justices make this inquiry before themselves, and the sheriffs before themselves. § 2. And let anyone who has been found by the oath of the aforesaid, to have been accused or publicly suspected of having been a robber, or murderer, or thief, or a receiver of them, since the lord king has been king, be arrested and go to the ordeal of water and let him swear that he has not been a robber, or murderer, or thief, or receiver of them since the lord king has been king, to the value of five shillings, so far as he knows. § 3. And if the lord of the man who has been arrested or his steward or his men shall have claimed him, with a pledge, within the third day after he has been seized, let him be given up and his chattels until he himself makes his law. § 4. And when a robber, or murderer, or thief, or receiver THE EARLY ANGEVINS 139 of them shall have been seized through the above-mentioned oath, if the justices are not to come very soon into that county where they have been arrested, let the sheriffs send word to the nearest justice by some intelligent man that they have arrested such men, and the justices will send back word to the sheriffs where they wish that these should be brought before them; and the sheriffs shall bring them before the justices; and along with these they shall bring from the hundred and the manor where they have been arrested, two legal men to carry the record of the county and of the hun- dred as to why they were seized, and there before the justice let them make their law. § 5. And in the case of those who have been arrested through the aforesaid oath of this assize, no one shall have court, or judgment, or chattels, except the lord king in his court before his justices, and the lord king shall have all their chattels. In the case of those, however, who have been arrested, otherwise than through this oath, let it be as it has been accustomed and ought to be. § 6. And the sheriffs who have arrested them shall bring such before the justice without any other summons than they have from him. And when robbers, or murderers, or thieves, or receivers of them, who have been arrested through the oath or otherwise, are handed over to the sheriffs they also must receive them immediately without delay. § 7. And in the several counties where there are no jails, let such be made in a borough or in some castle of the king, from the money of the king and from his forest, if one shall be near, or from some other neighbouring forest, on the view of the servants of the king; in order that in them the sheriffs may be able to detain those who have been seized by the offi- cials who are accustomed to do this or by their servants. § 8. And the lord king moreover w ills that all should come to the county courts to make this oath, so that no one shall remain behind because of any franchise which he has or court or jurisdiction which he had, but that they should come to the making of this oath. § 9. And there is to be no one within a castle or without a castle or even in the honour of Wallingford, who may for- bid the sheriffs to enter into his court or his land for seeing to the frankpledges and that all are under pledges; and let them be sent before the sheriffs under a free pledge. § 10. And in cities and boroughs, let no one have men or receive them in his house or in his land or his soc, whom he MO SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY does not take in hand that he will produce before the justice if they shall be required, or else let them be under a frank- pledge. § II. And let there be none in a city or borough or in a castle or without, or even in the honour of Wallingford, who shall forbid the sheriffs to enter into his land or his juris- diction to arrest those who have been charged or publicly suspected of being robbers or thieves or receivers of them, or outlaws, or persons charged concerning the forest ; but he requires that they should aid them to capture these. § 12. And if any one is captured who has in his pos- session the fruits of robbery or theft, if he is of bad reputa- tion and has an evil testimony from the public, and has not a warrant, let him not have law. And if he shall not have been accused on account of the profession which he has, let him go to the water. § 13. And if any one shall have acknowledged robbery or murder or theft or the reception of them in the presence of legal men or of the hundreds, and afterwards shall wish to deny it, he shall not have law. § 14. The lord kin^ wills moreover that those who make their law and shall be absolved by the law, if they are of very bad testimony, and publicly and disgracefully spoken ill of by the testimony of many and legal men, shall abjure the lands of the king, so that within eight days they shall go over the sea, unless the wind shall have detained them; and with the first wind which they shall have afterward they shall go over the sea, and they shall not afterward return into Eng- land, except on the permission of the lord king; and then let them be outlawed if they return, and if they return they shall be seized as outlaws. § 15. And the lord king forbids any vagabond, that is a wandering or an unknown man, to be sheltered anywhere ex- cept in a borough, and even there he shall be sheltered only one night, unless he shall be sick there, or his horse, so that he is able to show an evident excuse. § 16. And if he shall have been there more than one night, let him be arrested and held until his lord shall come to give securities for him, or until he himself shall have secured pledges; and let him likewise be arrested who has sheltered him. § 17. And if any sheriff shall have sent word to any other sheriff that men have fled from his county into another county, on account of robbery or murder or theft, or the re- THE EARLY ANGEVINS 141 ception of them, or for outlawry or for a charge concerning the forest of the king, let him arrest them. And even if he knows of himself or through others that such men have fled into his county, let him arrest them and hold them until he shall have secured pledges from them. § 18. And let all sheriffs cause a list to be made of all fugitives who have fled from their counties; and let them do this in the presence of their county courts, and they will carry the written names of these before the justices when they come first before these, so that they may be sought through all England, and their chattels may be seized for the use of the king. § 19. And the lord kin.g wills that, from the time when the sheriffs have received the summons of the justices in eyre to appear before them with their county courts, they shall gather together their county courts and make inquiry for all who have recently come into their counties since this assize; and that they should send them away with pledges that they will be before the justices, or else keep them in custody until the justices come to them, and then they shall have them before the justices. § 20. The lord king moreover prohibits monks and canons and all religious houses from receiving any one of the lesser people as a monk or canon or brother, until it is known of what reputation he is, unless he shall be sick unto death. § 21. The lord king moreover forbids any one in all Eng- land to receive in his land or his jurisdiction or in a house under him any one of the sect of those renegades who have been excommunicated and branded at Oxford. And if any- one shall have received them, he will be at the mercy of the lord king, and the house in which they have been shall be carried outside the village and burned. And each sheriff will take this oath that he will hold this, and will make all his servants swear this, and the stewards of the barons, and all knights and free tenants of the counties. § 22. And the lord king wills that this assize shall be held in his kingdom so long as it shall please him. {Translations and Reprints, ed. cited.) 63. Constitution of the King's Household Little Black Book of the Exchequer This document is of sufficient importance to warrant its intro- duction into this book of sources. In the words of its most able editor, Hubert Hall. F.S.A., of the Public Record Office : "The value of this historical document is inestimable. It brings us into 142 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY touch with the Angevin king [Henry II.] and possibly with his Norman predecessors, by affording a hundred clues to court life." Beside this, it affords a host of suggestions upon the manners of the times. THIS IS THE CONSTITUTION OF THE KING S HOUSE The Chancellor. Five shillings daily and one royal simnel, and two [of dripping,] and one sextary of clear w^ine, and one sextary of household w^ine, and one wax-candle and forty candle- ends. The Master of the Scriptorum. Formerly tenpence daily, and one simnel [of dripping,] and half a sextary of household wine, and one thick candle and twelve candle-ends. But King Henry increased Robert de Sigillo by so much, that on the day of the king's death he had two shillings, and one sextary of household wine, and one simnel [of dripping,] and one taper and twenty- four candle-ends. The Chaplain, Keeper of the Chapel and Relics. The entertainment of two men and four Serjeants of the Chapel, each a double ration ; and two sumpter-horses of the Chapel, each one penny daily and one penny to shoe them monthly. For the service of the Chapel, two wax- candles on Wednesday and two on Saturday; and every night one wax-candle at the Relics, and thirty candle-ends ; and one gallon of clear wine at mass and one sextary of household wine on the day of Absolution, to wash the altar. On Easter Day, at Communion, one sextary of clear wine and one of household wine. The Clerk of the household bread and wine. Two shillings daily, and one simnel [of dripping,] and one sextary of household wine, and one taper and twentj- four candle-ends. Of the Stewards of the bread. The regular Master Steward of the bread, if he shall eat without the king's house, two shillings and tenpence daily, and one simnel [of dripping,] and one sextary of house- hold wine, and candles fully. Of the Sewers. The Sewers the same as the Chancellor, if they shall eat without the house; if within, three shillings and sixpence, and two simnels [of dripping,] and one sextary of house- hold wine and candles fully. THE EARLY ANGEVINS X43 Of the Stewards serving in turn. If without the house, nineteen pence daily, and one sim- nel [of ^dripping,] and one sextary of household wine, and one thick candle and twenty candle-ends. If within, ten- pence and half a sextary of household wine and candles fully. Of the Naperers. The Naperer, the customary ration. To his man, three half-pence daily, and one penny for a sumpter-horse, and one penny monthly to shoe him. The Usher of the Dispensary. The same, the sumpter-horse excepted. The Counter of the Bread. The customary ration. Of the four Bakers.- serving together in their turn. Two who serye in the house shall eat in the house ; and two who go abroad shall have forty pence to procure a measure of Rouen for which they should render forty royal simnels and a hundred and fifty [of dripping,] and two hundred and seventy baker's loaves. A royal simnel to four, one [of dripping] to two, and a loaf to each. Of the Waferers. The Waferer, the customary ration ; and three half-pence to his man daily. The Keeper of the Tables. So much as the above; and besides this a sumpter-horse with his allowance. The bearer of the Alms-dish shall eat in the house. Of the Stewards of the Larder. The Master Steward of the Larder, the same as the Master Steward of the bread and wine, and in the same manner. Likewise the .Stewards of the Larder serving in turn, like also as the Stewards of the bread and wine serve in turn. The Larderers who serve in turn, the customary ration, and their man three half-pence daily. The Usher of the Larder the same. The Slaughter-men the customary ration only. Of the Cooks. The Cook of the king's kitchen shall eat in the house. Three half-pence to his man. 144 SOURCE-BOOK Of ENGLISH HISTORY Of the Great Kitchen. The king's Poulterer, the customary ration and three half-pence to his man. Two Cooks, each of them the customary ration. Three half-pence to their man. The Serjeants of the same kitchen, the customary ration only. The Usher of the Spithouse, the customary ration; to his man three half-pence. The Turn Spit likewise. Likewise the Keeper of the Dishes, and besides this on:- sumpter-horse with his allowance. The Carter of the great kitchen, a double ration, and for his horse a proper allowance. The Carter of the Larder likewise. The Serjeant who receives the venison shall eat within; and three half-pence to his man. The Master Butler, the same as the Sewer, and they have one allowance and in the same manner. The Master Stewards of the Butlery who serve in turn, the same as the Stewards of the Dispensary who serve in turn. But they have more candle, because they have a taper and twenty-four candle-ends. The Usher of the Butlery, the customary ration, and three half-pence to his man. The Hosiers shall eat in the house, and to each of their men threepence. The Butterer, the customary ration, and threepence to his men, and half a sextary of household wine and twelve candle-ends. The Workmen of the Buttery, the customary ration only, but the Serjeant besides this three half-pence to his man and two sumpter-horses with their allowances. Of the Keepers of the Cups. Four only must serve together in their turn, of whom two shall eat in the house, and each for his man three half- pence. Two other shall have the customary ration and likewise three half-pence to their men. The Keepers of the Mazers a double ration only. Of the Fruiterers. The Fruiterer shall eat in the house, and three of his men. The Carter the customary ration and allowance for his horses. THE EARLY ANGEVINS 145 The Master Chamberlain is equal with the Sewer in his allowance. The Treasurer as the Master Chamberlain if he shall be in the Court and shall serve in the Treasury. William Maudut fourteen pence daily, and he shall eat regularly in the house, and one thick candle and thirteen candle-ends and two sumpter-horses with their allowances. The Porter of the King's Litter shall eat in the house, and to his man three half-pence and one sumpter-horse with his allowance. The Chamberlain who serves in his turn two shillings daily, and one sininel [of dripping,] and one sextary of house- hold wine, and one taper and fourteen candle-ends. The Chamberlain of the Candles eightpence daily, and half a sextary of household wine. The King's Tailor shall eat in his house, and to his man three half-pence. The Chamberlain shall eat in the house without allowance if he shall desire it. The Water-carrier a double ration, and when the king goes abroad one penny to wring out the king's clothes ; and when the king bathes, threepence, except on the three feasts of the year. Of the Washerwoman — doubtful. The Constables have allowances like as the Sewers, and in like manner William, son of Odo, one royal simnel and one sextary of clear wine and one taper and twenty-four candle-ends. Henry de la Pomerai, if he shall eat without the house, two shillings daily, and one simnel [of dripping.] and one sextary of household wine, and one taper, and twenty-four candle-ends; but if within, fourteen pence and half a sex- tary of household wine, and candle fully. Roger de Oyli likewise. Of the Marshalsea. The Master Marshal likewise, namely, John. And be- sides this he ought to have vouchers of the gifts and allow- ances that may arise from the King's Treasury and from his Chamber, and he ought to have vouchers against all the king's officials as witness for all things. The four Marshals who serve the family of the king as well clerks as knights and ministers, the day whereon they 146 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY make a harbourage or abide without the Court on the king's business, eightpence daily, and one gallon of house- hold wine and twelve candle-ends. If without, threepence daily for their man and a full candle. And if anyone of the Marshals shall be sent on the king's business, eight- pence only. The Serjeants of the Marshals if they shall be sent on the king's business, to each of them, daily, threepence. But if not they shall eat in the king's house. The Ushers, servants of the Bishop, shall eat in the house; to each of their men three half-pence daily and eight candle-ends. Gilbert Bonhomme and Ralph shall eat in the house without any other allowance. The Watchmen, a double ration ; and to their men three half- pence daily and four candles, and besides this of a morning each of them two loaves and one dish of meat and one gal- lon of beer. The Keeper of the Hearth shall always eat in the house, and from the feast of Saint Michael to Easter every day four- pence for the fire. The Usher of the Chamber each day on which the king fares abroad fourpence for the king's bed. The Keeper of the Tents shall eat in the house, and when- ever he was to carry the tents, he used to have allowance for one man and one sumpter-horse. Each of the four Hornblowers threepence daily. Twenty Serjeants, each one penny daily. The Keepers of the Gazehounds, each threepence daily and twopence to their men. And for every Harrier a half-penny daily. The King's Mews eightpence daily. The Knight's Huntsmen eightpence daily each. The Cat Hunters each fivepence. The Leader of the Limmers a penny. A Limmer, a half-penny. The Bear-ward threepence daily. The Huntsmen of the Hart, each threepence daily, and of the great Hart four ought to have a penny, and of the small Hart seven a penny. For the great Hart two men, and each a penny daily; and for the small Hart two men, and each a penny daily. THE EARLY ANGEVIN6 147 The Keepers of the Brachs, each threepence daily. The Wolf-catchers, twenty pence daily for them and their men and dogs, and they ought to have twenty-four cours- ing dogs, and eight Harriers, and six pounds by the year to buy horses, but they themselves say eight. Of the Archers who used to carry the king's bow, each five- pence daily ; and other archers the same. Bernard, Ralph le Bobeur, and their fellows each threepence daily. (In Court Life tinder the Plajitagenets, ed. H. Hall, London, 1890. p. 244.) 64. The First Coronation of Richard I. Roger de Hovenden The ceremony described by Roger de Hoveden illustrates the form by which the kings of England were installed in office. The royal state used by the Norman kings was derived from their Saxon predecessors and continued by the Angevins. The student should observe the function of the Church, the oath of the king, the manner of anointing and crowning, and the oaths of fealty and homage which concluded the ceremony. First came the bishops, abbats, and large numbers of the clergy, w^earing silken hoods, preceded by the cross, taper- bearers, censers, and holy water, as far as the door of the king's inner chamber; where they received the before-named duke, and escorted him to the church of Westminster, as far as the high altar, in solemn procession, with chaunts of praise, while all the way along which they went, from the door of the king's chamber to the altar, was covered with woollen cloth. The order of the procession was as follows : First came the clergy in their robes, carrying holy water, and the cross, tapers, and censers. Next came the priors, then the abbats, and then the bishops, in the midst of whom walked four barons, bearing four candlesticks of gold ; after whom came Godfrey de Lucy, bearing the king's cap [of main- tenance], and John Marshal by him, carrying two great and massive spurs of gold. After these came William Marshal, earl of Striguil, bearing the royal sceptre of gold, on the top of which was a cross of gold, and by him William Fitz- Patrick, earl of Salisbury, bearing a rod of gold, having on its top a dove of gold. After them came David, earl of Huntingdon, brother of the king of Scotland, John, earl of Mortaigne, the duke's brother, and Robert, earl of Leicester, carrying three golden swords from the king's treasury, the scabbards of w^hich were worked all over with gold ; the earl of Mortaigne walking in the middle. Next came six earls 148 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY and six barons, carrying on their shoulders a very large chequer, upon which were placed the royal arms and robes; and after them William de Mandeville, earl of Aumarle, carrying a great and massive crown of gold, decorated on every side with precious stones. Next came Richard, duke of Normandy, Hugh, bishop of Durham, walking at his right hand, and Reginald, bishop of Bath, at his left, and four barons holding over them a canopy of silk on four lofty spears. Then followed a great number of earls, barons, knights, and others, both clergy and laity, as far as the porch of the church, and dressed in their robes, entered with the duke, and proceeded as far as the choir. When the duke had come to the altar, in presence of the archbishops, bishops, clergy, and people, kneeling before the altar, with the holy Evangelists placed before him, and many relics of the saints, according to custom, he swore that he would all the days of his life observe peace, honour, and reverence towards God, the Holy Church, and its ordinances. He also swore that he would exercise true justice and equity towards the people committed to his charge. He also swore that he would abrogate bad laws and unjust customs, if any such had been introduced into his kingdom, and would enact good laws, and observe the same without fraud or evil intent. After this they took off all his clothes from the waist up- wards, except his shirt and breeches; his shirt having been previously separated over his shoulders; after which they shod him with sandals embroidered with gold. Then Bald- win, archbishop of Canterbury, pouring holy oil upon his head, breast, and arms, which signifies glory, valour, and knowledge, with suitable prayers for the occasion; after which the said archbishop placed a consecrated linen cloth on his head, and upon that the cap which Godfrey de Lucy had carried. They then clothed him in the royal robes, first a tunic, and then a dalmatic ; after which the said archbishop delivered to him the sword of rule, with which to crush evil- doers against the Church; this done, two earls placed the spurs upon his feet, which John Marshal had carried. After this, being robed in a mantle, he was led to the altar, where the said archbishop forbade him, in the name of Almighty God, to presume to take upon him this dignity, unless he had the full intention inviolably to observe the oaths and vows before-mentioned which he had made; to which he made answer that, with God's assistance, he w^ould without re- servation observe them all. After this, he himself took the THE EARLY ANGEVINS 149 crown from the altar and gave it to the archbishop ; on which, the archbishop delivered it to him, and placed it upon his head, it being supported by two earls in consequence of its extreme weight. After this, the archbishop delivered to him the sceptre to hold in his right hand, while he held the rod of royalty in his left; and, having been thus crowned, the king was led back to his seat by the before-named bishops of Durham and Bath, preceded by the taper-bearers and the three swords before-mentioned. After this, the mass of our Lord was commenced, and, when they came to the offertory, the before-named bishops led him to the altar, where he offered one mark of the purest gold, such being the proper offering for the king at each coronation; after which, the bishops before-named led him back to his seat. The mass having been concluded, and all things solemnly performed, the two bishops before-named, one on the right hand, the other on the left, led him back from the church to his chamber, crowned, and carrying a sceptre in his right hand and the rod of royalty in his left, the procession going in the same order as before. Then the procession returned to the choir, and our lord the king put off his royal crown and robes of royalty, and put on a crown and robes that were lighter ; and, thus crowned, went to dine ; on which the arch- bishops and bishops took their seats with him at the table, each according to his rank and dignity. The earls and barons also served in the king's palace, according to their several dignities ; while the citizens of London served in the cellars, and the citizens of Winchester in the kitchen . . . On the second day after his coronation, Richard, king of England, received the oaths of homage and fealty from the bishops, abbats, earls, and barons of England. {Annals of Roger de Hoveden/or 1189, trans, by H. T. Riley. London, 1853. II, 117.) 65. Levying a Feudal Aid (1198) Roger de Hoveden The manner in which the king's taxes were collected is well illustrated in the chosen selection. The minuteness of detail in the account makes it as interesting as valuable. This extract should be compared with that describing the levying of an aid in the seventeenth century (No. 151). ... In the same year, Richard, king of England, levied from each carucate or hide of land throughout all England five shillings as an aid; for the purpose of collecting which, 150 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY the said king sent through each county of England one clerk and one knight; who, with the sheriff of the county to which they were sent, and lawful knights elected for the purpose, making oath that they would faithfully perform the king's business, caused to appear before them the seneschals of the barons of the said county, and the lord or bailiff of every vill, and the reeve, together with the four lawful men of the vill, whether freemen or villeins, as also two law^ful knights of the hundred, who made oath that they would faithfully and without fraud declare what was the amount of carucates in each vill that were in tillage ; namely, how many were held in demesne, how many in villanage, how many in al- moign bestowed on religious orders, which the givers thereof were bound to make warranty of, or to pay for, or for which the said religious were bound to do service; and upon each carucate in tillage, by the king's commands, they first levied two shillings and then three shillings ; all of which was re- duced to writing. Of all this the clerk had one register, the knight another, the sheriff a third, and the seneschals of the barons a fourth register as to the land of their lords. This money was received by the hands of two lawful knights of each hundred, and by the hands of the bailiff of the hundred, and they were answerable for the same to the sheriff, and the sheriff answerable for the ' same accord- ing to the before-mentioned registers to the exchequer, in presence of the bishops, abbats, and barons appointed for the purpose. Also, for the punishment of the jurors who, contrary to their oath, should be guilty of concealing anything in the said matters, it was enacted that whatever villein should be convicted of perjury he should forfeit to his lord the best ox of his plough, and should, out of his own property, be answerable for as much money for the use of our lord the king as should be proved to have remained concealed by means of his perjury; but if a free man should be convicted, he was to be amerced by the king, and was to refund as well out of his own property as much as had been concealed by him, in the same manner as the villein. It was also enacted, that every baron should, with the aid of the sheriff, make levies upon his tenants; and if, by default of the baron, such levies should not be made, then there was to be taken from the demesne of the baron what should remain payable by his tenants, and the baron was to take the same from his tenants. Frank-fees of parish 151 , THE EARLY ANGEVIMS churches were exempted from the said tallage; and all escheats of barons which were held in the hands of our lord the king contributed thereto. But serjeanties of our lord the king, which were not attached to knights' fees, were excepted, although they were placed on the register, as also the number of the carucates of land, the values of their lands, and the names of those holding by serjeanty; and all those so holding, were sununoned to be at London on the octave at the end of Easter, to hear and perform the king's com- mands. The persons who were chosen for that purpose, and ap- pointed by our lord the king, according to the estimation of lawful men, set down a hundred acres of land for each carucate of land in cultivation. {Aufials of Roger de Hoi'eden/or 1198, ed. cited. II, 420.) PART IV FROM THE CHARTER TO THE REFORMATION (1215-1485) 153 CHAPTER IX THE PAPAL AUTHORITY TRIUMPHANT 66. The Struggle between John and Innocent III. Roger of Wendover Roger of Wendover (d. 1237) left a work known as The Flowers of History (formerly attributed to Matthew Paris). It is the chief contemporary source for the reign of King John. The stormy rule of that king was full of struggles between the Throne and the Church, and the Throne and the Baronage. The first chain of events grew out of the tripartite struggle between the cathedral chapter of Canterbury, the king, and the pope, to seat their respective candidates in the archbishopric of Canter- bury, in place of Hubert Walter, deceased. The pope was able to control the clergy, but the king refused to admit the right of Rome to appoint to the vacant see. THE KING OF ENGLAND ADMONISHED BY OUR LORD THE POPE In the same year pope Innocent, on learning that king John's heart was so hardened, that he would not either by persuasion or threats be induced to acquiesce in receiving Stephen as archbishop of Canterbury, was touched to the heart with grief, and, by advice of his cardinals, sent orders to William bishop of London, Eustace bishop of Ely, and Mauger bishop of Winchester, to go to the said king, about the matter of the church of Canterbury, and to give him wholesome counsel to yield to God in this matter, and so secure the Lord's favour; but if they found him contumacious and rebellious as he had hitherto been, he ordered them to lay an interdict on the whole kingdom of England, and to denounce to the said king that, if he did not check his bold- ness by that means, he, the pope, would lay his hand on him still more heavily ; since it was necessary for him to conquer, who for the safety of the holy church had made war on the devil and his angels, and despoiled the cloisters of hell. He also, by letters of the apostolic see, gave orders to the 15s 156 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY suffragan bishops of tlie church of Canterbury, and to the other prelates of that diocese, that, by virtue of their obedi- ence, they were to receive the aforesaid archbishop as their father and pastor, and were to obey him with all due affec- tion. 67. England under the Interdict A. 1208. The bishops of London, Ely, and Winchester, in execution of the legateship entrusted to them, went to king John, and after duly setting forth the apostolic commands, entreated of him humbly and with tears, that he, having God in his sight, would recall the archbishop and the monks of Canterbury to their church, and honour and love them with perfect affection; and they informed him that thus he would avoid the shame of an interdict, and the Disposer of rewards would, if he did so, multiply his temporal honours on him, and after his death would bestow lasting glory on him. When the said bishops wished, out of regard to the king, to prolong the discourse, the king became nearly mad with rage, and broke forth in words of blasphemy against the pope and his cardinals, swearing by God's teeth, that, if they or any other priests soever presumptuously dared to lay his domi- nions under an interdict, he would immediately send all the prelates of England, clerks as well as ordained persons, to the pope, and confiscate all their propert}^; he added more- over, that all the clerks of Rome or of the pope himself who could be found in England or in his other territories, he would send to Rome with their eyes plucked out, and their noses slit, that by these marks they might be known there from other people; in addition to this he plainly ordered the bishops to take themselves quickly from his sight, if they wished to keep their bodies free from harm. The bishops then, not finding any repentance in the king, departed, and, in the Lent following, fearlessly fulfilled the duty required of them by the pope, and accordingly on the morning of Monday in Passion week, which that year fell on the 23rd of March, they laid a general interdict on the whole of England ; which, since it was expressed to be by authority of our lord the pope, was inviolably observed by all without regard of person or privileges. Therefore all church services ceased to be performed in England, with the exception only of confession, and the viaticum in cases of extremity, and the baptism of children ; the bodies of the dead too were carried out of cities THE PAPAL AUTHORITY TRIUMPHANT 157 and towns, and buried in roads and ditches without prayers or the attendance of priests. What need I say more?. 68. John excommunicated by Name A. 1209. King John had now for nearly two years, as has been said before, unceasingly continued throughout England, on account of the interdict, a most severe persecution against the clergy as well as some of the laity, and had entirely de- stroyed all kind of hope in every one of any improvement or satisfaction, and pope Innocent could no longer put off the punishment of his rebellion ; wherefore, by the advice of his cardinals, he, in order to cut up by the root such an insult to the church, gave orders to the bishops of London, Ely, and Winchester, to declare the said king excommunicated by name, and solemnly to publish this sentence every Sunday and feast day in all the conventual churches throughout England, that thus the king might be more strictly shunned by every one. But after the aforesaid bishops had, by the apostolic authority, entrusted the publication of this sentence to their fellow bishops who had remained in England, and to the other prelates of the church, they all, through fear of or regard for the king, became like dumb dogs not daring to bark, wherefore they put off fulfilling the duty enjoined on them by the apostolic mandate, and failed to proceed accord- ing to the usual course of justice. Nevertheless in a short time the decree became known to all in the roads and streets, and even in the places of assembly of the people it afforded a subject of secret conversation to all ; amongst others, as Geoffrey archdeacon of Norwich was one day sitting in the Exchequer at Westminster, attending to the king's business, he began to talk privately with his companions who sat with him, of the decree which was sent forth against the king; and said that it was not safe for beneficed persons to remain any longer in their allegiance to an excommunicated king; after saying which, he went to his own house without asking the king's permission. This event coming soon after to the knowledge of the king, he was not a little annoyed, and sent William Talbot a knight, with some soldiers, to seize the archdeacon, and they, after he was taken, bound him in chains and threw him into prison; after he had been there a few days, by command of the said king a cap of lead was put on him, and at length, being overcome by want of food as well as by the weight of the leaden cap, he departed to the Lord. 158 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 69. The Pope deposes the King A. 1212. About this time Stephen archbishop of Canter- bury, and the bishops William of London, and Eustace of Ely, went to Rome and informed the pope of the divers rebel- lions and enormities perpetrated by the king of England from the time of the interdict up to the present time, by un- ceasingly laying the hands of rage and cruelty on the holy church in opposition to the Lord; and they therefore humbly supplicated the pope in his pious compassion to assist the church of England, now labouring as it were in its last ex- tremities. The pope then being deeply grieved for the deso- lation of the kingdom of England, by the advice of his cardi- nals, bishops, and other wise men, definitively decreed that John king of England should be deposed from the throne of that kingdom, and that another, more worthy than he, to be chosen by the pope, should succeed him. In pursuance of this his decree, our lord the pope wrote to the most potent Philip, king of the French, ordering him, in remission of all his faults, to undertake this business, and declaring that, after he had expelled the English king from the throne of that kingdom, he and his successors should hold possession of the kingdom of England for ever. Besides this, he wrote to all the nobles, knights, and other warlike men throughout the different countries, ordering them to assume the sign of the cross, and to follow the king of the French as their leader, to dethrone the English king, and thus to revenge the insult which had been cast on the universal church : he also ordered that all those who afforded money or personal assistance in overthrowing that contumacious king, should, like those who went to visit the Lord's sepulchre, remain secure under the protection of the church, as regarded their property, persons, and spiritual interests. After this the pope, on his part, sent Pandulph, a sub-deacon, with the archbishop and bishops above-named, into the French provinces, that in his own presence all his commands above related might be ful- filled; Pandulph, however, on leaving the pope when all others were away from him, secretly inquired of his holiness what it was his pleasure should be done, if by chance he should find any of the fruits of repentance in John, so that he would give satisfaction to the Lord and the church of Rome for all matters in regard of this business. The pope then dictated a simple form of peace, and said that if John determined to agree to it, he might find favour with the apostolic see. THE PAPAL AUTHORITY TRIUMPHANT 159 70. The Papal Legate in England A. 1213. Whilst the English king was with his army- waiting the approach of the king of the French near the sea- coast, two of the brothers of the Temple arrived at Dover, and coming to the king in a friendly manner said to him : "We have been sent to you, most potent king, for the benefit of yourself and your kingdom, by Pandulph the sub-deacon and familiar of our lord the pope, who desires to have an interview with you ; and he will propose to you a form of peace, by which you can be reconciled to God and to the church, although you have by the court of Rome been deposed from your right to the sovereignty of England, and been condemned by decree of that court." The king then, on hear- ing the speech of the Templars, ordered them immediately to cross the sea and fetch Pandulph to him. Pandulph there- fore, on this invitation of the king came to him at Dover, and spoke to him in these words : "Behold, the most potent king of the French is at the mouth of the Seine with a countless fleet, and a large army of horse and foot, waiting till he is strengthened with a larger force, to come upon you and your kingdom, and to expel you from it by force, as an enemy to the Lord and the supreme pontiff, and afterwards, by- authority of the apostolic see to take possession of the king- dom of England for ever. There also coming with him all the bishops who have for a long while been banished from England, with the exiled clergy and laity, by his assistance, to recover by force their episcopal sees and other property, and to fulfil to him for the future the obedience formerly shown to you and your ancestors. The said king moreover says that he holds papers of fealty and subjection from al- most all the nobles of England, on which account he feels secure of bringing the business he has undertaken to a most successful termination. Consult therefore your own ad- vantage, and become penitent as if you were in your last moments, and delay not to appease that God whom you have provoked to a heavy vengeance. If you are willing to give sufficient security that you will submit to the judgment of the church, and to humble yourself before Him who humbled himself for you, you may, through the compassion of the apostolic see, recover the sovereignty, from which you have been abjudicated at Rome on account of your contumacy. Now therefore reflect, lest your enemies shall have cause to rejoice over you, and bring not yourself into difficulties, i6o SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY from which, however you may wish to do so, you will not be able to extricate yourself." 71. The Repentance of the King [a.d. 1213.] King John, hearing and seeing the truth of all this, was much annoyed and alarmed, seeing how imminent the danger was on every side. There were four principal reasons, which urged him to repentance and atonement; the first was that he had been now for five years lying under excommunication, and had so offended God and the holy church, that he gave up all hopes of saving his soul; the second was, that he dreaded the arrival of the French king, who was waiting near the sea-coast with a countless army, and planning his downfall; the third was, he feared, should he give battle to his approaching enemies, lest he should be abandoned to himself in the field by the nobles of England and his own people, or be given up to his enemies for destruc- tion; but his fourth reason alarmed him more than all the rest, for the day of our Lord's ascension was drawing near, when he feared that, according to the prophecy of Peter the hermit mentioned above, he should with his life lose the tem- poral as well as the eternal kingdom. Being therefore driven to despair by these and the like reasons he yielded to the persuasions of Pandulph, and, although not without pain, he granted the underwritten form of peace ; he also swore by the holy gospels in the presence of Pandulph, that he would be obedient to the church's sentence, and sixteen of the most powerful nobles of the kingdom swore on the soul of the king himself, that, should he repent of his promise, they would, to the utmost of their power, compel him to fulfil it. 72. John resigns Crown and Kingdom to the Pope [a.d. 1213.] Matters having been thus arranged on the fif- teenth of May, which was the eve of Ascension-day, the Eng- lish king and Pandulph, with the nobles of the kingdom, met at the house of the Knights Templars near Dover, and there the said king, according to a decree pronounced at Rome, resigned his crown with the kingdoms of England and Ire- land into the hands of our lord the pope, whose functions the said Pandulph was then performing. After having resigned them then he gave the aforesaid kingdoms to the pope and his successors, and confirmed them to the latter by the underwritten charter; — THE PAPAL AUTHORITY TRIUMPHANT i6t "John, by the grace of God, king of England, &c. to all the faithfid servants of Christ who shall behold this charter, health in the Lord. — We wish it, by this our charter signed with our seal, to be known to you, that we, having in many things offended God and our mother the holy church, and being in great need of the divine mercy for our sins, and not having wherewithal to make a worthy offering as an atone ment to God, and to pay the just demands of the church, un- less we humiliate ourselves before Him who humiliated himself for us even to death ; we, impelled by the inspiration of the Holy Spirit, and not by force or from fear of the interdict, but of our own free will and consent, and by the general advice of our barons, assign and grant to God, and his holy apostles Peter and Paul, and to the holy church of Rome our mother, and to our lord pope Innocent and his catholic successors, the whole kingdom of England and the whole kingdom of Ireland, with all their rights and ap- purtenances, in remission of the sins of us and our whole race, as well for those living as for the dead ; and hence- forth we retain and hold those countries from him and the church of Rome as vicegerent, and this we declare in the presence of this learned man Pandulph, subdeacon and familiar of our lord the pope. i\nd we have made our hom- age and sworn allegance to our lord the pope and his catholic successors, and the church of Rome in manner hereunder written ; and we will make our homage and allegiance for the same in presence of our lord the pope himself, if we are able to go before him ; and v\^e bind our successors and heirs by our wife for ever, in like manner, to do homage and render allegiance, without opposition, to the supreme pontiff for the time being, and the church of Rome. And in token of this lasting bond and grant, we will and determine that, from our own income and from our special revenues arising from the aforesaid kingdoms, the church of Rome shall, for all service and custom which we owe to them, saving always the St. Peter's pence, receive annually a thousand marks sterling- money ; that is to say, five hundred marks at Michaelmas, and five hundred at Easter; that is, seven hundred for the kingdom of England, and three hundred for Ireland; saving to us and our heirs all our rights, privileges, and royal cus- toms. And as we wish to ratify and confirm all that has been above written, we bind ourselves and our successors not to contravene it; and if we, or any one of our successors, shall dare to oppose this, let him, whoever he be, be deprived i62 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY of his right in the kingdom. And let this charter of our bond and grant remain confirmed for ever. Witness myself at the hause of the knights of the Temple near Dover, in the presence of Henry archbishop of Dubl.n, John bishop of Nor- wich, Geoffrey Fitz-Peter, William earl of Salisbury, William earl of Pembroke, Reginald count of Boulogne, William earl Warenne, Sayer earl Winton, William earl of Arundel, William earl of Ferrars, William Briuere, Peter Fitz-Here- bert, and Warin Fitz-Gerald, this fifteenth day of May, in the fourteenth year of our reign." 73. John does Homage to the Pope [a.d. 1213.] This charter of the king's, as above-mentioned, having been reduced to writing, he delivered it to Pandulph to be taken to pope Innocent, and immediately afterwards in the sight of all, he made the underwritten homage : 'T, John, by the grace of God, king of England and lord of Ireland, will, from this time as formerly, be faithful to God, St. Peter, the church of Rome, and to my liege lord pope Innocent and his catholic successors; I will not act, speak, consent to, or advise, anything by which they may lose life or limb, or be exposed to caption by treachery; I will prevent damage to them if I am aware of it; and, if in my power, will repair it; or else I will inform them as soon as in my power so to do, or will tell it to such a person as I believe will be sure to in- form them of it; any purpose which they may entrust to me themselves, or by their messengers or letters, I will keep secret, and, if I know of it, will not disclose it to any one to their injury; I will assist in holding and defending the in- heritance of St. Peter, and particularly the kingdoms of Eng- land and Ireland, against all men, to the utmost of my power. So may God and the holy gospel help me. Amen." • — [a.d. 1214.] By the advice of Pandulph, . . . Stephen arch- bishop of Canterbury, and the bishops William of London, Eustace of Ely, Hubert of Lincoln, and Giles of Hereford, embarked in company with others of the clergy and laity who were in exile on account of the interdict, and, landing at Dover on the i6th of July, they set out to see the king, and came to him at Winchester on St. Margaret the virgin's day. The king, when he heard of their approach, went out to meet them, and when he saw the archbishop and bishops, he pros- trated himself at their feet, and besought them in tears to THE PAPAL AUTHORITY TRIUMPHANT 163 have compassion on him and the kingdom of England. The said archbishop and bishops, seeing the king's great humility, raised him from the ground, and taking him by the hand on each side, they led him to the door of the cathedral church, where they chanted the fiftieth psalm, and, in the presence of all the nobles, who wept with joy, they absolved him according to the custom of the church. At this absolution, the king swore on the holy gospels that he would love holy church and its ordained members, and would, to the utmost of his power, defend and maintain them against all their enemies; and that he would renew all the good laws of his ancestors, especially those of king Edward, would annul bad ones, would judge his subjects according to the just decrees of his courts, and would restore his rights to each and all. He also swore that, before the next Easter, he would make restitution of confiscated property to all who were concerned in the matter of the interdict; and if he did not do so, he would consent to have the former sentence of excommunica- tion renewed. He moreover swore fealty and obedience to pope Innocent and his catholic successors, as was contained in the above-written charter: the archbishop then took the king into the church, and there performed mass, after which the archbishop, bishops, and nobles, feasted at the same table with the king, amidst joy and festivity. The next day the king sent letters to all the sheriffs of the kingdom, ordering them to send four liege men from each town in their demesne, together with the warden, to St, Alban's on the 4th of August, that through them and his other agents he might make in- quiries about the losses and confiscated property of each of the bishops, and how much was due to each. He then set out in all haste to Portsmouth, that he might thence cross to Poictou, and gave charge of the kingdom to Geoffrey Fitz- Peter and the bishop of Winchester, with orders that they were to consult with the archbishop of Canterbury in ar- ranging the business of the kingdom. On the king's arrival at Portsmouth, there came to him there an immense number of knights, complaining that, during their long stay there they had spent all their money, and that therefore unless they were supplied with money from the treasury, they could not follow him. This the king refused, but, flying into a rage, he embarked with his private attendants, and after three days landed at Guernsey, whilst his nobles returned home ; and the king, seeing himself thus abandoned, was compelled to return to England himself. i64 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 74. Declaration of Laws and Rights [a.d. 1214.] Whilst this was passing, Geoffrey Fitz-Peter and the bishop of Winchester held a council at St. Alban's with the archbishop, bishops, and nobles of the kingdom, at which the peace made by the king was told to all, and, on behalf of the said king, it was strictly ordered, that all the laws of his grandfather king Henry should be kept by all throughout the kingdom, and that all unjust laws should be utterly abolished. (Roger of Wendover's Flowers 0/ History. Trans. J. A. Giles, Lond. 1849 II, for years given.) CHAPTER X THE WINNING OF THE CHARTER 75. The Rising of the Barons Roger of Wendoi 115. Directions for Visitation of Monasteries Records, Rurnet Before a religious house was suppressed it was visited and inspected. The general directions to the king's agents are given in the important document given below. This is presented in full because of its great value in describing the ideal manage- 248 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY ment of a monastery and its implication of prevailing irregulari- ties. INSTRUCTIONS FOR THE GENERAL VISITATION OF THE MONASTERIES Articuli Regice Inqisitionis, in Monastic am vitam agent es, exponendi, et prcecipue in exemptos a jnrisdictione Diocce- sana, jam tantum Regice Majestati et ejus jnrisdictioni sub- ditos et suhjectos, ac hiijus inclyti siii Regni Stattitis et legi- hiis, nullisq; aliis penitus, obnoxios et astrictos. 1. In primis, Whether divine service be solemnly sung, said, observed, and kept, in this monastery, according to the number and the abilities thereof, by night and by day, in due time and hours? and how many be present commonly at mattins, and other service, and vv^ho be absent, and so accus- tomed to be, without cause or sickness ? 2. Item, How many monks, canons regulars, or nuns, be within this monastery, and how many there ought to be, and whether the number be complete according to the foun- der's will, or the statutes, ordinances, and laudible custom of this house; and whether the number be augmented or dimin- ished now of late? 3. Item, Who were the first founders of this house? Fundationem primam, secitndam, tertiam, et qtiot- qnot habent, exhibeant. 4. Item, Whether this house hath had any increase of lands given to it sithence the first foundation thereof? by whom? by how many? and when? 5. Item, To what sum of money those revenues and rents of this house do extend and amount unto yearly. 6. Item, Whether this house was ever translated from one habit and order to another? by whose authority? and for what cause ? Translationem exhibeant. 7. Item, How the lands and possessions appertaining unto this monastery, given by the first founder, and all other lands given sithence the first foundation, were granted, given, and established, and so first brought to morte main? whether by the only authority of the giver, or by the author- ization of the prince for that time reigning, and by what tenor and form ye hold them? Donationem et C onfirmationem exhibeant. HENRY VIII. AND THE CHURCH ' 249 8. Item, What evidence have you to show for all and sin- gular your lands, manors, tenements, and other your possesv sons mortisate, and given unto you, and this your monas^ tery ? 9. Item, Wherefore, for what causes and considerations ye were exempt from your diocesan? and what was your suggestion and motive at the obtaining of your said exemp- tion? Exemptionem exhibeant. 10. Item, Whether ye have any private, peculiar, or local statutes, confirmations, ordinances, or rules, made only for the behoof, good order, and singular weal of this house, be- sides the rules of your profession? and whether they were made either by your founders before your exemption, or by the good fathers of this house, with the whole consent of the brethren, being sinneth your exemption ; to what use they were made, and how ye observe them? Statuta ilia localia, et alia quotquot hahent, exhibeant. 11. Item, By what way and form the master of this house was elected and chosen? And whether all the brethren having, or ought to have by the law, statutes, or laudable custom of this house, voices in the election, were present in the same election, or lawfully called or cited to it? 12. Item, Whether any persons excommunicate, suspended, or interdicted, did give voices in the same election ? 13. Item, Within what time after the election was made and done, the master of this house was confirmed? and by whom ? 14. Item, Whether unto the confirmation, all that had in- terest, or that would object against the same, were lawfully cited, monished, and called? Exhibeat Electionem, Confirmationem; et Titii- lum sua I ncumb entice. 15. Item, What rule the master of this house, and other the brethren, do profess? 16. Item, How many be professed, and how many be novices; and whether the novices have like habit, or use to wear an habit distinct from the habit of the brethren pro- fessed ? 17. Item, Whether ye do use to profess your novices in due 250 SDCRCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY time, and within what time and space after they have taken the habit upon them? i8. Item, Whether the brethren of this house do know the rule that they have professed, and whether they keep their profession according to that their rule and custom of this house; an in especial, the three substantial and principal vows, that is to say, pove^'ty, chastity, and obedience. 19. Item, Whether any of the brethren use any propriety of money or of plate in their chambers ; or of any other manner thing unwarre of the master, and without his knowl- edge and license, or by his sufferance and knowledge? and for what cause? 20. ) 21. >- [These relate to questions of chastity.] 22. ) 23. Item, Whether the brethren of this house keep their obedience, being ready at their master's commandment, in all things honest, lawful, and reasonable? Sequuntiir Regulcu Cceremoniales. 24. Item, Whether ye do keep silence in the church, cloister, fraitry, and dormitory, at the hours and time spe- cified in your rule? 25. Item, Whether ye do keep fasting and abstinence, ac- cording to your rules, statutes, ordinances, and laudable customs of this house ? 26. Item, Whether ye abstain from flesh in time of Ad- vent, and other times declared and specified by the law, rules, and laudable customs of this house ? 2y. Item, Whether ye wear shirts and sheets of woollen, or that ye have any constitution, ordinance, or dispensation, granted or made to the contrary, by sufficient and lawful authority ? Profitentes Regulam Benedicti quam arctissime tenentiir ad prcudicta Cceremonialia obser- vanda. 28. Item, Whether ye do sleep altogether in the dormitory, under one roof, or not? 29. Item, Whether ye have all separate beds, or any one of you doth lay with another? 30. Item, Whether ye do keep the fraitry at meals, so that two parts, or the least, the two part of the whole HENRY VIII. AND THE CHURCH 251 covent be always there, unless the master at every one time dispense with you to the contrary? 31. Item, Whether, ye do wear your religious habit con- tinually, and never leave it off but when ye go to bed? 2^2. Item, Whether every brethren of this house have lightly departed hence, and hath gone to any other house of like order and profession, without special letters and license of their master? 33. Item, Whether the master and brethren of this house have received and admitted any brother of another house, without special license and letters of his master and head? 34. Item, Whether any of you, sithence the time of your profession, hath gone out of this house to his friends, or otherwise? 35. Item, How oftimes he did so, and how long at every time ye tarried forth ? 36. Item, W^hether ye had special license of your master so to go forth, or not? 37. Item, Whether at every time of your being forth, ye changed or left off your habit, or every part thereof? 38. Item, Whether ye, or any of you be, or hath been, in manifest apostacy, that is to say, fugitives or vagabonds? 39. Item, For what cause or occasion ye have so gone forth and been in apostacy ? and whether the cause of your going forth was by reason of the great cruelty of your master, or by his negligence, not calling you home to your cloister? 40. Item, W^hether ye be weekly shaven, and do not nourish or suffer your hair to be long? and whether ye wear your apparel according to the rule, not too excessive nor too exquisite ; and in likewise the trappos of your horses, and other your bearing beasts? 41. Item, Whether the master and head of this house do use his brethren charitably, without partiality, malice, envy, grudge, or displeasure, more showed to one than to another? 42. Item, Whether he do use his disciplines, corrections, and punishments upon his brethren, with mercy, pity, and charity, without cruelty, rigorousness, and enormous hurt, no more favouring one than another? 43. Item, Whether any brother, or religious person of this house, be incorrigible ? 44. Item, Whether the master of this house do use his brethren charitably when they be sick and diseased? and whether in time of their sickness he do procure unto them physicians, and all other necessaries? 252 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 45. Item, Whether he make his accompts (as he ought to do) once every year before his brethren, and chiefly the seniors and officers, to the intent they may be made privy to the state and condition of the house, and know perfectly the due administration thereof? 46. Item, Whether the prior, subprior, sellerar, kitchener, terrure, sacristen, or any such like officer, having adminis- tration of every manner revenues of this house, do make his whole and true accompt, according as he is bound to do, not applying anything by him received to his own proper use or commodity? 47. Item, Whether any religious person of this house do bear, occupy, or exercise more offices than one, for, and to his own singular commodity, advantage, or profit, by the partial dealing of the master ? 48. Item, Whether all and singular the revenues and profits of this house be converted and employed to the be- hove and use thereof, and of the brethren, according to the founder's mind and giver? 49. Item, Whether the master do make sufficient repara- tions upon his monastery, as the church and all other hous- ing thereto adjoined, and also upon all other the lands, granges, farms, and tenements belonging to the same ; and whether he suffer any dilapidation, decay, or ruin in any part of them? 50. Item, Whether there be any inventory made of all and singular the moveables, goods, which from time to time have been, and yet be in this house, as of jewels, reliques, orna- ments, vestiments, ready money, plate, bedding, with other utensils ; also of corn, chattels, and other commodities, to the intent the state and condition of this house may be always known ? 51. Item, That ye express truly and sincerely the whole state and condition of this house, as in money, plate, cattle, corn, and other goods? 52. Item, Whether this monastery be indebted? to whom? and for what cause? 53. Item, Whether any of the lands be sold, or mortgaged? and for what sums? 54. Item, Whether any be let to farm by the master of this house for term of years, and for how many years ? and specially, whether they be letten for small sums, or for less sums than they were wont to be letten for, to the intent to have great sums of ready money beforehand? HENRY VIII. AND THE CHURCH 253 55. Item, Whether he do enforce, compel or constrain his brethren, or any of them, to consent to the sealing of any leases, grants, farm-holds, annuities, corrodies, or any other alienations? 56. Item, Whether the plate and jewels, or any part or parcel thereof, or of any other moveable goods of this house be laid to pledge, sold, or alienated for a time, or for ever? for what cause, and to whom? or otherwise embezzled, or consumed? 57. Item, Whether the master of this house be wont to give under his seal or office, or convent-seal, farms, corrodies, annuities, or offices, to his kinsfolk, alliances, friends, or acquaintances, for term of years, or otherwise, to the hurt, hindrance, damage, and impoverishment of this house? 58. hem. Whether he be wont to grant any patent, or convent-seal, without the consent of his brethren? 59. Item, Whether the convent-seal of this house be surely and safely kept under three keys ; that is to say, one remain- ing and being in the custody of the master, and the other two in the custody of two seniors ? 60. Item, Whether the muniments and evidences of the lands, rents, and revenues of this house, be safely kept from vermin and moistness? 61. Item, Whether the master do keep hospitality accord- ing to the ability of his house, and in like manner as other fathers hereof have done heretofore ? 62. Item, Whether the master of this house in receiving any novice, being of willing and toward mind to enter into religion, hath demanded or received, or convented to receive any money, rewards, or any other temporal commodities of him so entering, or willing to enter, or of any other his friends? and whether for not promising, granting, or giving such rewards or gifts, any hath been repelled and not re- ceived? 63. Item, Whether the novices, and other received into religion, have a preceptor and master deputed unto them to teach them grammar and good letters? 64. Item, Whether any senior of this house be deputed to declare, inform, and instruct them their rules, and where- unto they shall be bounden to observe and keep after their profession ? 65. Item, Whether any of you have taken upon him the habit and profession of your religion, chiefly for the intent, hope, or trust to be made head and master of this house? 254 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 66. Item, Whether the master of this house, in giving any advocation, nomination, presentation, or collation of any parsonage, vicarage, chapel, or benefice of the patronage or gift of this house, do take or use to take any manner pension, portion, or other commodity or gains ; or else doth make any convention or compaction, whereby any lucre many ensue to him in that behalf? 67. Item, Whether he do receive, or use to receive, the fruits and revenues of every such benefice vacant, or use to borrow any money of him to whom he intendeth to give such benefice unto, expressly covenanting or intending, that he so obtaining the said benefice shall freely and clearly remit the said money so borrowed? 68. Item, What and how many benefices the master of this house doth occupy and keep in his own hands ? 69. Item, Whether the same benefices be appropriate and united to this house by sufficient authority? 70. Item, Whether the master of this house doth make distributions amongst the parishioners of the benefices ap- propriate, and doth keep and observe all and singular other provisions and ordinances specified and expressed in the ap- propriations of the same benefices? Exhiheant omnes et singulas Appropriationes, una cum Ordinationibus et Donationibus Vi- cariatuum. yi. Item, Whether he do promote unto such benefices as be of his gift sufficient and able persons in learning, man- ners, and virtue? y2. Item, Whether any brother of this house do serve any parish-church, being appropriate and united to the same, and how many churches appropriate to be so served? 73. Item, Whether the master of this house hath and pos- sesseth any benefice with cure, or any other dignity with his abbey ? Si aliqiwd tale habet, Dispensationem exhibeat. 74. Item., Whether the master of this house at any time since he was first made abbot, or master, did know or believe that he was suspended, or excommunicate, either by the law, or by any judge; and whether he knowing or supposing him- self so to be, did sing mass in the mean time, and before he was absolved? In Visitatione Monialium ad PrcBmissa addantur hcec. HENRY VIIL AND THE CHURCH 255 75. Item, Whether this monastery hath good and sufficient enclosure, and whether the doors and windows be diHgently kept shut, so that no man can have any entry into the same or any part thereof at inconvenient times? Propter quod necessarium erit Visitatori circiim- ire Monasterium, ac videre et rimare dis- positionem ccdificiontiii, et an sint aliqna loca pervia per qiicc secrete iiitrari possit; et una seciiin Jiabeat Abbafissain cum duabus aiit tribus senioribus Monialibus, a quibus fuiii interroget, an ostia Monasterii singulis qui- husque noctibus sub clavibus clausa tenean- tiir, et qu:y o7vn Time, by Sir N. W. Wraxall, Phila., 1837 Part II, li^/f.) 500 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 2IO. Speech of King George on Catholic Emancipation Annual Register For more than a century Catholics had been subjected to many disabilities. They were not only excluded from holding civil office, but every relation of life was affected. The repressive legislation harassed the Catholics in the possession of their property, the education of their children, and the exercise of their religion. Such an attitude toward Catholic citizens re- sulted in agitation looking toward emancipation, a number of Protestants joining in the movement. The final conflict with intolerance was begun in 1778, with Sir George Saville's measure for the relief of Roman Catholics. It was carried on by Pitt, Grenville, Grattan, Canning, and other leaders, until in 1829 came the last struggle, which was to end in Catholic emancipa- tion. The necessity of such a measure had been accentuated by the condition of Ireland. The King's Address, given below, was the first step in the movement of the session. It was a surprise and disaster to the intolerant party. It aroused the bitterest invective; but the majority, Protestants as well as Catholics, welcomed the promise of support which it bore, and v»^hich alone their cause had lacked for success. My Lords and Gentlemen: The state of Ireland has been the object of His Majesty's continued solicitude. His Majesty laments that in that part of the United King- dom an Association should still exist, which is dangerous to the public peace, and inconsistent with the spirit of the Constitution; which keeps alive discord and ill-will amongst His Majesty's subjects; and which must, if permitted to con- tinue, effectually obstruct every effort permanently to im- prove the condition of Ireland. His Majesty confidently relies on the wisdom and on the support of his parliament; and His Majesty feels assured that you will commit to him such powers that may enable His Majesty to maintain his just authority. His Majesty recommends that, when his essential object shall have been accomplished, you should take into your deliberate consideration the whole condition of Ireland, and that you should review the laws which impose civil dis- abilities on His Majesty's Roman Catholic subjects. You will consider whether the removal of these disabilities can be effected consistently with the full and permanent security of our establishments in church and state, with the maintenance of the reformed religion established by law, and of the rights and privileges of the bishops and of the EMANCIPATION 501 clergy of this realm, and of the churches committed to their charge. These are institutions which must ever be held sacred in this Protestant kingdom, and which it is the duty and deter- mination of his Majesty to preserve inviolate. His Majesty most earnestly recommends to you to enter upon the consideration of a subject of such paramount im- portance, deeply interesting to the best feelings of his people, and involving the tranquillity and concord of the United Kingdoms, with the temper and the moderation which will best ensure the successful issue of your deliberations. {Animal Register, 1829, p. v. 71, 5.) 211. Speech of the Attorney-General against the Catholic Emancipation Bill Annual Regts.'ei' The opponents of the Emancipation Bill were not entirely in- fluenced by religious intolerance. The relation of Church and State was considered by many a very buckler of English in- dependence, and any measure likely to weaken the influence of the Church of England was thought by them to be dangerous to the welfare of the realm. The following speech, though in- temperate in its language, well sums up the main arguments of the opponents of the Bill. . . . When he, the Attorney-general of the king, was called on to frame an act of parliament, it was not unnatural that he should look, as a lawyer, to a higher authority than him- self, namely the lord Chancellor. How could the Attorney- general prepare a bill, which the lord Chancellor had de- clared would subvert the Protestant church of England? and he thought he was placing himself under a strong shield, when he took his position behind the buckler of lord Chancel- lor Lyndhurst. "When my attention was drawn to the fram- ing of this bill, I felt it my duty to look over the oath taken by the lord Chancellor, as well as that taken by the Attorney- general ; and it was my judgment, right or wrong, that, when desired to frame this bill, I was called to draw a bill sub- versive of the Protestant church, which his Majesty was bound by his coronation oath to support, li his Majesty chose to dispense with the obligations of the coronation oath, he might do so, but I would do no act to put him in jeop- ardy. These are the grounds on which I refused, and wotild refuse a hundred times over, to put one line to paper of what constitutes the atrocious bill now before the House. Hun- dreds of those who now listen to me must remember the 502 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY able, valuable, and impressive speech delivered two years ago by the present lord Chancellor, then Master of the Rolls, and a member of this House. It will also be in the recollec- tion of hundreds that that eminent individual, than whom- none is more acute in reasoning, more classical in language, and more powerful in delivery, then Master of the Rolls, but now lord Chancellor, quarrelled with the late Mr. Canning on this very subject. Am I then to blame for refusing to do that in the subordinate office of Attorney-general, which a more eminent adviser of the Crown, only two years ago, de- clared, he would not consent to do? Am I, then, to be twit- ted, taunted, and attacked? I dare them to attack me. I have no speech to eat up. I have no apostacy disgracefully to explain. I have no paltry subterfuge to resort to. I have not to say that a thing is black one day, and white another, I have not been in one year a Protestant Master of the Rolls, and in the next a Catholic lord Chancellor. I would rather remain as I am, the humble member for Plympton, than be guilty of such apostacy — such contradiction — such unex- plainable conversion — such miserable, contemptible apos- tacy." The Attorney-general then entered into an examination of the bill itself, which, he said, he was doubtful whether members understood. It contained an oath to be taken, instead of the present oaths of abjuration and supremacy which had excluded the Catholics. But there was no provision in the bill which confined this oath to Catholics. It was an oath which any man might take, whether Catholic or not. A per- son, who was not a Catholic, might, by taking it, enjoy the privilege of a Catholic. The oath ought to have stated, 'T am a Catholic, and swear so and so." But the bill did not require any such declaration. He supposed that this was an imitation of James the Second's scheme of liberty and con- science. Peel and Co. were supported on the principles of James II. For the effect of the oath was, that any man might gain ad- mission to office, or to the House of Commons; whereas he understands the object of the alteration to be, that only those, who swore they were Catholics, were to be permitted to take the oath. Another clause supposed that a man, who was a Catholic, might be prime minister ; it gave a general capacity to office. All offices, said the bill, are open to Catholics, with one or two exceptions ; ecclesiastical appointments, how- ever, were to be separated from the patronage, and vested in EMANCIPATION 503 commissions. Now, Catholics had never manifested an un- ambitious temper, and a Catholic prime minister would never be satisfied with this retrenchment of his privileges. And who was to appoint the commissioners ? Why, a Protestant lord Chancellor, lord Lyndhurst. The lord Chancellor would have the appointment to ecclesiastical places ; but was this sufficient security? Lord Shaftesbury was a Protestant chancellor, and so was lord Jeffries. Was the conduct of Jeffries to the bishops forgotten ? — a riian who, though a Protestant, was as great an enemy to Protestants, and as adverse to admitting them to power, as Father Peter himself. The protection of the Great Seal was as little to be relied on as in the reign of Charles II., when lord Shaftesbury was chancellor, or in that of James II., when Jeffries filled that office. There might come a time, when no security would be found in the character of a lord Chancellor. And who would the commissioners select? Would they select Protestants who would, or those who would not, apostatize. According to the bill, any Catholic, who took ecclesiastical preferment, was guilty of a misdemeanour, and could hold his office no longer; and again, any Catholic, who advised His Majesty respecting the appointment to an ecclesiastical office, was subject to the same penalty. Might he be permitted to ask who drew that clause ? the very clause, which created the offence, contained an absolute prevention of a conviction for that offence. The church of Ireland was protected by a flimsy sort of security in the bill. None of the dignities of the Romish church were to be permitted, eo nomine, to hold English titles, as nominees of the pope ; but these titles might be held by virtue of a money medium ; a 50 / bank note would enable Dr. Doyle, or Dr. Curtis, or any other, to sport Catho- lic titles. The bill forbade this, except upon the payment of 50 I., which was all the penalty inflicted. There was no penalty in the act higher than 200 I., so that, in fact, the whole protection of the British constitution consisted in pen- alties of 50 L, 100 /., and 200 I. No control over the see of Rome ; none over the nomination of the bishops ; nothing after the passing of this bill in the way of security of the Protestant establishment — but those penalties of 50 /., 100 /., and 200 /. This was the declared value of the Protestant constitution of the empire in current coin. When this bill was dissected and anatomized, it destroyed itself. It ad- mitted the danger, and yet provided no security for Prot- estants. He would not have condescended to stultify him- S04 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY self by the composition of such a bill. He refused to draw it up. The folly and the contradictions be upon the heads of those who drew it. They might have turned him out of office ; but he would not be made such a dirty tool as to draw that bill. Let who would, he would not defile pen, or waste paper, by such an act of folly, and forfeit his character for common sense and honesty. He had, therefore, declined to have anything to do with it. {Anmial Register, /or 1829, vol. 71, p. 55.) 212. Speech of Lord Plunkett for the Emancipation Bill Anmial Register The speeches made in favour of the Emancipation Bill are in general far more dignified and logical than those of its op- ponents. The supporters of the measure rested their cause upon the argument of the inalienable right of every man to citizen- ship and equality under the law ; and they buttressed their case with historical as well as polemical arguments. The speech which follows is indicative of the general attitude of the friends of emancipation. Lord Plunkett said, that he had reserved himself for the purpose of hearing the unanswerable arguments against the bill, which lord Eldon on former occasions had threatened he would produce when the measure was fairly before the House. As that noble and learned lord, however, had brought forth nothing but the ipse dixit of his own authority, unsustained either by ingenious argument, by historical deduction, or by an appeal to public and authenticated documents, he felt him- self so far absolved from the necessity of refuting anticipated arguments for which he had prepared himself, that he would address his observations more particularly to the position that the bill was calculated to subvert the Protestant consti- tution. According to lord Eldon, the established principle of the Reformation had been to exclude Roman Catholics from Par- liament and from offices; and therefore it was that the Oath of Supremacy was framed. Now the 5th of Elizabeth did not go so far as to exclude Roman Catholics from sitting in that House, and not only was there an exception as to the House of Peers, but the reason of the exception was stated. The reason was this — because the queen was otherwise as- sured, not of the religion, but of the loyalty of such Roman Catholics as were peers of Parliament. Then the Oath of Supremacy was a test, not of religion, but of loyalty. The EMANCIPATION 5^5 members of the lower House were called upon to take the oath. It was the policy of Elizabeth to gain the Catholics; and for that purpose she changed the Articles and the Liturgy of the Church of England, as framed by Edward 6th, and adopted the communion service, to suit the Roman Catholics, and to enable them to join in communion with the Prot- estants. Passages, containing an expressed denial of the real presence, were expunged; and for thirteen years after the Reformation did the Roman Catholics take the Oath of Supremacy, and join in communion with the Church of Eng- land. They continued to be admitted to all the offices of the state still towards the latter end of the reign of the Stuarts. The Roman Catholics then became suspected, not on account of their religion, but owing to their supposed ad- herence to the designs of the throne. The throne became first disaffected to the liberties of the subject; and from the reign of Charles ist the Roman Catholics came to be con- sidered as enemies to the state through their adherence to the king. In a subsequent reign the king himself was a Catholic; and, the throne being thus a convert to their re- ligion, and making inroads upon the public liberty, the Roman Catholics became more and more suspected; and, in point of fact, though not of law, they were very generally ex- cluded from Parliament in the reign of Charles 2nd because the people were prejudiced against them. Till the 25th Charles 2nd, the Roman Catholics had contrived occasionally to get into Parliament ; and how did the Protestant leaders get them out of the House of Commons, as they took the Oath and Declaration? Why, they brought into operation the law against recusancy, which prohibited persons con- victed of recusancy from coming within ten miles of the cities of London and Westminster, and thus effectually pre- vented them from doing duty in Parliament. They therefore got a conviction of recusancy, and then called for a new writ. This was a decisive proof that, before the 30th of Charles 2nd, there was nothing to prevent the Roman Catholics from sitting in Parliament. That statute itself contained two en- actments, — the first, that Roman Catholics should not sit in Parliament without making the Declaration, and the second that persons not making the Declaration should be excluded from access to the king. There was a third enact- ment, which banished such persons ten miles from the cities of London and Westminster. This was a law of the land; and what had become of that law ? That member of it, which So6 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY related to the penalties against recusancy, was gone; for all the laws relating to recusancy had been repealed. Then the enactment as to access to the king, that had also been repealed. So here was a limb of this immortal law lopped off ; leaving only the mutilated bust of Titus Oates to represent this im- mortal statute, till the act of William 3rd. He would not pretend that there might not be good reason for enacting it, or that the Catholics might not be dangerous, or that they ought not to have been excluded from office owing to their adherence to the dangerous designs of the Crown. But what was meant by saying that that law was consummated at the Revolution ? Was that act of soth Charles 2nd incorporated in the Bill of Rights? No such thing. Did the Bill of Rights trouble itself with all the trumpery of the invocation of saints and transubstantiation ? No such thing. The f ram- ers of that bill thought only of settling the principles of the constitution so far as they had been invaded, and they had not room in their heads for the consideration of such things as these. They scouted such trash and trumpery, whilst they were intent upon securing the rights and liberties of their fellow-subjects which had been invaded by the Crown. These wise and great men were no system-mongers, no grinders of theories or dogmas, but sound and practical statesmen ; and no light toil had they incurred. There were thirteen particu- lars stated. The Bill of Rights did not say, upon abstract principle, that the Church and State are necessarily Prot- estants, but it stated — "Whereas it has been found by ex- perience that it is necessary to the safety and welfare of this Protestant kingdom that the throne should be unalterably Protestant:" and it then goes on to enact, that, should the king become a Papist, or marry a Papist, he should thereby forfeit his title to the throne, it being found by experience that such a security was necessary for this Protestant king- dom. He had been asked, whether this was a Protestant kingdom; he had been asked triumphantly, was this not a Protestant government, a Protestant Parliament? In one sense he admitted it was a Protestant kingdom, but did not exclude Papists. So he admitted that the Parliament was essentially and predominantly Protestant, and in that sense, but in no other, the Parliament was Protestant. The act of 1st of William 3rd forbade Papists to carry arms; this was considered as necessary to the security of this Protestant state. The principle of that act was transferred to the Bill of Rights, which recognized the claim of the Protestants to EMANCIPATION 5^7 carry arms, but did not refer to the right of the Roman Cath- olics to carry arms. Those, who argued by inference, took advantage of this; but it so happened that throughout the Bill of Rights this was the only passage the construction of which was hostile to the Roman Catholics ; and this was the only passage in it which had been repealed. It had been repealed by an act of George 2nd, which also repealed the law by which Roman Catholics were forbidden access to the throne. By the law previous to 30th Charles 2nd, no person could be admitted into the army unless he had previously taken the Oath of the Declaration; but by that act, he could take the oath subsequent to taking the commission: Then came the act of William, saying that that provision was not a sufficient security, and that the oath must be taken pre- viously. Then the present law precisely and practically repealed the act of William, for it restored the mattter to the state it was in at the period of the 25th Charles 2nd ; and the act, for which lord Eldon had told their lordships he was responsible, had taken greater liberties with the Bill of Rights than the noble duke had done. Their lordships probably had not been apprised, when the act of 1817 passed, that they were repealing the act of king William. The act recited, "Whereas by certain laws now in existence, there were sundry embarrassments in respect to the oaths taken by the army and navy," — and, in order to clear up doubts, and to assimilate one to the other, it enacted that the oaths pre- scribed by the former act need not be taken. Thus was there an utter abandonment of the act of William, and that too without providing any oath or security in its stead.' The present bill did not give the Roman Catholics any benefit without an oath, an oath too, which combined in its language every possible security that such a form could afford ; but under the act of the noble and learned lord, the provisions of king William's act were done away, and not even an oath was substituted in their stead. (^Annual Register for i82g, vol. 71, p. 92.) 213. The Duke of Wellington on Emancipation Annual Register The attitude of the Ministry was set forth in a brief speech by the dnke of Wellington at the close of the debate. While there is little in the utterance beyond a personal explanation of the secrecy maintained, it is inserted as being the final word on the great question which had for so many years troubled the heart of England. 5o8 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY The debate was closed by a brief reply from the duke of Wellington. The apprehended danger to the Irish Church from the admission of a few Catholics into Parliament, he treated as futile, considering that the throne would be filled by a Protestant. Moreover, a fundamental article of the Union between the two countries was the union of the two Churches; and it was impossible that any mischief could happen to the Irish branch of this united Church, without destroying the union of the two countries. "A different topic," said his grace, "to which Iwish to advert, is a charge brought against several of my colleagues, and also against myself, .by the noble earl on the cross-bench, of a want of consistency in our conduct. My lords, I admit that many of my colleagues, as well as myself, did on former occasions vote against a measure of a similar description with this ; and, my lords, I must say, that my colleagues and myself felt, when we adopted this measure, that we should be sacrificing ourselves and our popularity to that which we felt to be our duty to our sovereign and our country. We knew very well, that if we put ourselves at the head of the Protestant cry of 'No Popery,' we should be much more popular even than those who had excited against us that very cry. But we felt that in so doing we should have left on the interests of the country a burthen which must end in bearing them down, and further that we should have deserved the hate and execration of our countrymen. Then I am accused, and by a noble and learned friend of mine, of having acted with great secrecy respecting this measure. Now I beg to tell him, that he has done that to me in the course of this discussion which he complains of others having done to him ; — in other words, he has, in the language of a right hon. friend of his and mine, thrown a large paving-stone instead of throwing a small pebble. I say, that if he accuses me of acting with secrecy on this question, he does not deal with me altogether fairly. He knows as well as I do how the Cabinet was con- structed on this question; and I ask him, had I any right to say a single word to any man whatsoever upon this measure, until the person most interested in the kingdom upon it had given his consent to my speaking out? Before he accused me of secrecy, and of improper secrecy too, he ought to have known the precise day upon which I received the permission of the highest personage in the country, and had leave to open my mouth upon this measure. There is another point also on which a noble earl accused me of misconduct; and EMANCIPATION 509 that is, that I did not at once dissolve the Parliament. Now I must say that I think noble lords are mistaken in the notion of the benefits which they think that they would derive from a dissolution of Parliament at this crisis. I believe that many of them are not aware of the consequences and of the inconveniences of a dissolution of Parliament at any time. But when I know, as I did know, and as I do know, the state of the elective franchise in Ireland, — when I recollected the number of men it took to watch one election which took place in Ireland in the course of last summer, — when I knew the consequences which a dissolution would produce on the return to the House of Commons, to say nothing of the risks which must have been incurred at each election, — of col- lisions that might have lead to something little short of a civil war, — I say, that, knowing all these things, I should have been wanting in duty to my sovereign and to my coun- try, if I had advised his Majesty to dissolve his Parliament." (^Annual Register for i82g, vol. 71, p. 94.) 214. The End of Jewish Disability A7inual Register The long persecution of the Jewish race, which had been a blot upon the civilization of England as upon that of nearly all European countries, was finally ended with the admission of Baron Rothschild into Parliament. This measure of justice and tolerance was not effected without opposition, but the senti- ment of the country was overwhelmingly in favour of the step, and its execution was not attended with grave difficulty. On the 26th of July, that honourable member, being con- ducted to the table by Lord John Russell and Mr. J. A. Smith, stated, on the oath being read to him, that he could not con- scientiously take it in the form in which it was tendered. He was then directed to withdraw. Upon this Lord John Russell moved a resolution, simply stating that Baron Roths- child was prevented by conscientious objections from taking the oath. This resolution, after an ineffectual protest from Mr. Warren, was agreed to; whereupon Lord John Russell moved a second resolution in the following terms : — "That any persons professing the Jewish religion may henceforth, in taking the oath prescribed in an Act of the present Session of Parliament to entitle him to sit and vote in this House, omit the words, 'and I make this declaration upon the true faith of a Christian.' " A debate ensued, in which Mr. Warren threatened to 510 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY divide the House. Lord Hotham said he had not intended to vote, but, being called upon to decide, felt bound to oppose the resolution. Mr. Walpole said he had always regarded this as a religious rather than a political question. He did not think Jews ought to sit in a Christian legislature : and must oppose the resolution. But he was bound to say that Baron Rothschild had never permitted himself to do one act contrary to the law of the land. He also said that the course taken could not be too much deprecated, and if the Jews were to be admitted they ought to have been admitted in a frank and honest manner. Let them not suppose, however, that they were closing the question. Mr. Spooner and Mr. Newde- gate repeated their objections to the proceeding. Mr. Fox expressed his conviction that the House had never acted more in accordance with the spirit of a Christian legislature than they were about to do by the admission of Jews to Parliament. Lord John Russell reminded Mr. Walpole that the mode of settling the question had not been proposed by the advocates for the admission of the Jews. "It is not our choice but the choice of the other House of Parliament." Mr. Walpole said this was not the end of the question; but he trusted none would hereafter attempt to deprive the Jews of the privilege about to be conferred upon them. On a division the resolution was carried by 69 to 37. Baron Rothschild, being again introduced, was greeted by loud cheers. He took the oath on the Old Testament, omit- ting the words, "on the true faith of a Christian," and took his seat on the Opposition benches. Thus ended the long controversy which had for so many years divided the two Houses of Parliament. {A7imial Register for l8^8, vol. loo, p. 163.) 215. The Oaths Act (21 & 22 Vic, c. 48, July 23, 1858) Siatuies of the Realm- While the recognition of Jews as possessing equal rights re- moved the great barriers against any inhabitant of the realm, it was not until 1858 that all citizens were legally placed upon the same footing in regard to their nominal duties. The oaths of allegiance to be taken by a Catholic, a Protestant, and a Jew differed in form, though but little in substance. At length, in the year named, the last distinction was removed, and a general form of oath was devised. The "rider" to the Bill, whereby the act of participating in the Sacrament of Comm^union was not made obligatory upon aspirants for office, was the last needful concession to liberty and justice. EMANCIPATION 511 AN ACT TO SUBSTITUTE ONE OATH FOR THE OATHS OF ALLE- GIANCE, SUPREMACY, AND ABJURATION ; AND FOR THE RELIEF OF HER MAJESTY's SUBJECTS PROFESSING THE JEWISH RELIGION Whereas it is expedient that One Oath should be substi- tuted for the Oaths of Allegiance, Supremacy, and Abjura- tion now required by law : Be it therefore enacted by the Queen's most Excellent Majesty, by and with the Advice and Consent of the Lords Spiritual and Temporal, and Com- mons, in this present Parliament assembled, and by the Authority of the same, as follows : I. Instead of the Oaths of Allegiance, Supremacy, and Abjuration, where the same are now by Law required to be taken, and taken and subscribed respectively, the following Oath shall be taken and subscribed: "I, A. B., do swear, that I will be faithful and bear true Allegiance to Her Majesty Queen Victoria, and will defend Her to the utmost of my Power against all Conspiracies and Attempts whatever which shall be made against Her Person, Crown, or Dignity, and I will do my utmost Endeavour to disclose and make known to Her Majesty, Her Heirs and Successors, all Treasons and traitorous Conspiracies which may be formed against Her or them; and I do faithfully promise to maintain, support, and defend, to the utmost of my Power, the Succession of the Crown, which Succession, by an Act, intituled 'An Act for the further Limitation of the Crown, and better securing the Rights and Liberties of the Subject,' is and stands limited to the Princess Sophia Elec- tress of Hanover, and the Heirs of Her Body being Protes- tants, hereby utterly renouncing and abjuring any Obedience or Allegiance unto any other Person claiming or pretending a Right to the Crown of this Realm; and I do declare that no foreign Prince, Person, Prelate, State, or Potentate hath or ought to have any Jurisdiction, Power, Superiority, Pre- eminence, or Authority ecclesiastical or spiritual within this Realm; and I make this Declaration upon the true Faith of a Christian. So Help me God." H. Wherin the Oath hereby appointed the Name of Her present Majesty is expressed or referred to, the Name of the Sovereign of this Kingdom for the Time being, by Virtue of the Act "for the further Limitation of the Crown and better securing the Rights and Liberties of the Subject," shall be 512 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY < substituted from Time to Time, with proper Words af Ref- erence thereto. III. The Oath hereby appointed shall be taken and sub- scribed in the same Cases, and by and before the same Per- sons, and at the same Times and Places, as the Oaths of Allegiance, Supremacy, and Abjuration are respectively now directed to be taken, and taken and subscribed ; and the taking and subscribing of the Oath hereby appointed shall have the like Effect as the taking, and taking and subscribing respect- ively of the Oaths of Allegiance, Supremacy, and Abjuration would have had if this Act had not been passed; and the Refusal, Neglect, or Omission to take and subscribe the Oath hereby appointed shall be attended with the like Dis- abilities, Incapacities, Penalties, Liabilities, and Consequen- ces, as now by Law provided in the Case of Refusal, Neglect or Omission to take, or take and subscribe re- spectively the Oaths of Allegiance, Supremacy, and Ab- juration; and all Provisions now in Force shall be con- strued and take effect accordingly : Provided always, that no Person, having before the Commencement of this Act taken the Oaths of Allegiance, Supremacy and Abjuration, shall be required to take and subscribe the Oath hereby ap- pointed, unless and until he would be by Law required to take the said Oaths of Allegiance, Supremacy, and Abjura- tion in Case this Act had not been passed. IV. Provided always, that every Person of the Persuasion of the People called Quakers, and every other Person now by Law permitted to make his solemn Affirmation or De- claration instead of taking an Oath, shall, instead of tak- ing and subscribing the Oath hereby appointed, make and subscribe a solemn Affirmation in the Form of the Oath hereby appointed, substituting the Words "solemnly, sin- cerely, and truly declare and affirm" for the Word "swear," and omitting the Words "And I make this Declaration upon the true faith of a Christian. So help me God;" and the making and subscribing of such Affirmation by a Person hereinbefore authorized to make and subscribe the same, with such Omission as aforesaid, shall have the same Force and Effect as the taking and subscribing by other Persons of the Oath hereby appointed. V. And whereas by a certain Act passed in the Ninth Year of the Reign of King George the Fourth, intituled "An Act for repealing so much of the several Acts as imposes the Ne- cessity of receiving the Sacrament of the Lord's Supper as a EMANCIPATION Si 3 qualification of certain Offices and Employments," a certain Declaration is prescribed to be taken in the Cases in the said Act mentioned : And whereas, by an Act passed in the Ninth Year of the Reign of Her present Majesty, intituled "An Act for the relief of Persons of the Jewish Religion elected to Municipal Offices," a certain other Declaration was per- mitted to be taken in certain Cases by Persons professing the Jewish Religion, instead of the Declaration required to be made and subscribed by the said Act of King George the Fourth : And whereas it is right to extend the Benefit of the last-recited Act to all other Cases in which the Declaration set forth in the said Act of the Ninth Year of the Reign of King George the Fourth is by Law required to be taken : Be it enacted, That in all Cases which are not in the Provisions of the said Act of the Ninth Year of the Reign of Her Ma- jesty, in which any other of Her Majesty's subjects are re- quired by Law to make and subscribe the Declaration set forth in the said Act of the Ninth Year of the Reign of King George the Fourth, Her Majesty's Subjects professing the Jewish Religion shall be required instead thereof to make and subscribe the Declaration set forth in the said Act of the Ninth Year of the Reign of Her present Majesty, which Declaration shall, with respect to such Person professing the Jewish Religion, be of the same Force and Effect as if he made and subscribed the said Declaration by the said Act of the Ninth Year of the Reign of King George the Fourth, and shall be made and subscribed at the same Times and Places respectively, and preserved of Record in the same Manner as the last-mentioned Declaration is now by Law required to be made, subscribed, and preserved. VL Provided also, that nothing in this Act contained shall be held to alter or affect the Provisions of the Act passed in the Tenth Year of King George the Fourth, Chapter Seven, "for the Relief of His Majesty's Roman Catholic Subjects." {Atinual Register /or l8^8, vol. loo, p. 238.) 216. The Jewish Relief Act (21 & 22 Vict., c. 49, July 23, 1858) Annual Register On the same day as that on which was passed the Oaths Act, there was passed a measure for defining the privileges of the Jews more clearly than this had yet been done. While the first portion of the Act is almost similar to the provisions contained in the Oaths Act, the latter portion expressly continues certain disabilities made necessary by the connection between Church and State. As a citizen, the Jew was to be henceforth regarded 514 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY as the peer of the Christian ; but certain functions which trenched on the ecclesiastical ground were still withheld. AN ACT TO PROVIDE FOR THE RELIEF OF HER MAJESTY's SUB- JECTS PROFESSING THE JEWISH RELIGION Be it enacted by the Queen's most Excellent Majesty, by and with the Advice and Consent of the Lords Spiritual and Temporal, and Commons, in the present Parliament as- sembled, and by the Authority of the same, as follows : I. Where it shall appear to either House of Parliament that a Person professing the Jewish Religion, otherwise en- titled to sit and vote in such House, is prevented from sitting and voting by his conscientious Objections to take the Oath which by an Act passed in the present Sessions of Parliament has been or may be substituted for the Oaths of Allegiance, Supremacy, and Abjuration in the Form therein required, such House, if it think fit, may resolve that henceforth any Person professing the Jewish Religion, in taking the same Oath to entitle him to sit and vote as aforesaid, may omit the Words "and I make this Declaration upon the true Faith of a Christian," and so long as such Resolution shall continue in force the said Oath, when taken and subscribed by any Person professing the Jewish Religion to entitle him to sit and vote in that House of Parliament, may be modified accordingly; and the taking and subscribing by any Person professing the Jewish Religion of the Oath so modified shall, so far as respects the Title to sit and vote in such Plouse, have the same Force and Effect as the taking and subscribing by other Persons of the said Oath in the Form required by the said Act. II. In all other Cases, except for sitting in Parliament as aforesaid, or in qualifying to exercise the Right of Presenta- tion to any Ecclesiastical Benefice in Scotland, whenever any of Her Majesty's Subjects professing the Jewish Religion shall be required to take the said Oath, the Words "and I make this Declaration upon the true Faith. of a Christian" shall be omitted. III. Nothing herein contained shall extend or be construed to extend to enable any Person or Persons professing the Jewish Religion to hold or exercise the Office of Guardians and Justices of the United Kingdom, or of Regent of the United Kingdom, under whatever Name, Style, or Title such Office may be constituted, or of Lord High Chancel- lor, Lord Keeper or Lord Commissioner of the Great Seal EMANCIPATION 51S of Great Britain or Ireland, or the Office of Lord Lieu- tenant or Deputy or other Chief Governor or Governors of Ireland, or Her Majesty's High Commissioner to the Gen- eral Assembly of the Church of Scotland. IV. Where any Right of Presentation to any Ecclesiastical Benefice shall belong to any Office in the Gift or Appoint- ment of her Majesty, Her Heirs or Successors, and such Office shall be held by a Person professing the Jewish Religion, the Right of Presentation shall devolve upon and be exercised by the Archbishop of Canterbury for the Time being; and it shall not be lawful for any Person professing the Jewish Religion, directly or indirectly, to advise Her Majesty, Her Heirs or Successors, or any Person or Persons holding or exercising the Office of Guardians of the United Kingdom, or of Regent of the United Kingdom, under what- ever Name, Style, or Title such Office may be constituted, or the Lord Lieutenant or Lord Deputy, or any other Chief Governor or Governors of Ireland, touching or concerning the Appointment to or disposal of any Office or Preferment in the United Church of England and Ireland, or in the Church of Scotland; and if such Person shall offend in the Premises he shall, being thereof convicted by due Course of Law, be deemed guilty of a high Misdemeanor, and disabled for ever from holding any Office, Civil or Military, under the Crown. {Annual Register for j8s8, ed. cit., p. 241.) 217. The End of the Slave Trade Cohheti The great struggle against slavery was fought out in the nineteenth century. Then it was that the question of emanci- pation of the negroes was agitated by the whole world. The movement resulted in the freedom of the negroes held in bondage by civilized nations, and in ending exportations of slaves from Africa. The success of the English movement was only brought about by a long and arduous combat on the part of its adherents, but it was largely instrumental in the general abolition of the system. The following extract portrays the closing scenes at- tending the passage of the Emancipation Act. Lord Grenville moved the order of the day for taking into consideration the amendments made by the house of com- mons in the Slave Trade Abolition bill. His lordship ob- served that the object of the greater part of these amend- ments was to inforce penalties and forfeitures upon those carrying on the trade, after the period fixed by parliament 5i6 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY for Its abolition, which it was not the practice of that house to enact. These amendments, therefore, were merely calcu- lated the better to carry into effect the principle of the bill. With respect to the amendment in the preamble, leaving out the words, declaring the trade to be contrary to justice, humanity, and sound policy, it would not be imagined after what he had said upon the subject, that his opinion had sus- tained any alteration. It having, however, been thought right by the house of commons to make this alteration, in order that the feelings of those concerned in the trade might not be wounded, he had no objection to it. The Bishop of Landaff rose to deliver his opinion of the bill, which he had not till then an opportunity of doing. The right reverend prelate observed, that in judging of the propriety of the preamble as it originally stood, or of the amendments that had been made in it, the different states of slavery as they existed at different periods of the world should duly be considered. Certain conditions of slavery existed in the antediluvian world full 700 years before Noah ; and such must have existed both before and after the forma- tion of civil society. Under the circumstances of those times, multitudes must have existed, who could derive sus- tenance only from their labour, and who, in order to secure their means of support, were willing to surrender up that labour, and with it their freedom. Such a state of slavery might not indeed be considered as contrary to justice and humanity, because it was a voluntary act on the part of those who submitted to it ; but, although that state of slavery might not be judged inconsistent with justice and humanity, it did not follow that other descriptions of it might not be highly inhuman and unjust ; for what could be more contrary to jus- tice and humanity, than to excite civil war in a country, and then take advantage of'the calamities arising from it to force away the miserable inhabitants into an hopeless captivity? Such he conceived to be the nature of the trade which it was proposed to abolish. Its abolition was an act of national humanity and justice; it was an act that would never be blotted out in the records of divine mercy. He was ready to confess, that the most keenly exploring eye might not be able to dive into the consequences of such a measure; but as it evidently sprang from the root of undissembled piety and humanity, it should not be supposed to be productive of evil; but, on the contrary, that it must be healing and bene- ficial to mankind. EMANCIPATION 517 The Earl of Westmoreland could not let slip this last op- portunity of entering his protest against the bill ; he must therefore repeat some of his former objections to it, though he was aware that the repetition must be in some degree irksome to the house. At least he must remind them that one more occasion presented itself to allow them to rectify their opinions, which they should be the more induced to do from the awful warning contained in the petition which he had that day laid on their lordship's table. From that peti- tion they might collect the dreadful consequences which even the resolutions of last year wxre producing in Jamaica. Every thing there seemed to indicate the approach of an organized insurrection, which might receive a new stimulus and encouragement from the bill now on the eve of passing. It, therefore, called again for the most serious consideration of their lordships, and that consideration would shew them that the proposed clauses involved the greatest inconsisten- cies, absurdities, and even impossibilities. As to the pre- amble, nothing could reconcile him to it. No good could be expected from it, while it might be attended with much mis- chief: he was, therefore, for leaving it out altogether. As to the consequences of the measure, they certainly appeared to him most alarming. If ever St. Domingo and Cuba were in the hands of our enemies, and if they resolved to carry on this trade, that alarm would prove but too well founded. He w^ould even venture to say, that it was to the existence of the slave trade that their lordships were indebted for their being now sitting in that house. Our existence depended upon the strength of our navy, and the strength of our navy was chiefly derived from the slave trade. Their lordships must be convinced of it, if they but reflected that the town of Liverpool alone now sent out a greater number of privateers than were employed by the whole of the country against the enemy, in the time of Queen Elizabeth. The Marquis of Sligo disapproved of the clauses, and con- tended, that the preamble contained a gross calumny. The Duke of Norfolk was not very anxious on former occasions to support the measures of the abolition; because he knew that many of those who were loudest in its praise, were far from being sincere in their wishes for its success. Now, however, when it was taken up by ministers who had his confidence, and, who, he was satisfied, were incapable of any duplicity, the bill should have his most cordial support, and he should rejoice to see it pass. — The question was now SJS SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY put on the several amendments, and agreed to. — Lord Gren- ville then moved, that the bill, with the amendments, etc., as agreed to, be sent to the commons, and on the motion being agreed to, — his lordship again rose, and congratulated the house on having now performed one of the most glorious acts that had ever been done by any assembly or any nation in the world. {Parliametttary Debates, ed. Cobbett, Lond., 1807. IX, 168.) CHAPTER XXXI PARLIAMENTARY REFORM 218. Speech on the First Reform Bill (1831) Rnssell The speech of Lord John Russell, when on March i, 1831, he introduced the First Reform Bill, opened a debate which prac- tically lasted until June 5, 1832. The Whig ministry knew that the fate of their party depended upon that of the Bill, and they came to realize that the fate of the dynasty itself might depend upon the same thing. The Opposition were no less desirous of victory, seeing in the Bill a measure which threatened the pros- perity of the people and the very existence of the State. " The country was divided into two hostile camps, regarding each other with feelings of increased exasperation. On the one hand, the anti-reformers, though comparatively few, were immensely strong in position and prestige . . . On the other hand, the re- formers could count upon the support of the great mass of the people." The object of ministers has been to produce a measure with which every reasonable man in the country will be satisfied — we wish to take our stand between the two hostile parties, neither agreeing with the bigotry of those who would reject all Reform, nor with the fanaticism of those who contend that only one plan of Reform would be wholesome or satis- factory, but placing ourselves between both, and between the abuses we intend to amend and the convulsion we hope to avert. The ancient constitution of our country declares that no man should be taxed for the support of the state, who has not consented, by himself or his representative, to the im- position of these taxes. The well-known statute, de tallagio non concedcndo, repeats the same language ; and, although some historical doubts have been thrown upon it, its legal meaning has never been disputed. It included "all the free- men of the land," and provided that each county shotild send to the Commons of the realm, two knights, each city two 519 520 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY burgesses, and each borough two members. Thus about a hundred places sent representatives, and some thirty or forty others occasionally enjoyed the privilege, but it was discon- tinued or revived as they rose or fell in the scale of wealth and importance. Thus, no doubt, at that early period, the House of Commons did represent the people of England; there is no doubt likewise, that the House of Commons, as it now subsists, does not represent the people of England. Therefore, if we look at the question of right, the reformers have right in their favour. Then, if we consider what is reasonable, we shall arrive at a similar result. A stranger, who was told that this country is unparallelecf in wealth and industry, and more civilized, and more en- lightened than any country was before it ; that it is a country that prides itself on its freedom, and that once in every seven years it elects representatives from its population, to act as the guardians and preservers of that freedom, — would be anxious and curious to see how that representation is formed, and how the people chose those representatives, to whose faith and guardianship they entrust their free and liberal institutions. Such a person would be very much astonished if he were taken to a ruined mound, and told that that mound sent two representatives to Parliament — if he were taken to a stone wall, and told that three niches in it sent two repre- sentatives to Parliament — if he were taken to a park, where no houses were to be seen, and told that that park sent two representatives to Parliament; but if he were told all this, and were astonished at hearing it, he would be still more astonished if he were to see large and opulent towns full of enterprise, and industry, and intelligence, containing vast magazines of every species of manufactures, and were then told that these towns sent no representatives to Parliament. Such a person would be still more astonished, if he were taken to Liverpool, where there is a large constituency, and told, here you will have a fine specimen of a popular elec- tion. He would see bribery employed to the greatest extent, and in the most unblushing manner; he would see every voter receiving a number of guineas in a box, as the price of his corruption; and after such a spectacle, he would no doubt be much astonished that a nation whose representatives are thus chosen, could perform the functions of legislation at all, or enjoy respect in any degree. I say then, that if the question before the House is a question of reason, the present state of representation is against reason. PARLIAMENTARY REFORM 521 The confidence of the country in the construction and con- stitution of the House of Commons is gone. It would be easier to transfer the flourishing manufactures of Leeds and Manchester to Gatton and Old Sarum, than re-establish con- fidence and sympathy between this House and those whom it calls its constituents. If, therefore, the question is one of right, right is in favour of Reform; if it be a question of reason, reason is in favour of Reform ; if it be a question of policy and expediency, policy and expediency are in favour of Reform. I come now to the explanation of the measure which, representing the ministers of the king, I am about to propose to the House. Those ministers have thought, and in my opinion justly thought, that no half measures would be suf- ficient ; that no trifling or paltering with Reform could give stability to the Crown, strength to Parliament, or satisfaction to the country. The chief grievances of which the people complain are these. First, the nomination of members by individuals; second, the election by close corporations; third, the expense of elections. With regard to the first, it may be exercised in two ways, either over a place containing scarcely any inhabitants, and with a very extensive right of election; or over a place of wide extent and numerous population, but where the franchise is confined to very few persons. Gatton is an example of the first, and Bath of the second. At Gat- ton, where the right of voting is by scot and lot, all house- holders have a vote, but there are only five persons to exer- cise the right. At Bath the inhabitants are numerous, but very few of them have any concern in the election. In the former case, we propose to deprive the borough of the fran- chise altogether. In doing so, we have taken for our guide the population returns of 1821 ; and we propose that every borough which in that year had less than 2,oco inhabitants, should altogether lose the right of sending members to Par- liament, the effect of which will be to disfranchise sixty-two boroughs. But we do not stop here. As the honourable member for Boroughbridge [Sir C. Wetherell] would say, we go plus ultra; we find that there are forty-seven boroughs of only 4,000 inhabitants, and these we shall deprive of the right of sending more than one member to Parliament. We likewise intend that Weymouth, which at present sends four members to Parliament, should in the future send only two. The total reduction thus effected in the number of the members of this House will be 168. This is the whole ex- 52-2 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY tent to which we are prepared to go in the way of dis- franchisement. We do not, however, mean to allow that the remaining boroughs should be in the hands of a small number of persons to the exclusion of the great body of the inhabitants who have property and interest in the place. It is a point of great difficulty to decide to whom the franchise should be ex- tended. Though it is a point much disputed, I believe it will be found that in ancient times every inhabitant householder resident in a borough was competent to vote for members of Parliament. As, however, this arrangement excluded villeins and strangers, the franchise always belonged to a particular body in every town ; — that the voters were persons of prop- erty is obvious, from the fact that they are called upon to pay su.bsidies and taxes. Two different courses seem to prevail in different places. In some, every person having a house, and being free, was admitted to a general participation in the privileges formerly possessed by burgesses : in others, the burgesses became a select body, and were converted into a kind of corporation, more or less exclusive. These differ- ences, the House will be aware, lead to the most difficult, and at the same time the most useless questions that men can be called upon to decide. I contend that it is proper to get rid of these complicated rights, of these vexatious questions, and to give the real property and real respectability of the different cities and towns, the right of voting for members of Parliament. Finding that a qualification of a house rated at £20 a year, would confine the elective franchise, instead of enlarging it, we propose that the right of voting should be given to the householders paying rates for houses of the yearly value of fio and upwards, upon certain conditions hereafter to be stated. At the same time it is not intended to deprive the present electors of their privilege of voting, provided they are resident. With regard to non-residence, we are of opinion that it produces much expense, is the cause of a great deal of bribery, and occasions such manifest and manifold evils, that electors who do not live in a place ought not be permitted to retain their votes. With regard to res- ident voters, we propose that they should retain their right during life, but that no vote should be allowed hereafter, ex- cept to £10 householders. I shall now proceed to the manner in which we propose to extend the franchise in counties. The bill I wish to in- troduce will give all copyholders to the value of £10 a year, PARLIAMENTARY REFORM 523 qualified to serve on juries, under the right hon. gentlemen's [Sir R. Peel] bill, a right to vote for the return of knights of the shire; also, that leaseholders, for not less than twenty- one years, whose annual rent is not less than £50, and whose leases have not been renewed within two years, shall enjoy the same privilege. (^History of the Reform Bill, Molesworthy, Lond., 1866, 103.) 219. The Prorogation of the Anti-Reform Parliament (1831) Molesivorthy The First Reform Bill had passed two readings when the ministry, concluded after an adverse vote upon a motion, in- troduced by General Gascoyne, in opposition to their policy, that it was useless to continue the struggle in Parliament. Confident of the support of the electors, they resolved to appeal to the country. To do this a dissolution of Parliament was necessary, and against this the anti-reformers were firmly arrayed. The ministry appealed to the king. In the selection which follows, this appeal is vividly described, and the action of the king in dissolving Parliament is clearly portrayed. Under these circumstances, ministers acted with prompti- tude and decision. Their defeat had occurred on the morn- ing of the 22nd of April ; on the same day summonses were issued, calling a Cabinet council at St. James's Palace. So short was the notice, that the ministers were unable to attend, as was customary on such occasions, in their court dresses. At this council it was unanimously resolved that the Parlia- ment should be prorogued the same day, with a view to its speedy dissolution, and the royal speech, which had been prepared for the occasion, was considered and adopted. All necessary arrangements having been made, in order to take away from the king all pretext for delay, Earl Grey and Lord Brougham were deputed to wait on the king, and communi- cate to him the advice of the Cabinet. From what has been already said, the reader will be prepared to anticipate that this advice was far from palatable. The unusual haste with which it w^as proposed to carry out that measure, naturally increased the king's known objections to the proposed step, and furnished him with a good excuse for refusing his assent to it. Earl Grey, the pink and pattern of loyalty and chival- rous courtesy, shrunk from the disagreeable errand, and re- quested his bolder and less courtly colleague to introduce the subject, begging him at the same time to manage the suscep- tibility of the king as much as possible. The Chancellor accordingly approached the subject very carefully, prefacing the disagreeable message with which he 524 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY was charged, with a compliment on the king's desire to pro- mote the welfare of his people. He then proceeded to com- municate the advice of the Cabinet, adding, that they were unanimous in offering it. "What !" exclaimed the king, "would you have me dismiss in this summary manner a Parliament which has granted me so splendid a civil list, and given my queen so liberal an annuity in case she survives me?" "No doubt, sire," Lord Brougham replied, "in these respects they have acted wisely and honourably, but your Majesty's advisers are all of opinion, that in the present state of affairs, every hour that this Parliament continues to sit is pregnant with danger to the peace and security of your kingdom, and they humbly beseech your Majesty to go down this very day and prorogue it. If you do not, they cannot be answerable for the consequences." The king was greatly embarrassed ; he evidently enter- tained the strongest objection to the proposed measure, but he also felt the danger which would result from the resigna- tion of his ministers at the present crisis. He therefore shifted his ground, and asked — "Who is to carry the sword of state and the cap of maintenance?" "Sire, knowing the urgency of the crisis and the imminent peril in which the country at this moment stands, we have ventured to tell those whose duty it is to perform these and other similar offices, to hold themselves in readiness." "But the troops, the life guards, I have given no orders for them to be called out, and now it is too late." This was indeed a serious objection, for to call out the guards was the special prerogative of the monarch himself, and no minister had any right to order their attendance with- out his express command. "Sire," replied the Chancellor, with some hesitation, "we must throw ourselves on your indulgence. Deeply feeling the gravity of the crisis, and knowing your love for your people, we have taken a liberty which nothing but the most imperious neccessity could warrant ; we have ordered out the troops, and we humbly throw ourselves on your Majesty's indulgence." The king's eye flashed and his cheek became crimson. He was evidently on the point of dismissing the ministry in an explosion of anger. "Why, my lords," he exclaimed, "this is treason ! high treason, and you, my Lord Chancellor, ought to know that it is," PARLIAMENTARY REFORM 525 "Yes, sire, I do know it, and nothing but the strongest conviction that your Majesty's crown and the interests of the nation are at stake, could have induced us to take such a step, or to tender the advice we are now giv- ing." This submissive reply had the desired effect, the king cooled, his prudence and better genius prevailed, and having once made up his mind to yield, he yielded with a good grace. He accepted, without any objection, the speech which had been prepared for him, and which the two ministers had brought with them, he gave orders respecting the details of the approaching ceremonial, and having completely recov- ered his habitual serenity and good humour, he dismissed the two lords with a jocose threat of impeachment. At half-past two o'clock the king entered his state carriage. It was remarked that the guards on this occasion rode wide of it, as if they attended as a matter of state and ceremony, and not as being needed for the king's protection. Persons wishing to make a more open demonstration of their feelings, were allowed to pass between the soldiers and approach the royal carriage. One of these, a rough sailorlike person, pulled off his hat, and waving it around his head, shouted lustily, "Turn out the rogues, your Majesty." Notwithstand- ing the suddenness with which the resolution to dissolve had been taken, the news had already spread through the metrop- olis, an immense crowd was assembled, and the king was greeted throughout his whole progress with the most enthu- siastic shouts. He was exceedingly fond of popularity, and these acclamations helped to reconcile him to the step he had been compelled to take, and to efface the unpleasant impres- sion which the scene which had so recently occurred could not fail to leave behind it. Meanwhile, another scene of a far more violent kind was taking place in the House of Lords. The Chancellor on leaving the king went down to the House to hear appeals. Having gone through the cause list he retired, in the hope that he should thereby prevent Lord Wharncliffe from bring- ing forward his motion. But the opposition lords had mus- tered in great force, and the House was full in all parts. It is usual on the occasion of a prorogation by the sovereign, for the peers to appear in their robes, and most of those present wore theirs, but owing to the precipitation with which the dissolution had been decided on, several peers, especially on the opposition side of the House, were without 526 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY them. A large number of peeresses in full dress, and of members of the House of Commons were also present. And now a struggle commenced between the two parties into which the House was divided. The object of the opposition was to press Lord Wharncliffe's motion before the king's arrival; the supporters of the ministry wished to prevent it from being passed. The firing of the park guns announced thajt the king was already on his way down to the House, and told the opposition they had no time to lose. On the motion of Lord Mansfield, the Earl of Shaftesbury presided, in the absence of the Lord Chancellor. The Duke of Richmond, in order to baffle the opposition, moved that the standing order which required their lordships to take their places should be enforced. The opposition saw at once that this motion was made for the sake of delay, and angrily protested against it; whereupon the duke threatened to call for the enforcement of two other standing orders which prohibited the use of intemperate and threatening language in the house. Lord Londonderry, furious with in- dignation, broke out into a vehement tirade against the con- duct of the ministry, and thus effectually played the game of his opponents. So violent was the excitement which pre- vailed at this time in the House, that the ladies present were terrified, thinking that the peers would actually come to blows. At length Lord Londonderry was persuaded to sit down, and Lord Wharncliffe obtained a hearing. But it was too late to press his motion, and he contented himself with reading it, in order that it might be entered on the journals of the House. At this conjuncture, the Lord Chancellor returned, and the moment the reading of the address was concluded, he ex- claimed in a vehement and emphatic tone — "My lords, I have never yet heard it doubted that the kihg possessed the prerogative of dissolving Parliament at pleasure, still less have I ever known a doubt to exist on the subject at a moment when the lower House have thought fit to refuse the supplies." Scarcely had he uttered these words when he was summoned to meet the king, who had just ar- rived and was in the robing room; he at once quitted the House, which resounded on all sides with cries of "hear" and "the king." This tumult having in some degree subsided. Lord Mans- field addressed the house, regretting the scene which had just occurred, and condemning: the dissolution, which he of I id I! PARLIAMENTARY REFORM 527 qualified as an act by which the ministers were making the sovereign the instrument of his own destruction. He was interrupted by another storm of violence and con- fusion, which was at length appeased by the announcement that the king was at hand. When he entered, the assembly had recovered its usual calm and decorous tranquillity. The members of the House of Commons having been summoned to the bar, the king, in a loud and firm voice, pronounced his speech, which commenced with the following words : — "My lords and gentlemen, "I have come to meet you for the purpose of proroguing this Parliament, with a view to its immediate dissolution. 'T have been induced to resort to this measure for the purpose of ascertaining the sense of my people, in the way in which it can be most constitutionally and authentically ex- pressed, on the expediency of making such changes in the representation as circumstances may appear to require, and which, founded on the acknowledged principles of the consti- tution, may tend at once to uphold the just rights and pre- rogatives of the crown, and to give security to the liberties of the people." {History of the Reform Bill, ed. cit., 185.) 220. Passage of the First Reform Bill Macatclay The scenes which accompanied the passage of the first Re- form Bill are graphically described in the following letter from Lord Macaulay. The writer was himself an ardent supporter of the Bill, and he thoroughly entered into the spirit of its triumph. PASSAGE OF THE FIRST REFORM BILL London, March 30th, 183 1. Dear Ellis, — I have little news for you, except what you will learn from the papers as well as from me. It is clear that the Reform Bill must pass, either in this or in another Parliament. The majority of one does not appear to me, as it does to you, by any means inauspicious. We should per- haps have had a better plea for a dissolution if the majority had been the other way. But surely a dissolution under such circumstances would have been a most alarming thing. If there should be a dissolution now, there will not be that ferocity in the public mind which there would have been if the House of Commons had refused to entertain the bill at 528 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY all. I confess that, till we had a majority, I was half in- clined to tremble at the storm which he had raised. At present I think that we are absolutely certain of victory, and of victory without commotion. Such a scene as the division of last Tuesday I never saw, and never expect to see again. If I should live fifty years, the impression of it will be as fresh and sharp in my mind as if it had just taken place. It was like seeing Caesar stabbed in the Senate-house, or seeing Oliver taking the mace from the table ; a sight to be seen only once, and never to be forgotten. The crowd overflowed the House in every part. When the strangers were cleared out, and the doors locked, we had six hundred and eight members present — more by fifty-five than ever were in a division before. The ayes and noes were like two volleys of cannon from opposite sides of a field of battle. When the opposition went out into the lobby, an operation which took up twenty minutes or more, we spread ourselves over the benches on both sides of the House ; for there were many of us who had not been able to find a seat during the evening. When the doors were shut we began to speculate on our members. Everybody was desponding. "We have lost it. We are only two hundred and eighty at most. I do not think we are two hundred and fifty. They are three hundred. Alderman Thompson has counted them. He says they are two hundred and ninety- nine." This was the talk on our benches. I wonder that men who have been long in Parliament do not acquire a better coup d'oeil for numbers. The House, when only the ayes were it, looked to me a very fair House — much fuller than it is. generally even on debates of considerable inter- est. I had no hope, however, of three hundred. As the tel- lers passed along our lowest row on the left-hand side the interest was insupportable — two hundred and ninety-one — two hundred and ninety-two — we were all standing up and stretching forward, telling with the teller. At three hun- dred there was a short cry of joy — at three hundred and two another — suppressed, however, in a moment ; for we did not yet know what the hostile force might be. We knew, however, that we could not be severely beaten. The doors were thrown open and in they came. Each of them, as he entered, brought some different report of their members. It must have been impossible, as you may conceive, in the lobby, crowded as they were, to form any exact estimate. First we heard that they were three hundred and three; then that 1 PARLIAMENTARY REFORM 5^9 number rose to three hundred and ten ; then they went down to three hundred and seven. Alexander Barry told me that he had counted, and that they were three hundred and four. We were all breathless with anxiety, when Charles Wood, who stood near the door, jumped upon a bench and cried out, *They are only three hundred and one." We set up a shout that you might have heard to Charing Cross, waving our hats, stamping against the floor, and clapping our hands. The tellers scarcely got through the crowd; for the House was thronged up to the table, and all the floor was fluctua- ting with heads like the pit of a theatre. But you might have heard a pin drop as Duncannon read the members. Then again the shouts broke out, and many of us shed tears. I could scarcely refrain. And the jaw of Peel fell; and the face of Twiss was as the face of a damned soul ; and Herries looked like Judas taking his neck-tie off for the last opera- tion. We shook hands and clapped each other on the back, and went out laughing, crying, and huzzaing into the lobby. And no sooner were the outer doors opened than another shout answered that within the House. All the passages and the stairs into the waiting-rooms were thronged by people who had waited till four in the morning to know the issue. We passed through a narrow lane between two thick masses of them ; and all the way down we were shouting and waving our hats, till we got into the open air. I called a cabriolet, and the first thing the driver asked was, 'Ts the bill carried?" "Yes, by one." 'Thank God for it, sir!" And away I rode to Gray's Inn — and so ended a scene which will probably never be equalled till the reformed Parliament wants reforming ; and that I hope will not be till the days of our grandchildren — till that truly orthodox and apostolical person, Dr. Francis Ellis, is an archbishop of eighty. (Lt/e and Letters of Lord Macaulay , ed. Trevelyan, Lond., 1897. I, 204.) CHAPTER XXXII CHARTISM, AND CORN-LAW REPEAL 221. The First National Petition Gamtnage The first petition drawn up in 1838 by the Chartists, although not that subsequently presented to the House of Commons, well defines the motives and purposes of the movement. One of the six points demanded — that of equal representation — was omit- ted ; perhaps because it was deemed a corollary of universal suffrage. This petition was the first definition of the spirit of the movement, and formed a basis for the petitions which were afterward drafted and presented. "To the Honourable the Commons of Great Britain and Ireland, in Parliament assembled, the Petition of the under- signed, their suffering countrymen, "Humbly Showeth, — "That we, your petitioners, dwell in a land whose mer- chants are noted for their enterprise, whose manufacturers are very skilful, and whose workmen are proverbial for their industry. The land itself is goodly, the soil rich, and the temperature wholesome. It is abundantly furnished w4th the materials of commerce and trade. It has numerous and con- venient harbours. In facility of internal communication it exceeds all others. For three and twenty years we have en- joyed a profound peace. Yet, with all the elements of na- tional prosperity, and with every disposition and capacity to take advantage of them, we find ourselves with public and private suffering. We are bowed down under a load of taxes, which, notwithstanding, fall greatly short of the wants of our rulers. Our traders are trembling on the verge of bankruptcy; our workmen are starving. Capital brings no profit, and labour no remuneration. The home of the artif- icer is desolate, and the warehouse of the pawnbroker is full. The workhouse is crowded, and the manufactory is deserted. 530 CHARTISM, AND CORN -LAW REPEAL 531 We have looked on every side ; we have searched diligently in order to find out the causes of distress so sore and so long continued. We can discover none in nature or in Provi- dence. Heaven has dealt graciously by the people, nor have the people abused its grace, but the foolishness of our rulers has made the goodness of our God of none effect. The ener- gies of a mighty kingdom have been wasted in building up the power of selfish and ignorant men, and its resources squandered for their aggrandisement. The good of a part has been advanced at the sacrifice of the good of the nation. The few have governed for the interest of the few, while the interests of the many have been sottishly neglected, or in- solently and tyrannously trampled upon. It was the fond expectation of the friends of the people that a remedy for the greater part, if not for the whole of their grievances, would be found in the Reform Act of 1832. They regarded that Act as a wise means to a worthy end, as the machinery of an improved legislation, where the will of the masses would be at length potential. They have been bitterly and basely de- ceived. The fruit which looked so fair to the eye, has turned to dust and ashes when gathered. The Reform Act effected a transfer of power from one domineering faction to another, and left the people as helpless as before. Our slavery has been exchanged for an apprenticeship of liberty, which has aggravated the painful feelings of our social degradation, by adding to them the sickening of still deferred hope. We come before your honourable house to tell you, with all hu- mility, that this state of things must not be permitted to con- tinue. That it cannot long continue, without very seriously endangering the stability of the throne, and the peace of the kingdom, and that if, by God's help, and all lawful and con- stitutional appliances, an end can be put to it, we are fully resolved that it shall speedily come to an end. We tell your honourable house, that the capital of the master must no longer be deprived of its due profit; that the labour of the workman must no longer be deprived of its due reward. That the laws w^hich make food dear, and the laws which make money scarce, must be abolished. That taxation must be made to fall on property, not on industry. That the good of the many, as it is the only legitimate end, so must it be the sole study of the government. As a preliminary es- sential to these and other requisite changes — as the means by which alone the interests of the people can be effectually vindicated and secured, we demand that those interests be 532 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY confided to the keeping of the people. When the State calls for defenders, when it calls for money, no consideration of poverty or ignorance can be pleaded in refusal or delay of the call. Required, as we are universally, to support and obey the laws, nature and reason entitle us to demand that in the making of the laws the universal voice shall be implicitly listened to. We perform the duties of freemen; we must have the privileges of freemen. Therefore, we demand universal suffrage. The suffrage, to be exempt from the corruption of the wealthy and the violence of the powerful, must be secret. The assertion of our right necessarily in- volves the power of our uncontrolled exercise. We ask for the reality of a good, not for its semblance, therefore we demand the ballot. The connection between the Representa- tives and the people, to be beneficial, must be intimate. The legislative and constituent powers, for correction and for instruction, ought to be brought into frequent contact. Er- rors which are comparatively light, when susceptible of a speedy popular remedy, may produce the most disastrous effects when permitted to grow inveterate through years of compulsory endurance. To public safety, as well as public confidence, frequent elections are essential. There- fore, we demand annual parliaments. With power to choose, and freedom in choosing, the range of our choice must be unrestricted. W^e are compelled, by the existing laws, to take for our representatives men who are incapable of ap- preciating our difficulties, or have little sympathy with them; merchants who have retired from trade and no longer feel its harrassings; proprietors of land who are alike igno- rant of its evils and its cure ; law^yers by whom the notoriety of the senate is courted only as a means of obtaining notice in the courts. The labours of a representative who is sed- ulous in the discharge of his duty are numerous and burden- some. It is neither just, nor reasonable, nor safe, that they should continue to be gratuitously rendered. We demand that in the future election of members of your honourable house, the approbation of the constituency shall be the sole qualification, and that to every representative so chosen, shall be assigned out of the public taxes, a fair and adequate re- muneration for the time which he is called upon to devote to the public service. The management of this mighty king- dom has hitherto been a subject for contending factions to try their selfish experiments upon. We have felt the con- sequences in our sorrowful experience. Short glimmerings ^ CHARTISM, AND CORN -LAW REPEAL 533 of uncertain enjoyment, swallowed up by long and dark seasons of suffering. If the self-government of the people should not remove their distresses, it will, at least, remove their repinings. Universal suffrage will, and it only can, bring true and lasting peace to the nation ; we firmly believe that it will also bring prosperity. May it therefore please your honourable house, to take this our petition into your most serious consideration, and to use your utmost endeav- ours, by all constitutional means, to have a law passed, grant- ing to every male of lawful age, sane mind, and unconvicted of crime, the right of voting for members of parliament to be in the way of secret ballot, and ordaining that the duration of parliament, so chosen, shall in no case exceed one year, and abolishing all property qualifications in the members, and providing for their due remuneration while in attendance on their parliamentary duties. "And your petitioners shall ever pray." {History of the Chartist Movement, R. G. Gammage, London, 1894. p. 87.) 222. Presentation of the National Petition Gaminage The climax of the Chartist movement occurred upon April loth, 1839, the date of the presentation of the "monster petition." The apprehension of the Government, the attitude of Parliament, and the motives and actions of the leaders of the Chartists are well shown by the following selection from the works of a prominent agitator. The ever memorable loth of April arrived, and vast prep- arations were made by the Government. Beside the regular troops quartered in the metropolis, others poured in from Windsor, Hounslow, Chichester, Chatham, Winchester, and Dover. The marines and sailors of the Royal Navy at Sheerness, Chatham, Birkenhead, Spithead, and other govern- ment towns, as well as the dockyard men, were kept under arms. The Thames police kept watch upon the mercantile marine, lest they should show any leaning towards the Chartists. Heavy gun-batteries were brought from Wool- wich, and placed at various points. The marines were stationed at the Admiralty. Many of the troops were dis- posed of secretly, to be ready in case of necessity. The mounted police were armed with broad swords and pistols. All the public buildings were put in a state of defence. Two thousand stand-of-arms were supplied to the general post- office, for the use of the clerks and officers of that depart- ment, who were all sworn in as special constables; and the S34 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY officials at other public places were equally well provided. All the steam vessels were ordered to be ready for any emergency, in order to convey troops. At the Tower the guns were examined, the battlements strengthened by barricades, and the troops held in readiness to march at a minute's notice. The labourers at the docks were sworn in as specials. The city prisons were guarded by military, and the churches were converted into barracks. The public vehicles were generally withdrawn from the streets. In the city seventy thousand persons were sworn in as special constables, and military officers commanded them. The royal carriages and horses, and other valuables, were removed from the palace. The military force amounted to nine thousand men. It being believed that the procession would go from Kennington Com- mon over Blackfriars Bridge, to the House of Commons, great preparations were made in that quarter. At Stepney Green, Finsbury-square, and Russell-square, bodies of the Chartists met with bands and banners, and paraded the streets on their way to Kennington Common, where six thousand police, and eight thousand specials were in atten- dance. Before eleven o'clock Trafalgar-square was filled with police. The approaches of Westminster Bridge were, on the Surrey side, guarded by strong bodies of that force, and the bridge was placarded with bills, announcing that no procession would be allowed to accompany the Petition to the House. Every commodious place in the vicinity was filled with military, police, or specials. The artillery was also present. Various bodies continued to arrive on the Common with music and banners, bearing various inscriptions, such as "Liberty, Equality, Fraternity" ; "Ireland for the Irish." The Convention assembled at nine o'clock, Reynolds occupying the chair. The delegates' names were called. When the name of Bronterre O'Brien was called, McCarthy said he understood O'Brien had resigned, and he wished to know when he attended last. Doyle said they had no notice of his resignation officially, and he had not attended since the day before the proclamation was issued from the Government. Doyle also announced that he had received a letter from the Commissioner of Police, in reply to one sent by him that the route of procession was altered. The letter stated that the contemplated procession would on no account be allowed to take place. O'Connor delivered a precautionary speech ; took the blame off the Government for the preparations they had made, and charged it upon those who had talked of an » CHARTISM, AND CORN-LAW REPEAL 535 armed demonstration. He said he was prepared to ask the meeting" "in the name of courage, in the name of justice, in the name of God, not to hold the procession, and thus throw their great cause into the hands of the pickpockets and scoundrels, and give the Government an opportunity of attacking them." He then stated that the preparations had been made for shooting from certain windows on the leaders of the movement. He was told this by Alderman Humphery in the House of Commons, by the police, and others. The delegates started from the Convention Room at ten o'clock. The procession was headed by a car, decorated with various banners, and drawn by four horses. This car was to convey the National Petition. This was followed by a second car, drawn by six horses, and containing the delegates. On the front seat were Feargus O'Connor, Doyle, McGrath, Jones, Wheeler, and Harney. This car, like the preceding one, was profusely decorated. As the delegates left a body of people fell into procession behind them, eight abreast. Having arrived at the National Land Company's office, the proces- sion stopped to take up the petition. This accomplished, the procession resumed its march through Holborn, Farringdon- street, and New Bridge-street, to Blackfriar's Bridge. Two or three hundred pensioners were on the Steamboat Pier, who, on being recognised, were loudly cheered by the people in the procession. Quite as many police were on the other side of the Bridge, and a little further on were fifty mounted police with cutlasses. As far as the Blackfriar's-road most of the shops were open, but from the Bridge they were mostly closed. The procession at length reached the Common, where the several bodies of men, with their bands and ban- ners, formed into a dense mass, estimated at from one hun- dred and fifty thousand to one hundred and seventy thousand, and who burst into loud cheering as the delegates' car came upon the Common. . . . . . . The meeting being at an end, the Petition was placed in three cabs, and the Chartist Executive accompanied it to the House of Commons. The police guarded the bridges, and for upwards of an hour after the meeting, prevented any approach on the part of the people. Some endeavoured to effect a passage, but the police used their staves, often with very little moderation. The masses did not, however, risk a collision with the police, and considering the excitement previously existing, the day passed off in a singularly peace- ful manner. 536 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY On the same day O'Connor presented the Petition to the House, which he stated was signed by five million seven hundred thousand persons. He also presented one for the same object, signed by thirty thousand persons. He moved that the first Petition be read by the clerk at the table, which was accordingly done. Lord Morpeth stated that Sir George Grey was unavoidably absent on account of business; but he might say for him, that whatever might be his sentiments on the prayer of the Petition, he would not wish to appear wanting in respect to that or any other petition, signed by a large number of his fellow-subjects. The Petition being roiled out of the House, Bright presented a petition from delegates at Manchester, representing six thousand persons, praying for the six points of the Charter; the abolition of the law of entail and primogeniture ; a limitation of the hours of labour ; and local boards for the regulation of wages. Lushington gave notice that on Friday next he would ask whether it was the intention of the Government to introduce any measure of parliamentary reform during the session. . . . On the same day that the last three motions were adopted, an important scene occurred in the House of Commons on the subject of the National Petition. Thornley brought up a report from the Committee on public petitions. He stated that with the assistance of thirteen law stationer's clerks, the petition which O'Connor had said contained five million seven hundred thousand signatures, had been examined, and it was found to contain only one million nine hundred and seventy- five thousand four hundred and ninety-six, and amongst the rest were signatures such as Victoria Rex, the Duke of Wel- lington, Sir Robert Peel, Colonel Sibthorpe, etc. There were also a large number of fictitious names, such as Pugnose, Longnose, Flatnose, Punch, Snooks, Fubbs, and other obscene names, which he would not offend the House or its dignity by repeating. O'Connor denied that it would be possible for thirteen clerks to count one million nine hundred thousand signatures in the time, and moved for a committee to enquire into the subject. He attributed the fictitious names to Government spies. He believed the number of signatures he had stated was correct. He did not believe he should have any difficulty in obtaining fifteen million or double or treble that number. Thornley said the Committee was not appointed specially to examine that Petition, but it was ap- pointed in the early part of the session, to examine all peti- tions presented to the House. O'Connor had stated that the CHARTISM, AND CORN -LAW REPEAL 537 Petition was contained in four large bundles, and it took himself and four other persons to lift the largest. The Peti- tion had been weighed that morning, and was found to weigh 5cwt. 48 lbs. The Committee was, he trusted, too well known to render any further statement necessary. Lord John Rus- sel expressed himself satisfied with the report. The Earl of Arundel and Surrey, Maurice O'Connell, and Sir R. H. Inglis having spoken, Cripps, one of the Committee, got up and confirmed the statement of Thornley, and stated out of ten thousand signatures, eight thousand two hundred were women. He made some strong remarks upon O'Connor, who replied that he could not be answerable for every signature contained in the Petition. He had palmed no falsehood upon the House, nor had he charged the Committee with practising a deception. After he had spoken O'Connor left the House. (^History of the Chartist Movement, ed. cit., p. 312.) 223. Suffering of the ''Lower Classes" Contemporary Newspaper The following letter to the Sun throws powerful light upon the sufferings of the English poor in the days of Chartism and Reform. The description of the poverty of the lower classes is as vivid as it is painful, and the prophecy with which the letter concludes shows the impression made by the conditions of the times upon men of thought. Sir, — I have been at the siege of Bolton — for nothing but some such cause suggests itself as adequate to the phenome- non. And is it not a siege ? Not carried on perhaps by any enemy within gun-shot, but by one working on a wider radius, and making his blockade by sea upon the means of life. Many sights it has been my chance to see. I think I know what is the minimum of help by which horse, ass, dog, hog, or monkey, can sustain existence, and when it must go out for want of appliances and means of living. But anything like the squalid misery, the slow, mouldering, putrefying death, by which the weak and the feeble of the working classes are perishing here, it never befel my eyes to behold, nor my imagination to conceive. And the creatures seem to have no idea of resisting or even repining. They sit down with Oriental submission, as if it was God, and not the land- lord, that was laying hand upon them. And when their honourable representative in Parliament gave a description 538 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY of their sufferings, "liar" was the best word applied to him by the organs of tyranny. Did you ever set your eyes on a pennyworth of mutton? Come here, and you shall see how rations are served out under the landlord's state of siege. It might bait a rat-trap; though a well-fed rat w^ould hardly risk his personalities for such a pittance. Pennyworths of mutton, and halfpenny- worths of bread cut off the loaf, are what the shopkeepers of Bolton deal out to the inhabitants of their Jerusalem. I saw a woman come for one half penny- worth of bread, which was to be the dinner of herself and her children twain; and when I reflected that of this transparent slice the other one was gone to buy the landlord's sack, astonishment possessed me at the endurance of that long-bearing ass the public, and the extent to which ignorance and divisions will drop the rich man's robbery. I saw another mother of a family, who said she had not tasted meat for many months; and on one of the children being sent off to the butcher's for some of the strange luxury, she was discovered making many efforts to intercept the messager. Her anxiety was to instruct the boy to bring back nothing but one pennyworth of bacon; there was a to^ morrow, and to-morrow, and to-morrow, for which she had conceived the idea of spinning out existence by means of the remainder of the funds. If you are curious in human misery, if you are anxious to know what a shabby tyranny can bring the rank and file to suffer, come, at your leisure, to the "leaguer" of Bolton-, and see what the people sleep upon, if they do sleep. Chopped dirt, the sweepings of a henhouse, mingled with a portion of sparrows' nests, to show that men had heard of straw, would be the best representatives of what they huddle upon in corners, and call it resting. And all this because Sir Having Greedy votes in the House of Commons for closing honest trade, as the means of doubling them by confiscation of the poor man's bread. There is danger in their schemes. Already people of all kinds are paradying the sentiment of the Italians — "Ad ogni uomo puzza questo barbaro dominion' which may be translated for English use, "Neither man nor woman will endure this dynasty of clodhoppers." It wants nothing but the private of the regiment to know what hurts them, and to get rid (as they are doing fast) of the various false lights thrown out to induce them to run in every direction that will CHARTISM, AND CORN -LAW REPEAL 539 preserve the evil ; and a quicker end than pleasant may be put to mischief, which nobody would remove by an earlier application of the prudential virtues. {Recollections oj" Richard Cobden and the Anti-Corn Law League, H. Ashworth, Lond. p. 36.) 224. Repeal of the Corn Law Levi The Anti-Corn-Law movement finally met with the success it merited, though not without encountering fierce opposition. The landed interest was inimical, almost as a unit. Legislation in the interest of the masses found little favour among the upper classes of England at that period, and the voice of the multitude, reduced to the borders of starvation, was long raised in vain. Sir Robert Peel's defection from the opponents of the Bill largely aided its ultimate passage, but to Cobham and Bright belong the greatest meed of praise for the final triumph of the cause of the people. The Anti-Corn-Law agitation was one of those movements which, being founded on right principles, and in harmony with the interests of the masses, was sure to gather fresh strength by any event affecting* the supply of food. It was popular to attempt to reverse a policy which aimed almost exclusively to benefit one class of society. . . . The economic theorists had the mass of the people with them. Their gatherings were becoming more and more enthusiastic. And even amidst Conservative landowners there were not a few enlightened and liberal minds who had already, silently at least, espoused the new ideas. No change certainly could be expected so long as bread was cheap and labour abund- ant. But when a deficient harvest and a blight in the potato crop crippled the resources of the people and raised grain to famine prices, the voice of the League acquired greater power and influence. Hitherto they had received hundreds of pounds. Now, thousands were sent in to sup- port the agitation. A quarter of a million was readily con- tributed. Nor were the contributors Lancashire mill-owners exclusively. Among them were merchants and bankers, men of heart and men of mind, the poor labourer and the peer of the realm. The fervid oratory of Bright, the demonstrative and argumentative reasoning of Cobden, the more popular appeals of Fox, Rawlins, and other platform speakers, filled the newspaper press, and were eagerly read. And when parliament dissolved in August 1845, even Sir Robert Peel showed some slight symptoms of a conviction that the days 540 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY of the corn laws were numbered. Every day, in truth, brought home to his mind a stronger need for action, and as the ravages of the potato disease progressed, he saw that all further resistance would be absolutely dangerous. A cabinet council was held on October 31 to consult as to what was to be done, and at an adjourned meeting on Novem- ber 5 Sir Robert Peel intimated his intention to issue an order in council remitting the duty on grain in bond to one shilling, and opening the ports for the admission of all species of grain at a smaller rate of duty until a day to be named in the order; to call parliament together on the 27th inst., to ask for an indemnity, and a sanction of the order by law; and to submit to parliament immediately after the recess a modification of the existing law, including the admission at a nominal duty of Indian corn and of British colonial corn. A serious difference of opinion, how- ever, was found to exist in the cabinet on the question brought before them, the only ministers supporting such measures being the Earl of Aberdeen, Sir James Graham, and Mr. Sidney Herbert. Nor was it easy to induce the other mem- bers to listen to reason. And though at a subsequent meet- ing, held on November 28, Sir Robert Peel so far secured a majority, it was evident that the cabinet was too divi- ded to justify him in bringing forward his measures, and he decided upon resigning office. This resolution having been communicated to the Queen, her Majesty summoned Lord John Russell to form a cabinet, and, to smooth his path. Sir Robert, Peel, with characteristic frankness, sent a memorandum to her Majesty embodying a promise to give him his support. But Lord John Russell failed in his efforts, and the Queen had no alternative but to recall Sir Robert Peel, and give him full power to carry out his measures. It was under such circumstances that Parliament was called for January 22, 1846, and on January 27 the government plan was propounded before a crowded house. It was not a immediate repeal of the corn laws that Sir Robert Peel recommended. He proposed a temporary pro- tection for three years, till February i, 1849, imposing a scale during that time ranging from 4s. when the price of wheat should be 50s. per quarter and upward, and los. when the price of wheat should be under 48s. per quarter, and that after that period all grain should be admitted at the uniform duty of is. per quarter. The measure, as might have been expected, was received in a very different manner CHARTISM, AND CORN -LAW REPEAL 541 by the political parties in both Houses of Parliament. There was treason in the conservative camp, and keen and bitter was the opposition they offered to their chief. For twelve nights speaker after speaker indulged in personal recrimina- tions. They recalled to Sir Robert Peel's memory the speeches he had made in defence of the corn laws. And as to his assertion that he had changed his mind, they denied his right to do so. . . . The passing of the measure was, however, more than certain, and after a debate of twelve nights' duration on Mr. Miles, amendment, the Government obtained a majority of 97, 337 having voted for the motion and 240 against it. And from that evening the corn law may be said to have expired. (^History of British Commerce, Lond. 1872, p. 292,) CHAPTER XXXIII AUSTRALIA 225. The Establishment of the Colony (27 Geo. III. c. 2, 1787) Barton The following Act established the colony of New South Wales by extending thereto the criminal jurisdiction of the king. Transportation for certain offences had already been determined upon, and Australia presented many advantages as a penal settle- ment. ACT TO ENABLE HIS MAJESTY TO ESTABLISH A CRIMINAL JU- DICATURE ON THE EASTERN COAST OF NEW SOUTH WALES AND THE PARTS ADJACENT Whereas by an Act made and passed in the twenty-fourth year of his present Majesty's reign, intituled — An Act for the effectual transportation of felons and other offenders, and to authorize the removal of prisoners in certain cases, and for other purposes therein mentioned, it is enacted that, from and after the passing of that Act^ when any person or persons at any Sessions of Oyer or Terminer or Gaol Deliv- ery, or at any Quarter or other General Session of the Peace to be holden for any county, riding, division, city, town, borough, liberty, or place, within that part of Great Britain called England, or at any Great Session to be holden for the County Palatine of Chester, or within the Principality of Wales, shall be lawfully convicted of grand or petit larceny, or any other offence for which such person or persons shall be liable by the laws of this realm to be transported, it shall and may be lawful for the Court before which any such person or persons shall be convicted as aforesaid, or any sub- sequent Court holden at any place for the same county, riding, division, city, town, borough, liberty, or place respect- ively, with like authority, to order and adjudge that such person or persons so convicted as aforesaid shall be trans- 542 AUSTRALIA 543 ported beyond the seas for any term of years not exceeding the number of years or terms for which such person or persons is or are or shall be liable by any law to be trans- ported ; and in any such case it shall or may be lawful for his Majesty, by and with the advice of his Privy Council, to de- clare and appoint to what place or places, part or parts, beyond the seas, either within his Majesty's dominions, or elsewhere out of his Majesty's dominions, such felons or other offenders shall be conveyed or transported : And such Court as aforesaid is thereby authorized and empowered to order such offenders to be transferred to the use of any person or persons, and his or their assigns, who shall con- tract for the due performance of such transportation : And when his Majesty, his heirs and successors, shall be pleased to extend mercy to any offender or offenders who hath or have been, or shall be convicted of any crime or crimes, for which he, she, or they is or shall be by law ex- cluded from the benefit of clergy, upon condition of trans- portation to any place or places, part or parts, beyond the seas, either for term of life, or any number of years, and such extension of mercy shall be signified by one of his Ma- jesty's Principal Secretaries of State, it shall be lawful for any Court, having proper authority, to allow such offender or offenders the benefit of a conditional pardon, and (except in cases where such offenders shall be authorized by his Majesty to transport himself, herself, or themselves) to order the transfer of such offender or offenders to any person or persons who shall contract for the due performance of such transportation, and his or their assigns, for such and the same term of years for which any such offender or offenders shall have been ordered to be transported, or for such term of life or years as shall be specified in such condition of transportation : And whereas Sir James Eyre, Knight, and Sir Beaumont oil, bearing date respectively on the sixth day of December, 1786, hath judged fit, by and with the advice of his Privy Council, to declare and appoint the place to which certain offenders named in two lists to the said several Orders-in- Council annexed, should be transported for the time or term in their several sentences mentioned, to be the eastern coast of New South Wales, or some one or other of the islands ad- jacent : And whereas Sir James Eyre, Knight, and Sir Beaumont Hotham, Knight, two of the Borons of his Majesty's Court of 544 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY Exchequer of the degree of coiffe, according to the au- thority of them given by the said statute, did, on the thir- teenth day of December, 1786, order that the said several offenders, in the said several lists to the said several Orders- in-Council annexed, should be transported to the place and for the time and terms aforesaid: And whereas it may be found necessary that a colony and a civil Government should be established in the place to which such convicts shall be transported, under and by virtue of the said Act of Parliament, the said two several Orders-of- Council, and other the said above-recited Orders, and that a Court of Criminal Jurisdiction should also be established within such place as aforesaid, with authority to proceed in a more summary way than is used within this realm, accord- ing to the known and established laws thereof: Be it therefore enacted by the King's Most Excellent Ma- jesty, by and with the advice and consent of the Lords Spiritual and Temporal and Commons, in this present Parlia- ment assembled, and by the authority of the same, that his Majesty may, by his Commission under the Great Seal, au- thorise the person to be appointed Governor, or the Lieuten- ant-Governor in the absence of the Governor, at such place as aforesaid, to convene from time to time, as occasion may require, a Court of Jurdicature for the trial and punishment of all such outrage and misbehaviours as, if committed with- in this realm, would be deemed and taken, according to the laws of this realm, to be treason or misprison thereof, felony or misdemeanor, which Court shall consist of the Judge- Advocate, to be appointed in and for such a place, together with six officers of his Majesty's forces by sea or land: Which Court shall proceed to try such offenders by calling such offenders respectively before that Court, and causing the charge against him, her, or them respectively, to be read over, which charge shall always be reduced into writing, and shall be exhibited to the said Court by the Judge-Advocate, and by examining witnesses upon oath, to be administered by such Court, as well for as against such offenders respect- ively, and afterwards adjudging by the major part of the persons composing such Court, that the party accused is or is not (as the case shall appear to them) guilty of the charge, and by pronouncing judgment therein (as upon a conviction by verdict) of death, if the offence be capital, or of such corporal punishment not extending to capital punishment, as to the said Court shall seem meet; and in case not capital, AUSTRALIA 545 by pronouncing punishment of such corporal punishment, not extending to life or limb, as to the said Court shall seem meet. II. And be it further enacted that the Provost-Marshal, or other officer to be for that purpose appointed by such Governor or Lieutenant-Governor, shall cause due execu- tion of such judgment to be had and made under and ac- cording to the warrant of such Governor or Lieutenant- Governor in the absence of the Governor, under his hand and seal, and no otherwise : Provided always that execution shall not be .had or done on any capital convict or convicts, unless five persons present in such Court shall concur in adjudging him, her, or them, so accused and tried as aforesaid, to be respectively guilty, and until the proceedings shall have been transmitted to his ISIajesty and by him approved. III. And be it so enacted by the authority aforesaid that the said Court shall be a Court of Record, and shall have all such powers as by the laws of England are incident and belonging to a Court of Record. (^History of New South Wales from the Records^ G. B. Barton, Lond. and Sidney, 1889. I, 453). 226. The First Penal Settlement Barton In 1786 there was drawn up the following plan for the estab- lishment of a penal settlement in New South Wales. The document given is not the first submitted, but it is that which contains the plan nearest that which was adopted. The result was the famous "first fleet," which in 1788 sailed for Botany Bay. Although the experiment was not an unqualified success, it was sufficiently so to warrant the continuance of the penal settlements in xA.ustralia. All of these settlements were gener- ically known as Botany Bay, although the spot to which that title belonged was soon abandoned. It was not for many years that Australia was able to free herself from the unjust reproach of being inhabited mainly by convicts. HEADS OF A PLAN For effectually disposing of convicts, and rendering their transportation reciprocally beneficial both to themselves and to the State, by the establishment of a colony in New South Wales, a country which, by the fertility and salubrity of the climate, connected with the remoteness of its situation (from whence it is hardly possible for persons to return without permission), seems peculiarly adapted to answer the views of Government with respect to the providing a remedy for the evils likely to result from the late alarming and numer- 546 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY ous increase of felons in this country, and more particularly in the metropolis. It is proposed that a ship-of-war of a proper class, with a part of her guns mounted, and a sufficient number of men on board for her navigation, and a tender of about two hun- dred tons burthen, commanded by discreet officers, should be got ready as soon as possible to serve as an escort to the convict ships, and for other purposes hereinafter mentioned. That, in addition to their crews, they should take on board two companies of marines, to form a military establishment on shore, not only for the protection of the settlement, if required, against the natives, but for the preservation of good order, together with an assortment of stores, and uten- sils and implements necessary for erecting habitations and for agriculture; and such quantities of provisions as may be proper for the use of the crews. As many of the marines as possible should be artificers, such as carpenters, surveyors, smiths, potters, if possible, and some husbandmen. To have a chaplain on board, with a surgeon and one mate at least, the former to remain at the settlement. That these vessels should touch at the Cape of Good Hope, or any other places that may be convenient, for any seed that may be requisite to be taken from thence, and for such live stock as they can possibly contain, which it is supposed can be procured there without any sort of difficulty, and at the most reasonable rates, for the use of the settlement at large. That Government should immediately provide a certain number of ships of a proper burthen to receive on board at least seven or eight hundred convicts, and that one of them should be properly fitted for the accommodation of the women, to prevent their intercourse with the men. That these ships should take on board as much provisions as they can possibly stow, or at least a sufficient quantity for two years' consumption, supposing one year's to be issued at whole allowance, and the other year's provisions at half- allowance, which will last two years longer; by which time it is presumed that the colony, with the live stock and grain which may be raised by a common industry on the part of the new settlers, will be fully sufficient for their maintenance and support. That, in addition to the crews of the ships appointed to contain the convicts, a company of marines should be divided between them, to be employed as guards for preventing ill AUSTRALIA 547 consequences that might arise from dissatisfaction amongst the convicts, and for the protection of the crews in the navi- gation of the ships from insults that might be offered by the convicts. That each of the ships should have on board at least two surgeons' mates to attend to the wants of the sick, and should be supplied with a proper assortment of medicine and instru- ments, and that two of them should remain with the settle- ment. After the arrival of the ships which are intended to convey the convicts, the ship-of-war and tender may be employed in obtaining live stock from the Cape, or from the Molucca Islands, a sufficient quantity of which may be brought from either of those places to the new settlement, in two or three trips; or the tender, if it should be thought most advisable, may be employed in conveying to the new settlement a further number of women from the Friendly Islands, New Caledonia, etc., which are contiguous thereto, and from whence any number may be procured without difficulty; and without a sufficient proportion of that sex it is well known that it would be impossible to preserve the settlement from gross irregularities and disorders. The whole regulation and management of the settlement should be committed to the care of a discreet officer, and provision should be made in all cases, both civil and military, by special instructions under the Great Seal, or otherwise, as may be thought proper. Upon the whole, it may be observed with great force and truth, that the difference of expense (whatever method of carrying the convicts thither may be adopted) between this mode of disposing of them, and that of the usual ineffectual one, is too trivial to be a consideration with Government, at least in comparison with the great object to be obtained by it, especially now the evil is increased to such an alarm- ing degree, from the inadequacy of all other expedients that have hitherto been tried or suggested. It may not be amiss to remark in favour of this plan that considerable advantage will arise from the cultivation of the New Zealand hemp or flax plant in the new intended settle- ment, the supply of which would be of great consequence to us as a naval power, as our manufacturers are of opinion that canvas made of it would be superior in strength and beauty to any canvas made of the European material, and that a cable of the circumference of ten inches, made from the former, 54^ SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY would be superior in strength to one of eighteen inches made of the latter. The threads or filaments of this New Zealand plant are formed by nature with the most exquisite delicacy, and may be so minutely divided as to be manufactured into the finest linens. Most of the Asiatic productions may also, without doubt, be cultivated in the new settlement, and in a few years may render our recourse to our European neighbours for those productions unnecessary. It may also be proper to attend to the possibility of procuring from New Zealand any quantity of mast and ship timber for the use of our fleet in India, as the distance between the two countries is not greater than between Great Britain and America. It grows close to the water's edge, is of size and quality superior to any hitherto known, and may be obtained without difficulty. STAFF ESTABLISHMENT FOR THE SETTLEMENT OF NEW SOUTH WALES Yearly Salary The Naval Commander appointed Governor or ^ ■''• ^^ Superintendent-General 500 The Commanding Officer of the Marines to be appointed Lieutenant-Governor or Deputy Superintendent 250 o o The Commissary of Stores and Provisions, for himself and assistants, to be appointed or named by the contractors for the provisions 200 o o Pay of a Surgeon . . , . . £182 10 o Pay of two mates 182 10 365 10 o Chaplain 182 10 o £1,497 10 ^ STIMATE OF CLOTHING TO SERVE A MALE CONVICT FOR ONE YEAR Value each No. s. d. £ s. d. Jackets 2 46 090 Woollen drawers , . . . 4 20 080 Hat I 26 026 Shirts 3 30 090 Worsted stockings .... 4 10 040 Frocks 3 23 069 Trousers 3 23 069 Shoes 3 46 0136 _ £2 19 6 AUSTRALIA 549 The expense of clothing female convicts may be computed to amount to like sum. {History of New So7ith Wales, ed. cit., I, 432.) 227. Discovery of Gold E. Hargraves The discovery of gold in Australia marked an epoch in the history of that country. Thitherto the vast expanse of territory had been considered of value only for the purposes of stock- raising; but under the new conditions resulting from the dis- covery of the precious metal the standing of the country was revolutionized. Crowds flocked to its shores, and cities rose as if by enchantment. The question of the actual discoverer of gold has never been determined, but Mr. Hargraves, whose ac- count is given below, was the first to make the discovery known to the world, and so is fairly entitled to the honour of dis- coverer. To the particulars of my own discovery I now proceed. I have already in a former chapter stated my reasons for believing in the existence of gold fields in New South Wales. It was with an anxious heart, therefore, that I again landed at Sydney, in the month of January, 185 1. On my passage thither and immediately on my arrival, I made known to my friends and companions my confident expectations on the subject; one and all, however, derided me, and treated my views and opinions as those of a madman. Still undaunted, on the 5th of February I set out from Sydney on horseback alone to cross the Blue Mountains. . . . After resting one day at Guyong, on the 12th of February I started thence, accompanied by young Lister. Our course was down the Lewes Pond Creek, a tributary to the Summer Flill Creek, which again is a tributary of the Macquarie River, After traveling a distance of about fifteen miles, I found myself in the country that I was anxiously longing to behold again. My recollection of it had not deceived me. The resemblance of its formation to that of California could not be doubted or mistaken. I felt myself surrounded by gold ; and with tremulous anxiet}^ panted for the moment of trial, when my magician's wand should transform this track- less wilderness into a region of countless wealth. Still one difficulty seemed to present itself. There had been an unusual drought during the summer, which was now drawing to a close, and the creek, where we then were, was completely dried up. My guide, however, in answer to my inquiries told me that we should find water lower down; so, S50 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY following its course, we soon fell in with some rocks which contained a sufficient supply. We now turned out our horses, and seated ourselves on the turf, as it was necessary to satisfy the cravings of hunger before I ventured on my grand experiment. Had that failed, but little appetite for food would have been left me. My guide went for water to drink, and, after making a hasty repast, I told him that we were now in the gold fields, and that the gold was under his feet as he went to fetch the water for our dinner. He started with incredulous amaze- ment, and, on my telling him that I would now find some gold,' watched my movements with the most intense interest. My own excitement, probably, was far more intense than his. I took the pick and scratched the gravel off a schistose dyke, which ran across the creek at right angles with its sides ; and, with the trowel, I dug a panful of earth, which I washed in the water-hole. The first trial produced a little piece of gold. "Here it is!" I exclaimed; and I then washed five panfuls in succession, obtaining gold from all but one. No further proof was necessary. To describe my feelings at that eventful moment would be impossible. What I said on the instant — though, I must admit, not warranted as the language of calm reflection — has been since much laughed at. And though my readers may renew the laugh, I shaU not hesitate to repeat it, because, as it was the natural and im- pulsive impression of my overwrought feelings at the mo- ment, so is it the only account I can now give of what those feelings were. "This," I exclaimed to my guide, "is a memorable day in the history of New South Wales. I shall be a baronet, you will be knighted, and my old horse will.be stuffed, put into a glass-case, and sent to the British Museum !" At that instant I felt myself to be a great man. I was as mad, perhaps, at the moment, as Don Quixote was his life through; and assuredly, my companion was as simple as Sancho Panza — for the good youth afterwards told me, he expected I should obtain for him the honour I had promised. On our return that night to the inn at Guyong, I wrote a memorandum of the discovery, which I afterwards gave to the Colonial Secretary, as a memorial of the great event. (^Australia and its Gold Fields, ed. Hammond, Lond., 1855. p. 11 1.) AUSTRALIA S5i 228. Results of the Finding of Gold Co?tte7nporary Pamphlet The following account of the consequences of the discovery of gold is of great interest. It is written with thought as well as care, and the evil as well as the good results likely to accrue are pointed out. The former were averted by the good sense of the Australians, although at one time it seemed as if the coun- try would fall into a worse condition than that which existed when the colony was only a penal settlement. The first results of the Australian gold discoveries are now displayed in a tangible, unmistakable shape — individual loss, individual suffering, by the diversion of capital and labour. There may be many carried away by mere enthusiasm, who will rue the day they abandoned the certain easy employ- ments of civilized life for the hard navigator-like trade of a gold-seeker ; but the advantage of this new mineral discovery is unquestionable, in spite of all that croakers may say and sing. Up to the middle of May, 185 1, as heretofore shown, the colonial heart beat high with hope. Trade was good; the pastoral interests were flourishing; the country properties, as a matter of course, were improving; and the introduction of the alpaca, the extended culture of the vine, and the growth of cotton, appeared to present new and rich sources of wealth. At that moment came the discovery of the gold fields; and a shock was communicated to the whole indus- trial system, which to some people seemed to threaten almost annihilation. The idea was, that gold digging would swallow up all other pursuits, and the flocks perish in the wilderness from the want of shepherds. Nor was this altogether with- out foundation; for the stockholders have actually been con- siderable sufferers: all the industrial projects mentioned have been stopped short ; and the gold-diggings still continue to attract to themselves, as if by a spell, the labour of the country. The panic, however, has now subsided. It is seen that the result is not so bad as was anticipated, and it is now rendered evident that the evil will go no further. A stream of population, it is thought, wnll be directed to Australia from abroad, and the labour not demanded by gold may suf- fice for other ptirsuits. Already upwards of two millions sterling have been real- ised by the rude exertions of part of a poptilation which has never yet exported more than three millions of raw produce; and with the evidence now before us, we may confidently 552 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY assert, that although there will be a temporary diminution in the exportation of Australian wool under new arrangements, the flocks of Australia will not be destroyed. The Australian population have stood the test of gold wonderfully, and come out of the trial with honour. Their conduct, as a body, has been singularly orderly and sub- missive to the constituted authorities. Two very healthy signs are displayed by the Australian diggers — the multiplication of marriages and the large con- sumption of the best articles of female attire. At Port Phillip it is impossible to retain a tidy servant girl. The first luxury to which the successful gold-seeker treats himself on his return for a holiday is a wife, and the wife is then treated to the best gowns and shawls that the shops afford. A friend writes that "the carpenters and smiths of Melbourne and Geelong will not let their wifes be seen in a gown of less cost than ten pounds, with a shawl and bonnet to match." Whatever may be the taste of the workers from the Turon or Braidwood, Ballarat and Mount Alexander, it is certain that what they purchase they honestly pay for, and no one will suffer for their gains. The advantage, in a commercial point of view, is obvious. The man who was earning before £20 or £40 a year, of which, perhaps, he spent one-half in manufactures, can now afford to spend — and does spend — from £100 to £500 a year. The tales of wild extravagance are grossly exaggerated, and not at all to be depended upon. On the best authority, we can assert that the colonists are spending and investing their money in a very creditable manner. Among other proofs may be cited the circumstance of two thousand pounds received in gold-dust in less than seven wxeks after his arrival at Port Phillip, by Captain Chisholm, from working men, to pay the passage of their relatives. Now that so strong a stream of self-paid emigration is flowing, the sooner the Government free emigration is given up the better for the mother country and for the colonies. Many a man does not save as he could, to pay his own passage, because he hopes to win a prize in the Government lottery. Education, and free, liberal education, is in truth the only thing required in Australia. Education, established and ex- tended from the time the May Flower landed her Puritan freight on the bleak shores of New England, until the time AUSTRALIA 553 when the progress of commerce brought r. deluge of emigrant ignorance, has saved America under a different form of Gov- ernment, and neutralized the effect of the late annual inva- sion of the uneducated. But in Australia no such provision exists, or is possible. And if England goes on annually in- oculating the gold fields with illiterate strong arms, the feeble efforts made by Australia to redeem the errors of past educational neglect, will never be able to overtake and arrest the disease. {Australia (pamphlet), B. Fabian, N. Y., 1852. p. 77.) CHAPTER XXXIV THE INDIAN EMPIRE 229. The English at Surat and Bombay Fryer Dr. Fryer, a surgeon in the service of the East India Com- pany, visited Surat in 1674. His travels were published in London in 1698. They contain a graphic account of the manner in which the Company conducted its affairs in India. The house the English live in at Surat, is partly the King's gift, partly hired; built of stone and excellent timber, with good carving, w^ithout representations ; very strong, for that each floor is half a yard thick at least, of the best plastered cement, which is very weighty. It is contrived after the Moor's buildings, with upper and lower galleries, or terrace- walks; a neat Oratory, a convenient open place for meals. The President has spacious lodgings, noble rooms for counsel and entertainment, pleasant tanks, yards, and a hummum to wash in; but no gardens in the city, or very few, though without the city they have many, like wildernesses, over- spread with trees. The English had a neat one, but Sevaji's coming destroyed it. It is known, as the other Factories are, by their several flags flying. Here they live (in shipping-time) in a continual hurly- burly, the Banians presenting themselves from the hour of ten till noon; and then afternoon at four till night, as if it were an Exchange in every row; below stairs, the packers and warehouse-keepers, together with merchants bringing and receiving musters, make a mere Billinsgate; for if you make not a noise, they hardly think you intent on what you are doing. Among the English, the business is distributed into four offices; the Accompant, who is next in dignity to the Pres- ident, the general accompts of all India, as well as this place, passing through his hands; he is quasi Treasurer, signing all things, though the broker keep the cash. Next him is the 554 THE INDIAN EMPIRE 555 warehouse-keeper, who registers all Europe goods vended, and receives all Eastern commodities bought; under him is the Purser Marine, who gives account of all goods exported and imported, pays seamen their w^ages, provides wagons and porters, looks after tackling for ships, and ships' stores. Last of all is the Secretary, who models all Consultations, writes all letters, carries them to the President and Council to be perused and signed; keeps the Company's seal, which is affixed to all passes and commissions; records all trans- actions, and sends copies of them to the Company; though none of these, without the President's approbation, can act or do any thing. The affairs of India are solely under his regulation; from him issue out all orders, by him all prefer- ment is disposed; by which means the Council are biassed by his arbitrament. The whole mass of the Company's servants may be com- prehended in these classes, viz. : Merchants, Factors, and Writers; some Bluecoat Boys also have been entertained under notion of apprentices for seven years, which being ex- pired, if they can get security, they are capable of employ- ments. The Writers are obliged to serve five years for lo Z. per Ann. Giving in a bond of 500 /. for good behaviour, all which time they serve under some of the forementioned Officers : After which they commence Factors, and rise to preferment and trust, according to seniority or favour, and therefore have a 1,000 I. bond exacted from them, and have their salary augmented to 20 I. per Ann. for three years, then entering into new indentures, are made Senior Factors; and lastly, Merchants after Three Years more ; out of whom are chose Chiefs of Factories, as places fall, and are allowed 40 /. per Ann. during their stay in the Company's service, besides lodgings and victuals at the Company's charges. These in their several Seigniories behave themselves after the fundamentals of Surat, and in their respective Factories live in the like grandeur; from whence they rise successively to be of the Council in Surat, which is the great Council ; and if the President do not contradict, are sworn, and take their place accordingly, which consists of about five in number, besides the president, to be constantly resident. As for the Presidency, though the Company interpose a deserving man, yet they keep that power to themselves, none assuming that dignity till confirmed by them: His salary from the Company is 500 /. a year ; half paid here, the other half reserved to be received at home, in case of misdemeanour 556 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY to make satisfaction; beside a bond of 5,000 /. sterling of good securities. The Accountant has y2 I. per Ann., fifty pound paid here, the other at home: All the rest are half paid here, half at home, except the Writers, who have all paid here. Out of the Council are elected the Deputy-Governor of Bombay, and Agent of Persia ; the first a place of great trust, the other of profit; though, by the appointment from the Company, the Second of India claims Bombay, and the Sec- retary of Surat the Agency of Persia, which is connived at, and made subject to the will of the President, by the interest of those whose lot they are; chusing rather to reside here, where consignments compensate those emoluments ; so that none of the council, if noted in England, but makes consid- erably by his place, after the rate of five in the hundred, commission; and this is the Jacob's ladder by which they ascend. It would be too mean to descend to indirect ways, which are chiefly managed by the Banians, the fittest tools for any deceitful undertaking; out of whom are made brokers for the Company, and private persons, who are allowed two per cent, on all bargains, besides what they squeeze secretly out of the price of things bought; w^hich cannot be well under- stood for want of knowledge in their language ; which ignor- ance is safer, than to hazard being poisoned for prying too nearly into their actions : Though the Company, to encourage young men in their service, maintain a master to learn them to write and read the language, and an annuity to be annexed when they gain a perfection therein, which few attempt, and fewer attain. To this Factory belong twenty persons in number, reckon- ing Swally Marine into the account; a Minister for Divine Service, a Surgeon, and when the President is here, a guard of English soldiers, consisting of a double file led by a Ser- jeant. The present Deputy has only forty Moor-men, and a flag- man, carrying St. George his colours swallow-tailed in silk, fastened to a silver partisan; with a small attendance of horse with silver bridles, and furniture for the gentlemen of the house, and coaches for ladies and Council. The President besides these has a noise of trumpets, and is carried himself in a Palenkeen, a horse of state led before him, a Mirchal (a fan of ostriches' feathers) to keep off the sun, as the Omr?ihs or great men have, none but the Emperor THE INDIAN EMPIRE 557 have a Sumbrero among the Moguls : Besides these, every one according to his quality has his menial servants to wait on him in his chamber, and follow him out. . . . But lest the New Company should be exclaimed against as too greedy monopolizers, they permit free traders on their Island Bombay ; when, to speak truth, they are in a far worse condition than their servants ; being tied up without hopes of raising themselves : so that in earnest they find out that to be but a trick. However, to confess on the Company's behalf, the trade (I mean on this coast) for some years lately passed has hardly balanced expenses. They employing yearly forty sail of stout ships to and from all parts where they trade, out and home ; manning and maintaining their Island Bombay, Fort St. George, and St. Helens : besides large sums expended to bear out the port of their Factors; which notwithstanding by impartial computation has been found inferior to the costs of the Hollanders, and therefore more to the profit of the English East India Company, than theirs, in the few years they have adventured; so that I should mightily blame them should they prove ungrateful to His Majesty, who by his gracious favour has united them in a society, whereby they are competitors for riches (though not strength) with the notedest Company in the universe. This Charter was granted presently after the happy res- toration of our Gracious Sovereign, when order began to dawn, and dispel the dark chaos of popular community : Then was sent out a President, to put their Charter in force, and establish a graduation among their servants, which before was not observed ; only for order's sake, they did nominate an Agent; the rest being independent, made no distinction. When as now, after a better model, they commence accord- ing to their standing, and are under a collegiate manner of restraint. (New Account of East India and Persia, John Fryer, M. D., London, 1698. Reprinted in Early Records of British India, J. T. Wheeler, London, 1878.) 230. Letter of Warren Hastings Hastings The following letter from Warren Hastings is interesting as setting forth his side of the discussion which resulted in his impeachment. Being a private letter to a personal friend, it is unlikely that the former ruler of India w'ould therein defend himself against accusation unless he at least believed that the defence was justifiable. Hastings' trial was memorable in the history of India, for the reason that, whether or not he was 558 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY guilty of the crimes imputed to him, it served as a warning to future rulers in their transactions with the natives. They learned that there was retribution in store for cruelty and op- pression, and that the "pagoda-tree" could not be robbed with impunity. TO SIR JOHN SHORE St. James's Place, 19th February, 1787. Dear Shore, — As I have now every reason to believe that an impeachment w^ill be carried against me to the House of Lords, and have had a severe warning given me not to trust to my own integrity, or services, as I may conceive them, for the event, — and as I fear no issue of the trial so much as its influence upon my future and lasting reputation, — I ap- ply to you, my friend, to afford me such assistance as, I hope, may be in your power to obviate such a conclusion, by col- lecting the testimonials of the most respectable inhabitants of the province of Bengal, and such other creditable vouchers, of whatever kind, beyond the provinces, as may refute the calumnies with which I have been loaded, and ascertain whatever pretentions I may have to more positive merit. I am charged with cruelty, oppression, violation of treaties, and with the general guilt of having sacrificed every duty to the views of interest, ambition, or private vengeance. I am not sure that rapacity makes a part of the catalogue of my imputed crimes, because the instances which have been ad- duced in evidence to prove it apply only to acts done for the relief of public necessities, and it is scarcely (I believe not at all) insinuated, that I have practiced it for any profit of my own. I wish to make my appeal to the justice and generosity of those to whom it best appertains to pronounce upon my real character, according to their several relations or concerns with the government of Bengal during the periods in which I held an efficient share in its powers ; that they may declare whether I deserve these imputations, or whether I am entitled to their testimony of the reverse. Whether I have extorted money from individuals to gratify my own avarice ; or whether I have not notoriously abstained from every means which might have promoted my own in- terest, with the injury of individuals or the public: Whether I have countenanced, or permitted; or whether I have not, on the contrary, to the utmost of my power pre- vented men in office or favour from oppressing or plunder- THE INDIAN EMPIRE 559 ing those who were subjected to their authority or influ- ence: Whether the provinces have been infested with robbers, or plundering Seneassies, as much during my administration as in the times preceding it : Whether the provinces have suffered the calamities either of war or famine during my administration ; or whether they have not enjoyed both uninterrupted peace and abundance, though our Government and nation were for years engaged in wars with powerful states and neighbours, and were at one time threatened with a dearth from the same causes which produced one in 1768: Whether I have oppressed the reiats by intolerable or un- equal taxes, for the public service ; or whether I have not rather multiplied the sources of the public wealth, and equal- ised the burthens imposed on the people. Whether I have neglected the administration of justice; or whether I have not established Courts of Civil and Crim- inal Justice, and supported both in the exercise of their func- tions beyond the experience of any former times : Whether I have offended, or discountenanced the laws, customs, and religious worship of the country; or whether I have not respected, protected, and conformed to them : Whether I have shown a disregard to science ; or whether I have not, on the contrary, by public endowments, by per- sona! attentions, and by the selection of men for appointments suited to their talents, given effectual encouragement to it : Whether in my public negociations, and in my general intercourse, I have made use of artifice and trick, or of truth and plain-dealing: Whether I have affected a display of state ; whether I have ever shown an inordinate solicitude for my personal safety ; or whether I have not been thought to err in the opposite extremes : Whether I left the country in a worse or in a better state of population and cultivation than I found it: And lastly, whether the English name, power, and influ- ence were ever greater, more respected, or more extensively known in India before than during my administration, and particularly at the close of it. The persons who can be most instrumental in collecting the suffrages which I require, are Gunga Govin Sing; Allee Ibraheem Cawn ; Beneram, or Bissumbes Pundit; Rajah Go- vindram; Tofuzzel Hossein Cawn; Mowlary Majud O'Deen. 5«o- SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY or his brother Muftee Ahmed; and I believe I may venture to join Mahdajee Sindia. I would wish at least to have his testimony, and those of every other chief with whom our Gov- ernment was in connexion; Moodajee, the ministers of Poona, Nizam al Moolk, Assof o'Dowlah, and the Nabob Wallah Jah. I cannot prescribe the means. Perhaps I have been too particular in detailing the ends. But you must make al- lowance for my anxiety, and the cause which I have to make me more than ordinarily anxious. If you think that you can undertake this commission with an assurance of its complete execution, you will of course (as I should on every account wish) first propose it to Lord Cornwallis for his approbation. If he objects to it, there must of course be an end to it. Even from the little which I know of his Lordship, and from his general character, I give him credit for qualities incompatible with such a supposition, and assure myself besides that he w^ill not in Bengal have changed the opinion which he entertained of me in England for a worse. I wil not ask your forgiveness for wishing to impose on you so much trouble; but I ought if I thought that it might eventually draw on you the same enmities which are now directed at me. I confess, I think such may be the conse- quence, though I rather hope that the crisis of this phrenzy may terminate with me. If it does not, I am not sure that any conduct will be a safeguard against it. You will readily comprehend that I do not mean to use the justification which I solicit from your means for any purpose of meeting the impending trial ; for though I am certain that every artifice will be put in practice to protect it, it will be impossible to extend the delay beyond another sessions; I mean another after the present. The result, therefore, of this plan can be of no other benefit to me than that of retrieving my character from the injury which it may have received from the present prosecution, and its legal consequences. These must all have ceased long before the result of my com- mission can arrive in England. I am not sure that the House of Commons will vote an impeachinent. I cannot be certain that the same prejudices, the same intrigues, and the same influence may not follow me into the House of Lords, though in judicial matters the character of that assembly stands hitherto unimpeached. But I have been told by judgments much better informed than those of common men, that much I THE INDIAN EMPIRE 561 is to be apprehended, even in that assembly, from the respect paid to a decided judgment of the House of Commons, and yet more to the ascribed inclination of the minister; and I myself have my doubts of another kind. The charges may prove so numerous and complicated, that every mind will not be able to comprehend them, or to retain even what they do comprehend; and the tedious and artificial examination of the witnesses to every charge will, with other process, take up such a length of time, that the aged, infirm, and indiffer- ent will not sit out the trial. I may therefore lose many ver- dicts in my favour. None will be lost to those which are predetermined against me. I am almost ashamed of these suspicions, yet, after what has passed, how can I avoid them ? I have been condemned by one assembly for having intended by a resolution, which was confined to my own breast, to ex- act a fine from Cheyt Sing exceeding his offences, admitted to be great, and a fine, if moderate, admitted to be a legal and proper punishment. I have been condemned for permitting the jagheers and treasures to be taken from the mother of the Nabod Assof o'Dowlah, because in the evidence adduced by my prosecutor to prove my guilt, I had not brought proofs sufficient of the Begum's rebellion against her sovereign, and hostility to our nation ; though the charge, black and ran- corous as it is, and the admired harangue of the mover of the charge, fabricated with the labour of months, and the combi- nation of all the powers of a great party, both stated in terms that the money produced by these exactions was applied to the relief of the public necessities, and they have not dared to suggest that I took or attempted to take any part of it to my own use. Let, however, this business end as it will, a great portion of mankind will think they judge with candour, if, unable to comprehend any part of the accusations, they acquit me, at a guess, of some, and conclude that where so much is alleged against me, much of it must be necessarily true. The plan which I have recommended may be product- ive of that species of evidence which the meanest capacity will understand, and which will most effectually and totally efface every prejudice against me. Let it arrive when it will, whether I shall have received an absolute and unquali- fied, acquittal, or a condemnation ; whether I am alive or dead", it will answer the end for which I want it. I am ever, my dear Shore, your most affectionate friend. {Memoirs of the Life of the Right Hon. IVarren Hastings, by Rev. G. R. Gleis, Lond., 1841, III, p. 321.) 562 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 231. Cession of India to the English Crown (1858) In 1858 the old East India Company formally resigned its interests in India, and the land became entirely subject to the crown of England. There were many reasons for this step ; the old government had not proved entirely faithful to the trusts reposed in it, and there was need for a more stable form of rule. The proclamation made by the Queen sets forth the policy adopted by England in assuming control. It must be remem- bered that at the time of the transfer the India Mutiny was in progress; hence the clauses as to the enforcement of justice and the granting of clemency. It is probable that to this fact was also due the tenderness displayed for the religious feelings of the natives. PROCLAMATION BY THE QUEEN IN COUNCIL TO THE PRINCES^ CHIEFS, AND PEOPLE OF INDIA Victoria, by the grace of God of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland, and of the Colonies and Depen- dencies thereof in Europe, Asia, Africa, America, and Aus- tralia, Queen, Defender of the Faith. Whereas, for divers v^eighty reasons, we have resolved, by and with the advice and consent of the Lords Spiritual and Temporal, and Commons, in Parliament assembled, to take upon ourselves the government of the territories in India heretofore administered in trust for us by the Honourable East India Company, Now, therefore, we do by these presents notify and declare that, by the advice and consent aforesaid, we have taken upon ourselves the said government; and we hereby call upon all our subjects within the said territories to be faithful, and to bear true allegiance to us, our heirs and successors, and to submit themselves to the authority of those w^honi w^e may hereafter, from time to time, see fit to appoint to administer the government of our said territories, in our name and on our behalf. And we, reposing especial trust and confidence in the loyalty, ability, and judgment of our right trusty and well- beloved cousin and counsellor, Charles John, Viscount Canning, do hereby constitute and appoint him, the said Vis- count Canning, to be our first Viceroy and Governor-General in and over our said territories, and to administer the govern- ment thereof in our name, and generally to act in our name and on our behalf, subject to such orders and regulations as he shall, from time to time, receive from us through one of our Principal Secretaries of State. THE INDIAN EMPIRE 563 And we do hereby confirm in their several offices, civil and military, all persons now employed in the service of the Honourable East India Company, subject to our future pleasure, and to such laws and regulations as may hereafter be enacted. We hereby announce to the native princes of India that all treaties and engagements made with them by or under the authority of the Honourable East India Company are by us accepted, and will be scrupulously maintained, and we look for the like observance on their part. We desire no extension of our present territorial posses- sions ; and, while we will permit no aggression upon our do- minions or our rights to be attempted with impunity, we shall sanction no encroachment on those of others. We shall respect the rights, dignity, and honour of native princes as our own : and we desire that they, as well as our own sub- jects, should enjoy that prosperity and that social advance- ment which can only be secured by internal peace and good government. We hold ourselves bound to the natives of our Indian ter- ritories by the same obligations of duty which bind us to all our other subjects, and those obligations, by the blessing of Almighty God, we shall faithfully and conscientiously fulfil. Firmly relying ourselves on the truth of Christianity, and acknowledging with gratitude the solace of religion, we dis- claim alike the right and desire to impose our convictions on any of our subjects. We declare it to be our royal will and pleasure that none be in anywise favoured, none molested or disquieted, by reason of their religious faith or observances, but that all shall alike enjoy the equal and impartial protec- tion of the law ; and we do strictly charge and enjoin all those w^ho may be in authority under us that they abstain from all interference with the religious belief or worship of any of our subjects on pain of our highest displeasure. And it is our further will that, so far as may be, our sub- jects, of whatever race or creed, be freely and impartially admitted to offices in our service, the duties of which they may be qualified, by their education, ability, and integrity, duly to discharge. We know, and respect, the feelings of attachment with which the natives of India regard the lands inherited by them from their ancestors, and we desire to protect them in all rights connected therewith, subject to the equitable demands of the State; and we will that, generally, in framing and ad- 564 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY ministering the law, due regard be paid to the ancient rights, usages, and customs of India. We deeply lament the evils and misery which have been brought upon India by the acts of ambitious men, vv^ho have deceived their countrymen by false reports, and led them into open rebellion. Our power has been shown by the suppres- sion of that rebellion in the field : we desire to show our mercy by pardoning the offences of those who have been thus misled, but who desire to return to the path of duty. Already, in one province, with a view to stop the further effusion of blood, and to hasten the pacification of our In- dian dominions, our Viceroy and Governor-General has held out the expectation of pardon, on certain terms, to the great majority of those who, in the late unhappy disturbances, have been guilty of offences against our Government, and has de- clared the punishment which will be inflicted on those whose crimes place beyond the reach of forgiveness. We approve and confirm the said act of our Viceroy and Governor- General, and do further announce and proclaim as follows : Our clemency will be extended to all offenders, save and except those who have been, or shall be, convicted of having directly taken part in the murder of British subjects. With regard to such the demands of justice forbid the exercise of mercy. To those who have willingly given asylum to murderers, knowing them to be such, or who may have acted as leaders or instigators in revolt, their lives alone can be guaranteed; but, in apportioning the penalty due to, such persons, full consideration will be given to the circumstances under which they have been induced to throw off their allegiance; and large indulgence will be shown to those whose crimes may ap- pear to have originated in the credulous acceptance of the false reports circulated by designing men. To all others in arms against the government we hereby promise unconditional pardon, amnesty, and oblivion of all offence against ourselves, our crown, and dignity, on their return to their homes and peaceful pursuits. It is our royal pleasure, that these terms of grace and amnesty should be extended to all those who comply with these conditions before the ist day of January next. When, by the blessing of Providence, internal tranquillity shall be restored, it is our earnest desire to stimulate the peaceful industry of India, to promote works of public utility and improvement, and to administer its government for the THE INDIAN EMPIRE 565 benefit of all our subjects resident therein. In their pros- perity will be our strength, in their contentment our security, and in their gratitude our best reward. And may the God of all power grant to us, and to those in authority under us, strength to carry out these our wishes for the good of our people. (^History of India, E. H. Nolan, Lond., n. d., Ill, p. i.) 232. Victoria, Empress of India (1877) Wheeler In 1876 Victoria issued a formal proclamation, in which she assumed the dignity and title of Empress of India. This pro- clamation recited that on January i, 1877, the said title and dig- nity were to vest in the royal house of England. The date named was made a day of festivity in India. The royal procla- mation was read at Delhi with impressive ceremonies. The ac- count of these ceremonies, which also contains the text of the royal proclamation, is given. The first of January eighteen hundred and seventy-seven was the great day of the Imperial Assemblage. Her Majesty the Queen of England was proclaimed Empress of India. The Governors and other High Officials of British India were assembled together with all the Ruling Native Chiefs to inaugurate the installation of the Empress as the Sover- eign of Her Eastern Empire. . . . The scene of the Proclamation was a turf-covered plain about four miles from Delhi. Three structures had been set up, namely, a Throne Pavilion for the Viceroy, an Amphi- theatre for the High Officials and Ruling Chiefs, and blocks for Representatives of Foreign Governments and. spectators. The Throne Pavilion was a graceful building of blue, red, and gold, near the centre of the acre. It was a hexagon ; each of its sides were forty feet long ; the whole was thus about two hundred and twenty-four feet round. The details are worth describing. The lower part was a solid structure of masonry ten feet from the ground. It was surrounded by a gilded railing. There was a flight of steps in front and another behind, also with gilded railings. The upper part was a canopy raised over the structure, supported on twelve slender clustered shafts. The Imperial Crown at the top rested upon a cushion. Beneath it depended a graceful drapery of red clothes embroidered with gold. On the upper cornice was worked a pattern of festooned laurel wreaths and Imperial Crowns. At each angle was a trophy of three 565 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY satin bannerets, festooned outwards, displaying the Cross of St. George and the Union Jack. Below the cornice the ca- nopy was continued in alternate stripes of red and white satin, embroidered with golden fleurs de lis. There was a lower frieze with an armorial vallance hanging from it. The frieze displaced the Rose, Shamrock, and Thistle, embroid- ered with the Lotos of India in gold, silver, and colours. It was adorned at each angle by a gilded crown and silken drapery. The vallance was composed of shield-shaped forms, on which were shown alternately the Irish Harp, the Lion Rampant of Scotland, and the three Lions of England. The shafts of the canopy were hung with silver shields, about ten feet from the ground, bearing the imperial monogram in gold, surmounted by bannerets of various-coloured satins. . . . From an early hour there had been a general gathering towards the Imperial Assemblage. Ruling Chiefs drove by in state carriages accompanied by retainers and soldiers. Groups of elephants crowded to the same spot clad in the trappings they had worn on the day of the entry. Vast multitudes also assembled to see the various Chiefs and High Officials pass by on their way to the place of Proclamation. The spectators' seats on either side of the Throne Pavilion were occupied by Ambassadors, Envoys, and Deputations, including those from Nipal and Siam; also by Foreign Con- suls, and a large number of European ladies and gentlemen. Here also were seated- the Khan of Khelat, the Governor- General of the Portuguese Settlements in India, and numer- ous Native nobles and officials. The general public were also admitted in great numbers to the inclosure, behind the Amphitheatre. All the British troops assembled at Delhi were drawn up on a plain, to the north of the pavilions ; the Native chiefs and nobles had in like manner drawn up their retainers and followers on the opposite plain to the south of the pavilions. Guards of honour were drawn up on either side of the Throne Pavilion, as well as at each of the several entrances to the Amphitheatre. At noon a flourish of trumpets from the Heralds an- nounced the arrival of His Excellency the Viceroy. All who were present in that vast assembly rose from their seats; the military bands played a grand march. His Excellency, who was accompanied by Lady Lytton and the members of his family, alighted from his carriage and advanced towards the Throne Pavilion preceded by the Personal Staff. The THE INDIAN EMPIRE 567 bands struck up the National Anthem, and the guards of honour presented arms as the Viceroy took his seat upon the throne. The proceedings were simple and impressive. His Ex- cellency was arrayed in his robes as Grand Master of the Star of India. He commanded the Chief Herald to read the Proclamation of the assumption of the Imperial Title by Her Majesty the Queen. The twelve Heralds sounded a flourish of trumpets. The Chief Herald then read the Pro- clamation in a loud voice, which was heard by the whole Assemblage, "Victoria, R. "Whereas an Act has been passed in the present Sessions of Parliament, intituled 'An Act to enable Her Most Gra- cious Majesty to make an addition to the Royal Style and Titles appertaining to the Imperial Crown of the United Kingdom and its Dependencies,' which Act recites that, by the Act for the Union of Great Britain and Ireland, it was provided that after such Union the Royal Style and Titles appertaining to the Imperial Crown of the United Kingdom and its Dependencies should be such as His Majesty by His Royal Proclamation under the Great Seal of the United Kingdom should be pleased to appoint : and which Act also recites that, by virtue of the said Act, and of a Royal Pro- clamation under the Great Seal, dated the ist day of Jan- uary 1 80 1, Our present Style and Titles are 'Victoria, by the Grace of God of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland Queen, Defender of the Faith' : and which Act also recites that, by the Act for the better government of India, it was enacted that the Government of India, thereto- fore vested in the East India Company in trust for Us, should become vested in Us, and that India should thenceforth be governed by Us and in Our name, and that it is expedient that there should be a recognition of the transfer of govern- ment so made by means of an addition to be made to Our Style and Titles : and which Act, after the said recitals, en- acts that it shall be lawful for Us, with a view to such re- cognition as aforesaid, of the transfer of the Government of India, by Our Proclamation under the Great Seal of the United Kingdom to make such addition to the Style and Titles at present appertaining to the Imperial Crown of the United Kingdom and its Dependencies as to Us may seem meet; we have thought fit, by and with the advice of Our 568 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY Privy Council, to appoint and declare, and We do hereby, by and with the said advice, appoint and declare that hence- forth, so far as conveniently may be, on all occasions and in all instruments wherein Our Style and Titles are used, save and except all Charters, Commissions, Letters Patent, Grants, Writs, Appointments, and other like instruments, not ex- tending in their operation beyond the United Kingdom, the following addition shall be made to the Style and Titles at present appertaining to the Imperial Crown of the United Kingdom and its Dependencies; that is to say, in the Latin tongue in these words: Tndi^ Imperatrix/ And in the English tongue in these words: 'Empress of India.' "And Our will and pleasure further is, that the said ad- dition shall not be made in the Commissions, Charters, Let- ters Patent, Grants, Writs, Appointments, and other like instruments, hereinbefore specially excepted. "And Our will and pleasure further is, that all gold, silver, and copper moneys, now current and lawful moneys of the United Kingdom, and all gold, silver, and copper moneys which shall on or after this day be coined by Our authority with the like impression, shall, notwithstanding such addi- tion to Our Style and Titles, be deemed and taken to be current and lawful moneys of the said United Kingdom; and further, that all moneys coined for and issued in any of the Dependencies of the said United Kingdom, and declared by Our Proclamation to be current and lawful money of such Dependencies respectively bearing Our Style, or Titles, or any part or parts thereof, and all moneys which shall here- after be coined and issued according to such Proclamation, shall, notwithstanding such addition, continue to be lawful and current money of such Dependencies respectively, until Our pleasure shall be further declared thereupon. ■ "Given at Our Court at Windsor the twenty-eighth day |' of April One thousand eight hundred and seventy-six in the thirty-ninth year of Our Reign. "god save the queen."" (JJistory of the IniJ>erial Assemblage at Delhi, J. T. Wheeler, Lond., n. d., p. 70.) CHAPTER XXXV ENGLAND AND THE TRANSVAAL 233. The Sand River Convention Front the Records The far-reaching consequences which threatened to result from the war between England and the Transvaal Republic, the ques- tions in diplomacy and international law which have been raised, seem to justify a departure from the principles hitherto followed in the making of this book. I have therefore given the complete texts of the three important conventions by which the contesting nations sought to justify their respective positions. The first of these treaties, is entitled The Sand River Convention, and was made in 1852. Minute of a meeting held on the farm of Mr. P. A. Venter, Sand River, on Friday, the i6th day of January, 1852, be- tween her Majesty's Commissioners, Major W. S. Hogge and C. M. Owen, appointed to settle the affairs of the east and north-east boundaries of the Cape Colony, on the one part; and the following deputies of the emigrant Boers, living north of Vaal River, on the other hand : A. W. J. Pretorius, Comdt.-General ; H. S. Lombard, Landdrost ; H. F, Joubert, Comdt.-General; G. F. Krieger, Commandant, and twelve others. I. The Assistant Commissioners guarantee in the fullest manner, on the part of the British Government, to the emi- grant farmers beyond the Vaal River, the right to manage their own affairs, and to govern themselves according to their own laws, without any interference on the part of the British Government; and that no encroachment shall be made by the said Government on the territory beyond, to the north of the Vaal River, with the further assurance that the warmest wish of the British Government is to promote peace, free trade, and friendly intercourse with the emigrant far- mers now inhabiting, or who may inhabit, that country; it being understood that this system of non-interference is binding upon both parties. 569 570 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY 2. Should any misunderstanding hereafter arise as to the true meaning of the words, "The Vaal River," this question, in so far as it regards the line from the source of that river, over to Drakensberg, shall be settled and adjusted by Com- missioners chosen by both parties. 3. Her Majesty's Assistant Commissioners hereby dis- claim all alliances whatever and with whomsoever of the coloured nations to the north of the Vaal River. 4. It is agreed that no slavery is or shall be permitted or practised in the country to the north of the Vaal River by the emigrant farmers. 5. Mutual facilities and liberty shall be afforded to traders and travellers on both sides of the Vaal River; it being understood that every waggon containing firearms, coming from the south side of the Vaal River, shall produce a cer- tificate signed by a British magistrate, or other functionary, duly authorized to grant such, and which shall state the quantities of such articles contained in said waggon to the nearest magistrate north of the Vaal River, who shall act in the case as the regulations of the emigrant farmers direct. It is agreed that no objections shall be made by any British authority against the emigrant Boers purchasing their supplies of ammunition in any of the British Colonies and possesions of South Africa; it being mutually under- stood that all trade in ammunition with the native tribes is prohibited, both by the British Government and the emi- grant farmers on both sides of the Vaal River. 6. It is agreed that, so far as possible, all criminals and other guilty parties who may fly from justice either way across the Vaal River shall be mutually delivered up, if such should be required; and that the British courts, as well as those of the emigrant farmers, shall be mutually opened to each other for all legitimate processes, and that sum- monses for witnesses sent either way across the Vaal River shall be backed by the magistrates on each side of the same respectively, to compel the attendance of such witnesses when required. 7. It is agreed that certificates of marriage issued by the proper authorities of the emigrant farmers shall be held valid and sufficient to entitle children of such marriages to receive portions accruing to them in any British colony or possession in South Africa. 8. It is agreed that any and €very person now in posses- sion of land, and residing in British territory, shall have free ENGLAND AND THE TRANSVAAL 571 right and power to sell his said property, and remove unmo- lested across the Vaal River and vice versa; it being distinct- ly understood that this arrangement does not comprehend criminals or debtors without providing for the payment of their just and lawful debts. (From a copy of the original document.) 234. The Convention of Pretoria From the Records The second treaty between the Transvaal and England was that made at Pretoria in 1881. While the suzerainty of the Queen of England is specifically acknowledged in the Preamble, the rights of England in the Transvaal are definitely limited. Although much of the convention is of minor interest, it has been thought best to give the vv^hole document. Preamble. Her Majesty's Commissioners for the settle- ment of the Transvaal territory, duly appointed as such by a commission passed under the Royal Sign Manual and Signet, bearing date the 5th of April, 1881, do hereby under- take and guarantee on behalf of her Majesty that, from and after the 8th day of August, 1881, complete self-government, subject to the suzerainty of her Majesty, her heirs and suc- cessors, will be accorded to the inhabitants of the Transvaal territory, upon the following terms and conditions, and sub- ject to the following reservations and limitations : — Article i. The said territory, to be hereinafter called the Transvaal State, will embrace the land lying between the following boundaries, to wit: [here follows definition of boundaries.] Article 2. Her Majesty reserves to herself, her heirs and successors (a) the right from time to time to appoint a British Resident in and for the said state, with such duties and functions as are hereinafter defined; (6) the right to move troops through the said state in time of war, or in case of the apprehension of immediate war between the suzerain power and any foreign state or native tribe in South Africa; and (c) the control of the external relations of the said state, including the conclusion of treaties and the conduct of diplomatic intercourse with foreign powers, such inter- course to be carried on through her Majesty's diplomatic and consular officers abroad. Article 3. Until altered by the Volksraad, or other com- petent authority, all laws, whether passed before or after the annexation of the Transvaal territory to her Majesty's 572 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY dominions, shall, except in so far as they are inconsistent with or repugnant to the provisions of this Convention, be and remain in force in the said state in so far as they shall be applicable thereto, provided that no future enactment especially affecting the interest of natives shall have any force or effect in the said state, without the consent of her Majesty, her heirs and successors, first had and obtained and signified to the government of the said state through the British Resident; provided further that in no case will the repeal or amendment of any laws enacted since the an- nexation have a retrospective effect, so as to invalidate any acts done or liabilities incurred by virtue of such laws. Article 4. On the 8th day of August, 1881, the govern- ment of the said state, together with all rights and obliga- tions thereto appertaining, and all state property taken over at the time of annexation, save and except munitions of war, will be handed over to Messrs. Stephanus Johannes Paulus Kruger, Martinus Wessel Pretorius, and Petrus Jacobus Joubert, or the survivor or survivors of them, who will forth- with cause a Volksraad to be elected and convened, and the Volksraad, thus elected and convened, will decide as to the further administration of the government of the said state. Article 5. All sentences passed upon persons who may be convicted of offences contrary to the rules of civilized war- fare committed during the recent hostilities will be duly carried out, and no alteration or mitigation of such senten- ces will be made or allowed by the Government of the Trans- vaal State without her Majesty's consent conveyed through the British Resident. In case there shall be any prisoners in any of the gaols of the Transvaal State whose respective sentences of imprisonment have been remitted in part by her Majesty's Administrator or other officer administering the Government, such remission will be recognised and acted upon by the future government of the said state. Article 6. Her Majesty's Government will make due com- pensation for all losses and damage sustained by reason of such acts as are in the 8th Article hereinafter specified, which may have been committed by her Majesty's forces during the recent hostilities, except for such losses or damage as may already have been compensated for, and the Govern- ment of the Transvaal State will make due compensation forj all losses or damage sustained by reason of such acts as are in the 8th Article hereinafter specified which may have! been committed by the people who were in arms against herj ENGLAND AND THE TRANSVAAL 573 Majesty during the recent hostilities, except for such losses or damage as may already have been compensated for. Article 7. The decision of all claims for compensation, as in the last preceding Article mentioned, will be referred to a sub-commission, consisting of the Hon. George Hudson, the Hon. Jacobus Petrus de Wet, and the Hon. John Gilbert Kotze. In case one or more of such sub-commissioners shall be unable or unwilling to act, the remaining sub-commissioner or sub-commissioners will, after consultation with the Gov- ernment of the Transvaal State, submit for the approval of her Majesty's High Commissioners the names of one or more persons to be appointed by them to fill the place or places thus vacated. The decision of the said sub-commissioners, or of a majority of them, will be final. The said sub-com- missioners will enter upon and perform their duties with all convenient speed. They will, before taking evidence or ordering evidence to be taken in respect of any claim, decide whether such claim can be entertained at all under the rules laid down in the next succeeding Article. In regard to claims which can be so entertained, the sub-commissioners will, in the first instance, afford every facility for an amicable ar- rangement as to the amount payable in respect of any claim, and only in cases in which there is no reasonable ground for believing that an immediate amicable arrangement can be ar- rived at will they take evidence or order evidence to be taken. For the purpose of taking evidence and reporting thereon, the sub-commissioners may appoint deputies, who will, without delay, submit records of the evidence and their reports to the sub-commissioners. The sub-commissioners will arrange their sittings and the sittings of their deputies in such a manner as to afford the earliest convenience to the parties concerned and their witnesses. In no case will costs be allowed to either side, other than the actual and reasonable expenses of witnesses whose evidence is certified by the sub-commissioners to have been necessary. Interest will not run on the amount of any claim, except as is herein- after provided for. The said sub-commissioners will forth- with, after deciding upon any claim, announce their decision to the Government against which the award is made and to the claimant. The amount of remuneration payable to the sub-commissioners and their deputies will be determined by the High Commissioners. After all the claims have been de- cided upon, the British Government and the Government of the Transvaal State will pay proportionate shares of the said 574 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY remuneration and of the expenses of the sub-commissioners and their deputies, according to the amount awarded against them respectively. Article 8. For the purpose of distinguishing claims to be accepted from those to be rejected, the sub-commissioners will be guided by the following rules, viz. : — Compensation will be allowed for losses or damage sustained by reason of the following acts committed during the recent hostilities, viz., (a) commandeering, seizure, confiscation, or destruction of property, or damage done to property; (b) violence done or threats used by persons in arms. In regard to acts under (a), compensation will be allowed for direct losses only. In regard to acts falling under (b), compensation will be allowed for actual losses of property, or actual injury to the same proved to have been caused by its enforced abandon- ment. No claims for indirect losses, except such as are in this Article specially provided for, will be entertained. No claims which have been handed in to the Secretary of the Royal Commission after the first day of July, 1881, will be entertained, unless the sub-commissioners shall be satisfied that the delay was reasonable. When claims for loss of property are considered, the sub-commissioners will require distinct proof of the existence of the property, and that it neither has reverted nor will revert to the claimant. Article 9. The Government of the Transvaal State will pay and satisfy the amount of every claim awarded against it within one month after the sub-commissioners shall have notified their decision to the said Government, and in default of such payment the said Government will pay interest at the rate of six per cent, per annum from the date of such default; but her Majesty's Government may at any time before such payment pay the amount, with interest, if any, to the claim- ant in satisfaction of his claim, and may add the sum thus paid to any debt which may be due by the Transvaal State to her Majesty's Government, as hereinafter provided for. Article 10. The Transvaal State will be liable for the balance of the debts for which the South African Republic was liable at the date of annexation, to wit, the sum of 48,000 I. in respect to the Cape Commercial Bank Loan, and 85,667 I. in respect to the Railway Loan, together with the amount due on the 8th of August, 1881, on account of the Orphan Chamber Debt, which now stands at 22,200 l, which debts will be a first charge upon the revenues of the State. The Transvaal State will, moreover, be liable for the lawful ENGLAND AND THE TRANSVAAL 575 expenditure lawfully incurred for the necessary expenses of the province since the annexation, to wit, the sum of 265,000 I., with debt, together with such debts as may be incurred by virtue of the 9th Article, will be second charge upon the revenues of the State. Article 11. The debts due as aforesaid by the Transvaal State to her Majesty's Government will bear interest at the rate of three and a half per cent., and any portion of such debt as may remain unpaid at the expiration of twelve months from the 8th of August, 1881, shall be repayable by a payment for interest and sinking fund of six pounds and ninepence per cent, per annum, which will extinguish the debt in twenty-five years. The said payment of six pounds and ninepence per 100 /. shall be payable half-yearly in British currency on the 8th of February and the 8th of August in each year. Provided always, that the Transvaal State shall pay in reduction of the said debt the sum of ioo,oco /. within twelve months of the 8th of August, 1881, and shall be at liberty at the close of any half-year to pay off the whole or any portion of the outstanding debt. Article 12. All persons holding property in the said State on the 8th day of August, 1881, will continue after the said date to enjoy the rights of property which they have enjoyed since the annexation. No person who has remained loyal to her Majesty during the recent hostilities shall suffer any molestation by reason of his loyalty, or be liable to any criminal prosecution or civil action for any part taken in connection with such hostilities, and all such persons will have full liberty to reside in the country, with enjoyment of all civil rights, and protection for their persons and prop- erty. Article 13. Natives will be allowed to acquire land, but the grant or transfer of such land will, in every case, be made to and registered in the name of the Native Location Commission, hereinafter mentioned, in trust for such natives. Article 14. Natives will be allowed to move as freely within the country as may be consistent with the require- ments of public order, and to leave it for the purpose of seeking employment elsewhere or for other lawful purposes, subject always to the past laws of the said State, as amended by the Legislature of the Province, or as may hereafter be enacted under the provisions of the Third Article of this Con- vention. Article 15. There will continue to be complete freedom 576 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY of religion and protection from molestation for all denomina- tions, provided the same be not inconsistent with morality and good order, and no disability shall attach to any person in regard to rights of property by reason of the religious opinions which he holds. Article i6. The provisions of the Fourth Article of the Sand River Convention are hereby reaffirmed, and no slavery or apprenticeships partaking of slavery will be tolerated by the Government of the said State. Article 17. The British Resident will receive from the Government of the Transvaal State such assistance and sup- port as can by law be given to him for the due discharge of his function ; he will also receive every assistance for the proper care and preservation of the graves of such of her Majesty's forces as have died in the Transvaal, and if need be for the expropriation of land for the purpose. Article 18. The following will be the duties and func- tions of the British Resident : — Sub-section i. He will perform duties and functions an- alogous to those discharged by a Charge-d'Affaires and Consul-General. Sub-section 2. In regard to natives within the Transvaal State he will (a) report to the High Commissioner, as rep- resentative of the Suzerain, as to the working and observ- ance of the provisions of this Convention; (b) report to the Transvaal authorities any cases of ill-treatment of natives or attempts to incite natives to rebellion that may come to his knowledge; (c) use his influence with the natives in favour of law and order; and (d) generally preform such other duties as are by this Convention entrusted to him, and take such steps for the protection of the person and property of natives as are consistent with the laws of the land. Sub-section 3. In regard to natives not residing in the Transvaal (a) he will report to the High Commissioner and the Transvaal Government any encroachments reported to him as having been made by Transvaal residents upon the land of such natives, and in case of disagreement between the. Transvaal Government and the British Resident as to whether an encroachment has been made, the decision of the Suzerain will be final; (b) the British Resident will be the mediunL of communication with native chiefs outside the Transvaaljlj and, subject to the approval of the High Commissioner, as representing the Suzerain, he will control the conclusion o treaties with them; and (c) he will arbitrate upon every dis I ENGLAND AND THE TRANSVAAL $77 piite between Transvaal residents and natives outside the Transvaal (as to acts committed beyond the boundaries of the Transvaal) which may be referred to him by the parties interested. Sub-section 4. In regard to communications with foreign powers, the Transvaal Government will correspond with her Majesty's Government through the British Resident and the High Commissioner. Article 19. The Government of the Transvaal State will strictly adhere to the boundaries defined in the First Article of this convention, and will do its utmost to prevent any of its inhabitants from making any encroachment upon lands beyond the said State. The Royal Commission will forth- with appoint a person who will beacon off the boundary- line between Ramatlabama and the point where such line first touches Griqua-land West boundary, midway between the Vaal and Hart rivers ; the person so appointed will be instructed to make an arrangement between the owners of the farms Grootfontein and Valleifontein on the one hand, and the Barolong authorities on the other, by which a fair share of the water supply of the said farms shall be allowed to flow undisturbed to the said Barolongs. Article 20. All grants or titles issued at any time by the Transvaal Government in respect of land outside the bound- ary of Transvaal State, as defined, Article i, shall be con- sidered invalid and of no effect, except in so far as any such grant or title relates to land that falls within the boundary of the Transvaal State, and all persons holding any such grant so considered invalid and of no effect will receive from the Government of the Transvaal State such compensation either in land or in money as the Volksraad shall determine. In all cases in which any native chiefs or other authorities outside the said boundaries have received any adequate consider- ation from the Government of the former South African Republic for land excluded from the Transvaal by the First Article of this Convention, or where permanent improve- ments have been made on the land, the British Resident will, subject to the approval of the High Commissioner, use his influence to recover from the native authorities fair com- pensation for the loss of the land thus excluded, and of the permanent improvement thereon. Article 21. Forthwith, after the taking effect of this Convention, a Native Location Commission will be con- stituted, consisting of the President, or in his absence the 578 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY Vice-President of the State, or some one deputed by him, the President, or some one deputed by him, and a third person to be agreed upon by the President or the Vice- President, as the case may be, and the President, and such Commission will be a standing body for the performance of the duties hereinafter mentioned. Article 22. The Native Location Commission will reserve to the native tribes of the State such locations as they may be fairly and equitably entitled to, due regard being had to the actual occupation of such tribes. The Native Location Com- mission will clearly define the boundaries of such locations, and for that purpose will, in every instance, first of all as- certain the wishes of the parties interested in such land. In case land already granted in individual titles shall be required for the purpose of any location, the owners will receive such compensation either in other land or in money as the Volks- raad shall determine. After the boundaries of any location have been fixed, no fresh grant of land within such location will be made, nor will the boundaries be altered without the consent of the Location Commission. No fresh grants of land will be made in the districts of Waterberg, Zoutpans- berg, and Lydenberg until the locations in the said districts respectively shall have been defined by the said Commission. Article 2^. If not released before the taking effect of this Convention, Sikukuni, and those of his followers who have been imprisoned with him, will be forthwith released, and the boundaries of his location will be defined by the Native Location Commission in the manner indicated in the last preceding Article. Article 24. The independence of the Swazies within the boundary-line of Swazi-land, as indicated in the First Article of this Convention, will be fully recognized. Article 25. No other or higher duties will be imposed on the importation into the Transvaal State of any article the produce or manufacture of the dominions and possessions of her Majesty, from whatever place arriving, than are or may be payable on the like article the produce or manufacture of any other country, nor will any prohibition be maintained or imposed on the importation of any article the produce or manufacture of the dominions and possessions of her Ma- jesty, which shall not equally extend to the importation of the like articles being the produce or manufacture of any other country. Article 26. All persons other than natives conforming ENGLAND AND THE TRANSVAAL $79 themselves to the laws of the Transvaal State (a) will have have full liberty with their families to enter, travel, or reside in any part of the Transvaal State; (b) they will be entitled to hire or possess houses, manufactures, warehouses, shops, and premises; (c) they may carry on their commerce either in person or by any agent whom they may think to employ; (d) they will not be subject in respect of their persons or property, or in respect of their commerce or industry to any taxes, whether general or local, other than those which are or may be imposed upon Transvaal citizens. Article 2y. All inhabitants of the Transvaal shall have free access to the Courts for the protection and defence of their rights. Article 28. All persons other than natives who established their domicile in the Transvaal between the 12th day of April, 1877, and the date when this Convention comes into effect, and who shall within twelve months after such last- mentioned date have their names registered by the British Resident, shall be exempt from all compulsory military serv- ice whatever. The Resident shall notify such registration to the Government of the Transvaal State. Article 29. Provision shall hereafter be made by a sep- arate instrument for the mutual extradition of criminals, and also for the surrender of deserters from her Majesty's forces. Article 30. All debts contracted since the annexation will be payable in the same currency in which they may have been contracted; all uncancelled postage and other revenue stamps issued by the Government since the annexation will remain valid, and will be accepted at their present value by the future Government of the State; all licenses duly issued since the annexation will remain in force during the period for which they may have been issued. Article 31. No grants of land which may have been made, and no transfer of mortgage which may have been passed since the annexation, will be invalidated by reason merely of their having been made or passed since that date. All transfers to the British Secretary for Native Affairs in trust for natives will remain in force, the Native Location Com- mission taking the place of such Secretary for Native Af- fairs. Article 32. This Convention will be ratified by a newly- elected Volksraad within the period of three months after its execution, and in default of such ratifications this Convene tion shall be null and void. 58o SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY Article 33. Forthwith, after the ratification of this Con- vention, as in the last preceding Article mentioned, all British troops in Transvaal territory will leave the same, and the mutual delivery of munitions of war will be carried out. [Here follow signatures of Royal Commissioners; then the following precedes signatures of triumvirate.] We, the undersigned, Stephanus Johannes Paulus Kruger, Martinus Wessel Pretorius, and Petrus Jacobus Joubert, as representatives of the Transvaal Burghers, do hereby agree to all the above conditions, reservations, and limitations under which self-government has been restored to the inhabitants of the Transvaal territory, subject to the suzerainty of her Majesty, her heirs and successors, and we agree to accept the Government of the said territory, with all rights and obliga- tions thereto appertaining, on the 8th day of August; and we promise and undertake that this Convention shall be ratified by a newly-elected Volksraad of the Transvaal State within three months from this date. (From a copy of the original document.) 235. The Convention of London From the Records The Convention of London must be read in conjunction with that of- Pretoria, as upon the variance of the two rests much of the ground of dispute between the two countries. The omis- sion of the clauses as to suzerainty was claimed by the Boers as extinguishing that claim, while England held that the London treaty was in that respect merely supplementary, and that the Convention of Pretoria was still in force, except where explicitly changed by that of London. A CONVENTION BETWEEN HER MAJESTY THE QUEEN OF THE UNITED KINGDOM OF GREAT BRITAIN AND IRELAND AND THE SOUTH AFRICAN REPUBLIC Preamble. Article i. The territory of the South African Republic will embrace the land lying between the following boundaries, to wit: \Here follows a description of the line of boundary.'] Article 2. The Government of the South African Republic will strictly adhere to the boundaries defined in the first Article of this Convention, and will do its utmost to preveni; II ENGLAND AND THE TRANSVAAL 581 any of its inhabitants from making any encroachments upon lands beyond the said boundaries. The Government of the South African Republic will appoint Commissioners upon the eastern and western borders whose duty it will be strictly to guard against irregularities and all trespassing over the boundaries. Her Majesty's Government will, if necessary, appoint Commissioners in the native territories outside the eastern and western borders of the South African Republic to maintain order and prevent encroachments. Her Majesty's Government and the Government of the South African Republic will each appoint a person to proceed together to beacon off the amended south-west boundary as described in Article i of this Convention ; and the President of the Orange Free State shall be requested to appoint a referee to whom the said persons shall refer any question on which they may disagree respecting the interpretation of the said Article, and the decision of such referee thereon shall be final. The arrangement already made, under the terms of Article 19 of the Convention of Pretoria of the 3rd of August, 1 88 1, between the owners of the farms Grootfontein and Valleifontein on the one hand, and the Barolong author- ities on the other, by which a fair share of the water supply of the said farms shall be allowed to flow undisturbed to the said Barolongs, shall continue in force. Article 3. H a British officer is appointed to reside at Pretoria or elsewhere within the South African Republic to discharge functions analogous to those of a Consular officer he will receive the protection and assistance of the Republic. Article 4. The South African Republic will conclude no treaty or engagement with any State or nation other than the Orange Free State, nor with any native tribe to the eastward or westward of the Republic, until the same has been ap- proved by her Majesty the Queen. Such approval shall be considered to have been granted if her Majesty's Government shall not, within six months after receiving a copy of such treaty (which shall be delivered to them immediately upon its completion), have notified that the conclusion of such treaty is in conflict with the interests of Great Britain or any of her Majesty's possessions in South Africa. Article 5. The South African Republic will be liable for any balance which may still remain due of the debts for which it was liable at the date of annexation, to wit, the Cape Commercial Bank Loan, the Railway Loan, and the Orphan Chamber Debt, which debts will be a first charge S82 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY upon the revenues of the Republic. The South African Republic will moreover be liable to her Majesty's Govern- ment for 250,000 /., which will be a second charge upon the revenues of the Republic. Article 6. The debt due as aforesaid by the South African Republic to her Majesty's Government will bear interest at the rate. of three and a half per cent, from the date of the ratification of this Convention, and shall be repayable by a payment for interest and Sinking Fund of six pounds and ninepence per 100 L per annum, which will extinguish the debt in twenty-five years. The said payment of six pounds and ninepence per 100 I. shall be payable half-yearly, in British currency, at the close of each half-year from the date of such ratification : Provided always that the South African Republic shall be at liberty at the close of any half- year to pay off the whole or any portion of the outstanding debt. Interest at the rate of three and a half per cent, on the debt as standing on the Convention of Pretoria shall as heretofore be paid to the date of the ratification of this Convention. Article 7. All persons who held property in the Transvaal on the 8th day of August, 1881, and still hold the same, will continue to enjoy the rights of property which they have en- joyed since the 12th of April, 1877. No person who has remained loyal to her Majesty during the late hostilities shall suffer any molestation by reason of his loyalty ; or be liable to any criminal prosecution or civil action for any part taken in connection with such hostilities ; and all such persons will have full liberty to reside in the country, with enjoyment of all civil rights, and protection for their persons and property. Article 8. The South African Republic renews the dec- laration made in the Sand River Convention, and in the Con- vention of Pretoria, that no slavery or apprenticeship par- taking of slavery will be tolerated by the Government of the said Republic. Article 9. There will continue to be complete freedom of religion and protection from molestation for all denomina- tions, provided the same be not inconsistent with morality and good order; and no disability shall attach to any person in regard to rights of property by reason of the religious opinion which he holds. Article 10. The British officer appointed to reside in the South African Republic will receive every assistance from the Government of the said Republic in making due pro- ENGLAND AND THE TRANSVAAL 583 vision for the proper care and preservation of the graves of such of her Majesty's forces as have died in the Transvaal; and if need be, for the appropriation of land for the purpose. Article 11. All grants or titles issued at any time by the Transvaal Government in respect of land outside the bound- ary of the South African Republic, as defined in Article i, shall be considered invalid and of no effect, except in so far as any such grant or title relates to land that falls within the boundary of the South African Republic ; and all persons holding any such grant so considered invalid and of no effect will receive from the Government of the South African Republic such compensation, either in land or in money, as the Volksraad shall determine. In all cases in which any native chiefs or other authorities outside the said boundaries have received any adequate consideration from the Govern- ment of the South African Republic for land excluded from the Transvaal by the first article of this Convention or where permanent improvements have been made on the land, the High Commissioner will recover from the native authorities fair compensation for the loss of the land thus excluded, or of the permanent improvements thereon. Article 12. The independence of the Swazis, within the boundary line of Swazi-land, as indicated in the first article of this Convention, will be fully recognized. Article 13. Except in pursuance of any treaty or engage- ment made as provided in Article 4 of this Convention, no other or higher duties shall be imposed on the importation into the South African Republic of any article coming from any part of her Majesty's dominions than are or may be im- posed on the like article coming from any other place or country; nor will any prohibition be maintained or imposed on the importation into the South African Republic of any article coming from any part of her Majesty's dominions which shall not equally extend to the like article coming from any other place or country. And in like manner the same treatment shall be given to any article coming to Great Britain from the South African Republic as to the like article coming from any other place or country. These provisions do not preclude the consideration of special arrangements as to import duties and commercial relations between the South African Republic and any of her Majesty's colonies or possessions. Article 14. All persons, other than natives, conforming themselves to the laws of the South African Republic (a) will 584 SOURCE-BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY have full liberty, with their families, to enter, travel, or reside in any part of the South African Republic; (h) they v^ill be entitled to hire or possess houses, manufactories, ware- houses, shops, and premises; (c) they may carry on their commerce either in person or by any agents whom they think fit to employ; {d) they will not be subject, in respect to their persons or property, or in respect to their commerce or in- dustry, to any taxes, whether general or local, other thg,n those which are or may be imposed upon citizens of the said Republic. Article 15. All persons, other than natives, who estab- lished their domicile in the Transvaal between the 12th day of April, 1877, and the 8th of August, 1881, and who within twelve months after such last-mentioned date have had their names registered by the British Resident, shall be exempt from all compulsory military service whatever. Article 16. Provision shall hereafter be made by a separate instrument for the mutual extradition of criminals, and also for the surrender of deserters from her Majesty's forces. Article 17. All debts contracted between the 12th of April, 1877, ^rid the 8th of August, 1881, will be payable in the same currency in which they may have been contracted. Article 18. No grants of land which may have been made, and no transfers or mortgages which may have been passed between the 12th of April, 1877, ^"^ the 8th of August, 1881, will be invalidated by reason merely of their having been made or passed between such dates. All transfers to the British Secretary for Native Affairs in trust for natives will remain in force, an officer of the South African Republic taking the place of such Secretary for Native Affairs. Article 19. The Government of the South African Repub- lic will engage faithfully to fulfil the assurance given, in accordance with the laws of the South African Republic, to the natives at the Pretoria Pitso by the Royal Commission in the presence of the triumvirate and with their assent; (i) as to the freedom of the natives to buy or otherwise acquire land under certain conditions; (2) as to the appointment of a commission to mark out native locations; (3) as to the access of the natives to the courts of law, and (4) as to their being allowed to move freely within the country, or to leave it for any legal purpose, under a pass system. Article 20. This Convention will be ratified by a Volks- raad of the South African Republic within the period of six ENGLAND AND THE TRANSVAAL 585 months after its execution, and in default of such ratifica- tion this Convention shall be null and void. Signed in duplicate in London this 27th day of February, 1884. (From a copy of the original document.) BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX The Source-material indicated in the Bibliography of Sources, pages 1-61, is there arranged under 239 heads. The limits of space prohibited a more minute classification in the body of the volume. The needs of the student have, however, been fully provided for in this Bibliographical Index, wherein the sources are divided into more than a thousand titles. In looking up references in the body of the book always con- sult the head and foot of the selection examined. Society names — IVodrow Society — are italicized when they represent publica- tions. 2^= The references are to Sections, not to pages. Abbattim, Gesta, cxi. Abhotsford Club, xv. Acta Sanctorum, xvi. Acta Sanctorum Hibernice, xxxii. Acta Sanctorum Ordinis Sanc- ti Benedicti in Sceculorum Classes distributa, 1. Acton, John of, xxxiv — E. Acts and Monuments of the Church, cli ; 127; 128; 132. Acts and Ordinances. See Statutes. Adams, C. K., xiii ; 203; 204; 205. Adam of Usk, cxxiii. Mlfric Society, xvii. Agricola, 2y, 18. Alcuin, Letters of, Ixxxv. Alfred, Lazvs of, 25. Allgemeines bibliographisches Lexikon, xiv. Allibone, S. A., vii. Allies, ^ On the Conduct of, ccxvi. Almon's Debates, xxv. Alphabetical List of Works, xi. Ambassades des Messieurs de Noailles en Angle terre, clxix. 587 Ambassador, The C§mpleat, clxi. Amiens, Guy of, xcii. American Catalogue, xi. American Historical Associa- tion, Section 2, p. 6. American Library Association, Section 2, p. 6. American Historical Maga- zine, xci — H — note. Amundesham, John, Annals of, cxxvi. (See St. Albans.) Analecta, Vetera, xxxv. Anatomy of Abuses in Eng- land in Shakespeare's Youth, clxxvii. Ancient Charters, Royal and Private, xci — A. Ancient Lazvs and Institutes, Ix ; xci — A ; chap. V. Andre, Bernard, cxli. Angelsachsen, Die Geset:;e dcr, xci — E ; Zu den Gesetsen der, xci — E. Anglice Notitia, cxcv ; 192. Anglia Rediviva, clxxxix. Anglia Sacra, xviii. Anglica, Hibernica, N ormanni- ca, Cambrica, a veteribus scripta . . ., xxv. 588 BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX Anglorum, De Respuhlica, 133. Anglo-Saxon Chronicle, Ixxxi; 23 ; 37 ; 40 ; 47 ; 48. Anglo-Saxon Laws; of Al- fred, 25 ; 39 ; of Athelstan, 26 et seq.; of Edgar, 31 et seq. See Ancient Laws and In- stitutes. Annales Monastici, cxii. Annales Rerum Gestarum Al- fredi Magni . . ., Ixxxii. Annales sex Re gum Anglice, ex. Annals, Camden, of James I, clxxx ; Cardwell, Document- ary, xxxiv — A ; Cambrian, Ixxii ; Hoveden, c. ; 64 ; 65 ; Stowe, cl. See Annales. Anne, History of Queen, ccxviii ; ccxix ; 193. Annual Annotated Bibliog- raphy, Section 2, p. 6. Annual Register, ccxxxii; 210; 211; 212; 213; 214; 215; 216. Antiquaries, Society of, xix ; xcii. Antoninus, Itinerary of, Ixxvii. Arber, Edward, English Re- prints, cxlvi. Archceologica, xix. Aristotles de Mundo, 12. Ashworth, H., 223. Asser, Life of Alfred, Ixxxii; • 38. Assises, The Bloody, ccxi. Athelstan, see Anglo-Saxon Laws. Auckland, William, Lord, ccxxx. Autotype Facsimiles of the Ancient CJiarters in the Brit- ish Museum, xci — H. Australia, 228. Australia and the Gold Fields, 227. Aveshury, Robert of, cxix. Babington, C, cxxxiv. Bale, John, iii. Baluze, S., Miscellanea, xx. Bancroft, Richard, 135, Bannatyne Club, xxi. Baron's Wars, Chronicle of, cix, Barton, G. B., 225-226. Basnage, J., xxvii. Baxter, Richard, ccviii. Bayeux Tapestry, Engraved Facsimile with notes, xcii. Bean, W. W., Iviii. Beati Flacci Albini seu Alcuini Epistolce, Ixxxvi. Becket, Materials for the His- tory of Archbishop, 58. Bede, Ixxvi; 20; 22; 24. Bedford, John, Fourth Duke of, ccxxvi. Bel, Jean le. Chronicle of, cxxviii. Bencdictus, Abbas Petrobur- gensis . . ., xcix. Bentley, S., xxxix. Bent, General Catalogue, xi. Bernard, Andre, cxli. Best Books. A Readers Guide, xiv. See Reader's Guide. Bibliographer's Manual of English Literature, x. Bibliography: of Sources, Part I, pp. 3-61, incl. How to form, pp. 3, 6; Correct type of, p. 3 ; Uses of, p. 6; Catalogues of, pp. 6-9; Of English Guilds, xii ; of Municipal History, xii ; Parliamentary Representation, xii ; Histor- cal Literature, xiii ; Refer- ence Books in British Mu- seum, xiv ; Best Books, xiv ; Reader's Guide, ix; Manu- scripts relating to the His- tory of Great Britain, viii ; General Index to British and Foreign Literature, ix ; Man- ual of English Literature, x ; Books Published from 1835 to 1863 '■> xi ; Early books, see note to xi ; Hand-list of Bib- liographies, xiv ; Manuel du Libraire (Brunet), xiv; All- gemeines bibliographisches Lexikofif xiv. Bibliotheca Britannico-Hiber- nica, vii. Bibliotheca Historiccs, Diodo- rus Siculus, 17. Bibliotheque Universelle, v. Biographies, clvi — note. BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX 589 Biography, Dictionary of Na- tional, vii. Bird, B. R. S., Ix. Blaneforde, Henrici de, Chro- nica et Edzvardi II. Vita, cxi. Blondel, Robert, cxxx. Bohn, H., X. BoJingbroke (Henry St. John), Works and Correspondence of, ccxvii. Bollando. J., xvi. Book, Doomsday, 49; Little Black of the Exchequer, 63 ; Of Rights, 86. Boston, John, i. Boyer, A., ccxviii. Bracton, H., cxv ; cxvi. Bradshaw, Society, xliv. Brief Historical Relation of State Affairs (Luttrell), cxviii. Brief Register, Kalendar and Survey of the several kinds and forms of Parliamentary IVrits, Iviii. Britannice, de Excidio, Ixxv. Britannicis, de Rebus, ii. Britannico-Hibernica, Biblio- theca, vii. British Catalogue, xi. British Museum, Books in Reading Room of, xiv ; Charters in, xci — H. British Orations, 202 ; 203 ; 204 ; 205. British Record Society, xxiii. Brunet, J. C, xiv. Briinner, H., xliii. Buckingham and Chandos, Duke of, ccxxxix. Burke, Edmund, ccxxxvii. Burleigh Papers, clxvi. Burnet, Bishop, History of His Own Times, cxciii. History of the Reformation, 114; 115; 125; 126. Cabala Sii'e Sacra Scrinia, c\xn. Ccesar, Ixxiii ; 14; 21. Calderwood, David, clviii. Calendars: of State Papers, xxiv ; clxxiv ; ccxxv ; of Principal Dignitaries of England and Wales and of the Chief Officers in the Uni- versity . . ., xl. See Sources arranged by Epochs. Caley, Bandinell and Ellis, xxxvi. Cambrensis, Giraldus, ciii. Cambrian: Archccological As- sociation, Ixx — a; Institute, Ixx — b; Metropolitan Insti- tute, Ixx — c; Annals, Ixxii. Camden, G., xxv; Annals, clxxx ; Society Publications, xxvi ; Catalogue of Publica- tions of the Camden Society, xxvi. Canisius, xxvii. Canute, Laws of, 41. See An- cient Laws and Institutes. Capgrave, John, liii ; cxxi. Cardwell, E., xxxiv — A — B; 153-B. Carstares, William, ccxv. Carew, George, Lord (Let- ters to Sir Thomas Roe), clxxxiii. Carmen de Bello Hastingensi, xci. See Hastings. Cartularium Saxonicum, xci-c. Catalogues : of historians, p. 3 ; of sources, p. 5 ; of histor- ical literature, p. 6 et seq.; of manuscripts, viii ; of source-material before Tu- dor period, viii ; English, London, British, Learned Societies, Lowndes, Maun- sell's, of certain Books, Cla- veil's. Bent's General, Ameri- can, xi. Catalogus Scriptorum Eccle^ sice, John Boston, i. Catholic Forefathers, The Troubles of Our, clxxiii. Catholic historians, accounts of. See Pits, 14. Cave, William, v. Cavendish, Henry, cxxxiii. Caxton Society, xlvi. Cecil, Lord Burleigh, clxvi. . Celtic Society, xxix. Chamberlayne, Edw., cxcv. Cliandler and Timberland'i Debates, xxx, 59° BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX Challoner, R., clxxi. Charles I., Memorials and Let- ters, clxxxv; Letters, cxc; Letters, cxcvi ; Guthry's Memoirs of, cciv. Charters, Ancient, xci — A. B. C F. G. H.; Historical, 53; 56. Chartist Movement, History of, 221-222. Chetham Society, xxix. Chronicles : Northumberland, Ixxii; Anglo-Saxon, Ixxii ; 23 ; 37 ', 40 ; Eathelward, Ixxii; Ixxxiii; Florence _ of Worcester, Ixxii ; xc ; Prince of Wales, Ixxii; Six Old English, Ixxv ; Melrose, xcvii ; Richard of Devises, cii ; Roger of Wendover, cvii ; William Rishanger, cix, cxi; Monasterii (St. Al- bans), cxi; Trokelowe- Blanefordc, cxi ; Walter Henningford, cxiii ; Lon- don, cxiv ; Polychronicon, cxx ; C ap grave' s,cyi.y.\; Adam of Usk, cxiii; Nczv {Con- cordance of Histories), cxxi ; Jean le Bel, cxxviii ; Froissart, cxxix ; Monstrc- let, cxxx ; Croyland, Con- tinuation of, cxxxiii ; Hall's cxlviii. Holinshed, cxlix ; Stow, cl ; Grey Friars, cliii ; of Queen Jane, clvii ; Ken- net, cxciv ; of Great Britain, etc., xxxi ; Hengest, xc. Chronicles and Memorials of Great Britain and Ireland during the Middle Ages, xxxi. Chronicon^thekveardi,\xxxm. Chronic on ex Chronicis ah Adventu Hengesti, etc., xc. Chronicon Ricardi Divisiensis de Rebus gestis Ricardi, Pri- mi. Regis Anglice, cii. Church Historians of England, xcvii. Church History, v ; Councils and Ecclesiastical Docu- ments, xxxiv ; xxxvi ; of Britain, 151. See Chronicles, Saints, Scriptores, Acta Sanctorum. Clavell, Robert, General Cata- logue of, xi. Clitherozv, Life of Margaret (see Catholic Forefathers), 142. Cobbett, W., XXX ; 106; 107; 108. Cobden and the Anti-Corn Lazv League, Recollections of Richard, 223. Codex Diplomaticus ^ri Sa- xonici, xci — B. Codex Juris Ecclesiastici An- glicani . . ., xxxiv — BB. Colganus, J., xxxii. Collectance Adamantcua, xxxiii. Collection of Acts and Ordi- nances of General Use (Sco- bell), clxxxvi. Collection of the Laws and Canons of the Church of England from its first Foun- dation to 1 519, xxxiv — D. Collection of Original Letters and Papers . . ., 1641-1666 . . . (Ormonde), clxvi. Collection of Records. See Burnet, Reformation. Collection of Scarce and Valu- able Tracts (Somers), 45 — clxiii ; cciii ; 105. Collections of Source Materi- al. Sec. 3, p. 9 et seq. Collection of State Papers (Cecil, Lord Burleigh), clxvi. Collection of State Tracts, Published on Occasion of the Late Revolution in 1688 . . . , etc., ccxiv. Colonial State Papers, Calen- dars of, xxiv. Cominge, De, ccvii. Commelin, Ixiii — f. Commerce, History of Brit- ish, 224. Commerce, Treaties and Nego- tiations concerning, Ixviii — H. Commentaries on the Gallic War, Ixxiii; 14; 21. Commons, House of. Jour- BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX 591 nals, xlvii — a. See De- bates, Parliamentary Histo- ry, Proceedings, Cobbett, Hanzard, Lords, House. Compendious or Brief Exami- nation (Stafford), clxxviii. Compilatio dc Eventibus An- glice (Knighton), 94. Complete Collection of the Treaties and Conventions and Reciprocal Regulations . . ., etc., Ixviii — H. Constittitional Documents of the Puritan Revolution, cxci. Concilia, Decreta, Leges, Con- stituciones in re Ecclesiarum Orhis Britannici ah initio Chris tiancu ... [to 1530] , xxxiv — F. Concilia magnce Britannia: et Hibernice Acedunt constitu- tiones et alia, xxxiv. Contemporary History of Af- fairs in Ireland, cciii. Continuatio MattJicui, cix, Coote, Charles, 206-207. Corn Law. See Cobden. Cornwallis, Charles, First Mar- quis, ccxxxviii. Corpus Juris Gentium Recen- tissimi e Tabulariorum . . ., etc., Ixviii — c. Correspondence, xxxiv — H. L (Papal); xxxv ; cxvii ; cxxviii ; cxxxii ; cxliii ; clii ; cliv ; clxii ; clxvii ; clxviii ; clxix ; clxx ; clxxxiii ; cxc ; ccxii. See also Letters, Roy- al, Kings of England. Origi- nal (Hanoverian Period). D'Avaux, ccvi ; De Cominge, ccvii ; Shrewsbury, ccxii ; Carstares, ccxv ; Boling- broke. ccxvii ; William HL and Louis XIV.. ccxxxiv ; Bedford, ccxxvi ; Pitt, ccxxvii ; Grenville, ccxxvii ; Rose, ccxxix ; Auckland, ccxxx ; North, ccxxxv ; Malmsbury, ccxxxvi ; Corn- wallis, ccxxxviii. Councils and Ecclesiastical Documents, xxxiv. Council, Orders in, Ixviii — H. Court Life under the Plan- tagenets, 63. 'Crisp, Stephen, and his Cor- respondence, cxcix. Cromwellian Diary, cxcii. Crook. W.. 175. Croyland Chronicle, Continua- tion of, cxxxiii. Dalrymple, Sir John. ccv. Dangerous Positions and Prac- tices . . ., 135. D'Archery, D. L., xxxv. Dasent, G. W., Ixxx. D'Avaux, Count, ccvi. Debates. See D'Ewes, Chan- dler and Timberland, Grey, Almon, Debrett, Parry, xxx ; Hanzard, Cobbett, Caven- dish ; Proceedings in Parlia- ment — Parliamentary His- tory. Debrett, J., xxx. D'Ewes' Journals of the Par- liaments of Queen Elizabeth, XXV ; clxiv ; 138; 139. De Rebus Britannicus, 11. De Scriptoribus Hibernia, vi. Descriptive Catalogue of . . . History of Great Britain and Ireland, viii. Devises, Richard of, cii. Dialogues of the Exchequer (Dialogus de Scaccario), cv. Diary : Evelyn, cxcvi ; Pepys, cxcvii ; Luttrell, cxcviii ; Burton, cxcii ; Goddard, cxcii ; Doddington. ccxxxiv ; Lady of Quality (Miss Wynn), 200. Diceto, Ralph of, ci. Dictionary of National Bi- ography, vii. Diggs, Sir Dudley, clxi. Diodorus Siculus. 17. Discourses, Historical, clxxxviii. Dispatches, The French, clxviu ; N^oailles, clxix. Documentary Annals of the Reformed Church of Eng- land (1546-1716), xxxiv. Documents inedits sur I'His- tpire de France, clxvii. 592 BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX Doddington, George, Bubb, ccxxxiv. Domestic Papers, Calendars of, xxiv. Doomsday Book, xci — D. ; 49; And Beyond, xci — ^D. Drapier Letters, ccxvi. Dryden, John, Works of, ccx. Duchesne, A., Ixiii — g. Dugdale, W., xxxvi. Dumont, J., Ixviii — A. Durand, O., Ixvii ; Ixix. Durham, County of, xxix; Simeon of, Ixxxvii. Dutch War, History of, ccxiv. Eadmer's History: Eadmeri Monachi Cantuariensis His- tori(B Novorum . . ., xciii ; 50 ; 57- Earle, J., Ixxxi ; xci — F. Early English Text Society, xxxvii. East India and Persia, New Account of, 229. Eathelward, Chronicle of, Ixxii. See Ethelward, Ixxxiii. Ebert, F. A., xiv. Ecclesiastical Documents, xxiv. Ecclesiasticce Histories (Or- dericus Vitalis), xciv, 44; 46; 54- Ecclesiastical History (Bede), Ixxii ; Ixxxvi ; 20 ; 22 ; 24. Ecclesiastical Polity, Laws of, ^34- Ecclesiastical Register, Ixxii. Edgar, Lazvs of. See Anglo- Saxon Laws. Edzvard the Confessor, Lives of, Ixxxv. Edzvard V., Life of, cxxxvii. Grants in Reign of, cxxviii ; VI., Literary Remains of, clvi. Ellis, H., xxxvi ; cxxv ; 50 ; 105; 116 et seq. Elmhain, Thomas, cxxiv. Elwood, Thomas, cxcix. Elizabethan Seamen, Voyages of, 144; 145 ; 146. See D'Ewes. Emma, Queen of the English: Emmce Anglorum Regince, Ixxxiv. England, Chronicle of, cxxi. England, Description of, clxxvi. England in the Reign of Hen- ry VIII., cxlvii. England, Manner of Govern- ment, 133. England, Present State of, cxcv. England's Recovery, clxxxix. England, The Commonwealth of,_i33- English Catalogue, xi. English History for Students, Ix. _ English Historical Magazine, xci — H. Note. English Historical Society, xxxviii. English Works of John Wyc- liffe, cxxxv. E pis to Ice TigurincB, clii. Eulogium Brittanice sive His- toria Britonum, Ixxix. Evelyn, John, cxvi. Excerpta Historica, xxxix. Exchequer, Dialogues of, cv. Exchequer, History of, cv. Exchequer, Little Black Book of, 63. Fabian, B., 228. Fabyan, Robert, cxxv. Fairfax, Sir Thomas, clxxxix. Fasciculi Zizaniorium, cxxxv ; 96-97. Fasti EcclesicB Anglicance, xl. Ecclesice Hihernice, xl. " Father of English Antiqua- ries," ii. Fitz-Neal, Richard, xcix. Fitz-Stephen, William, 61. Fletcher of Saltoun, The Po- litical Works of, ccxxi. Florence of Worcester, xc; 43. Florilegium Insulce Sanctiorum seu Vitce et Acta Sanctorum Hihernice, liii. Flozvcrs of History, cvii. ■ Chap. IX, X. f I Fcedera, Conventiones . . ., etc., Ixviii — A.; 152. Syllabus of, Ixviii — A. Foley, H., 178. Forbes, Robert, 196; 197; 198; 199. BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX 593 Foreign State Papers, Calen- dars of, xxiv. Foxe, John, cli. French Ambassador at the Court of Charles II., ccvii. Friars, Grey, Chronicles of, cliii. Froissart, Chronicle of, cxxix. Fryer, John, 229. Fuller, Thomas, 151. Fulman, Wm., Ixiii — C, Gale, Thomas, Ixiii — d. Gaimer, Geoffrey, Ixxii. Gammage, C. G., 221-222. Gardiner, S. R., Ixviii — H. Gazette, London, Ixviii — H. General Index to British and Foreign Literature, ix. George II. Memoirs of, ccxxxi. George III. lournal, ccxxxi. ; Letters, ccxxxi v. ; Co rre- spondence with Lord North, ccxxxv. Geographicce Strahonis, 17. Ger mania (Tacitus), Ixxiii. Gcsta Guillelmi Ducis Norman- norum et Regis Anglorum (William of Poitiers), xcv. Gesta Stephani Regis Anglo- rum et Ducis Normannorum xcvi. Gestis Re gum Anglorum, Ixxxix. Gibson, E., xxxiv — BB. Gildas, Ixxv ; 19. Giraldus Cambrensis, ciii. Glanvill, civ. Goddard. Guibon, cxcii ; 168. Goldsmith, E., xxxiii. Goodman, Godfrey, clxxxi. Gospel Book, York, 42. Grants, Reign of Edzvard V., cxxxviii. Granvelle Papers, clxvii — A ; Correspondence, clxvii — B. Grenville, Richards, ccxxviii. Grey and Wharton, v ; W. de G., xci — C. Grey, Debates of tJie House of Commons, from 1667-1694.. XXX. Grim, Edward, 58. Gross, Charles, xii. Grosseteste, Letters of Bishop, cxvii. Guide to the Principal Classes of Documents Preserved in Public Office, Ix. Guthry, Henry, cciv. Guy of Amiens, cxii. Haddan, A. W., xxxiv — C. Hakluyt Society, xli, xix. Hakluyt Society, xli. Halliwell, J. O., cix. Hall, Hubert, 63. Hall's Chronicle, cxlviii. Handbook to the Public Rec- ords, Ix. Handbook to the Land- Charters and other Saxonic Documents, xci. Hand-list of Bibliographies, Classified Catalogues and Indexes placed in the Read- ing Room of the British Museum, xiv. Hansard, T. C, Parliamentary Debates, xlii. See Corbett and works cited. Hardwicke Papers, clx. Hardy, T. D., viii ; xl. Hargraves, E., 227. Harleian Miscellany, xiii ; So- ciety, xliii. Harpsfield's Treatise, cxliv. Harrison's Description of Eng- land, clxxvi. Harvard Historical Studies, xii. Hastings, Song of the Battle of, Ixxii. See Carmen de, xcii. Hastings, Memoirs of Warren, 230. Hayward, A., 200. Henningford. Walter, cxiii. Hcnrice Archidiaconi Hiintin- doniensis Historicu Anglo- rum, Ixxxviii. Henrys, The Book of the Noble, cxxii. Henry V, Life of, cxxiv. Henry VII, Materials for a History of the Reign of, cxxxix. 594 BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX Henry VIII, Calendar of State Papers, xlx; Correspondence of, cxliii, Herbert of Bosham, 59. Herodoti Historiarum, 11. Hertslet, L., Ixyiii — H. Hexham Chronicles, xcvii. HibernicE, de Scriptoribus, vi. . Higden, R., cxx. Histoire des Trait es de Paix et autre s negotiations du dix- septieme siecle, etc., Ixviii — B. Historia Anglicana, cxi. Historia Johannis Prioris Ha- gustaldensis, Ecclesice, xcvii. Historia de mirabilis gestis Ed- ward Tertii, cxix. Historia a Normannorum in Angliani ingressu, xcviii. Historia Novorum (Eadmer), xciii; 50; 57. Historia pice memories Ricar- di Prioris Hagustaldensis, xcvii. Histories Anglorum, Ixxxviii. Historians' Guide, 175. Historica Ecclesiastica Gentis Anglorum (Bede), Ixxvi. Historical Collections, Town- shend, an Extract Account of the Proceedings of the Four Last Parliaments of Queen Elizabeth . . ., etc., clxv. See Collections. Historical Documents (Gold- smid), 131. Historical Literature, Manual of, xiii. Charters, 53 ; 56. History of the Arrival of Ed- zvard IV., cxxxi. Histories, Concordance of, cxxv. History, Flowers of, cvii, chaps, ix-x. History of the Parliament of England which began Nov. 3, 1640, clxxxvi. Holinshcd, Chronicles, cxlix. Holies, Memoirs of Denzil Lord, cciii. Home Department State Papers, Calendars of, xxiv. Hooker, Richard, 134. Hopfe, Ixviii — EG. Hoveden, Roger of, 33 — C ; 46; 65. Howes, Edmund, el — b. Humberson, Henry, 191. Huntingdon , Henry of; Ixxxviii. Iberno-Celtic Society, xlvi. Icelandic Sagas, Ixxx. Illustrations of English His- tory, xxxix. Illustrium Majoris Britann'ice Scriptorium . . ., iii. Impartial Collection of the Great Affairs of State (Nal- son), ccii. Imperial Assembly at Delhi, 232. Imperial Institute of the United Kingdom, the Colonies and India Publications, xlv. Index to Periodical Literature, section 2, p. 6 ; Cumulative, section 2, p. 6. General to British and Foreign Litera- ture, ix. India, History of, 231. Ingulfas, cxxxiii. Invent aire Chronologique des Documents Relatifs a I'His- toire d'Ecosse, clxviii. Irish Historical Bibliography, Ware, vi. Tanner, vii. Irish History, Scriptores, Ixiii, e-f-h, XXV ; Acta Sanctorum, xxxii ; xxxiv — C ; Histor- ical Societies, xlvi ; Archaeo- logical Society, xlvi ; Flori- legium, liii ; Ossianic So- ciety, Ivi ; Contemporary His- tory, cciii. Itinerarium Antonini Augusti et Hieroslymitanum, Ixxvii. Jaffe, P., xxiv — H. lames I., Annals of, clxxx ; Court of, clxxxi ; History of, clxxx; Memorials and Let- ters of, clxxxv; Works of, 149-150. lane, Chronicles of Queen, clvii. lean le Bel, cxxviii. I BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX 595 Icffries, Life of Lord, ccxi. lesuits. Records of English So- ciety of, 178. lohn, of Acton, xxxiv — E; of Amundcsham, cxxvi ; Whethamstcdc, cxxvii. lournals, House of Commons, xlvii ; House of Lords, xlvii. Kemble, J. M., xci — B. Kennett, W., Complete His- tory of England, cxxxvii. ; 49 — clxxx ; Register, cxciv. Ker, John, ccxxiii. King lames. His ludgment of a King and of Tyrant, 159. Kings of England. History of, Ixxxvii ; Letters of, 100; loi ; 102; 103. Kirk, History of Scotland, clviii. Knighton, H., 94. Labanoff, A., clxx. Lamont, Elizabeth, clxxviii. Lancaster and Durham, xxix. Langebek, Ixiii — i. Laws of Ecclesiastical Polity (Hooker), 134. Lazvs and Statutes, xlviii ; Sources of, xlviii. See Stat- utes ; Legal Documents, xci ; Ancient Laws ; Anglo-Saxon Law ; Cnut's Laws ; Selden Society, etc., etc. Leclerc, v. Lee, Sidney, vii. Legibus et Consuefudinibus Anglice, cxv, Leland. John, ii. Le Neve. J., xl. Letters, see Correspondence. Letters from George Lord Carew to Sir Thomas Roe, clxxxiii. Letters and Papers Illustrative of the Wars of the English in France during the Reign of Henry VI, cxxviii. Levi, L., 224. Lezves and Ever sham, dc Bellis, cix. Liber de Illustribus Henricis, cxxii. Liebermann, xci — E. Literary Remains of King Ed- ward the Sixth, clvi. Literature, Historical, see Sec- tions I and 2. Liturgical Texts, x,liv. • London Catalogue, xi. London Gazette, Ixviii — H. London, Chronicles of, cxlv. Lords, House of, lournals, xlvii. See Commons, De- bates, Parliament, Cobbett. Hanzard, etc., etc. Lords, Protests of (1624- 1874), clxxxvi. Lords, Report on the Dignity of a Peer, 81. Lowndes, W., x. Luttrell, Narcissus, cxcviii. Lynwood,W., xxxiv — E. Lyon in Mourning, 196; 197; 198; 199. Mabillon, 1. Macaulay, Life and Letters of T. B., 220. Macpherson, J., Papers, ccxiii. Madox, T., cv. Magazines, American Histor- ical, English Historical, xci — H note. Marie Stuart, Lettres, Instruc- tions et Memoires, clxx. Maitland, F. W., xci — D; cxvi. M ait land Club, li. Malmcsbury, Correspondence of lames Harris, First Earl of, ccxxxvi. Malmcsbury, William of, Ixxxix. Manner of Government or Policies of the Realme of England. 133. Mansi, J. D., xx. Manual of Historical Litera- ture, xiii. Manuel du Libra ire, xiv. Manx Society, Hi. Marini. cxviii. Marten, G. F. de, Ixviii — D. Martene, E., Ixviii, Ixix. Martyrs, Book of, cli. Mary (1689), History of King William and Queen, ccxix. 596 BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX Materials for the History of Archbishop Becket, 58. Materials forUie History of Britain, Ixxii. Materials for the History of the Reign of Henry VII, cxxxix. Matthew Paris, cviii. MaunselVs Catalogue, xi. May, T., clxxxvi. Melrose, Chronicles of, xcvii. Melrose, Papers and Corre- spondence, clxxxii. Memoirs of Guthry, cciv ; Dalrymple, ccv. ; Hervey, ccxxii; Ker, ccxxiii ; Wal- pole, ccxxxi; Court and Cabinets of George HI., ccxxxix; W rax all, 209; Hastings, 230. Memorials of Affairs of State (Winwood, R.), clxxiv. Memorials of the English Af- fairs, Thurloe, cci; White- lock, cc. Memorials and Letters Relat- ing to the History of Britain (Dalrymple), clxxxv. Mercurius Publicus, 173-174. Messingham, Thomas, liii. Metropolitan Cambrian Insti- tute, Ixx. Milton, John, Works of, ccx. Middle Ages, xxix ; xxviii. Migne, L'Abbe, liv. Miscellanea, novo ordine di- gesta et non paucis ineditis monumentis . . ., etc., xx. Missionary Priests, Memoirs of, clxxi. Monastic Annals, xcii. Monastic Chronicles, cxi. Monasticon Anglicanum, xxxvi. Monasteries, Suppression of, cliv. Monstrelet's Narratives, cxxx, Monumenta Historica Britan- nica, Iv ; Ixxii. Monumenta Britannica ex Autographis Romanorum Pontificum, cxviii. More, Sir Thomas, cxxxvii ; cxlvi. Morris, J., clxxiii. Mullinger, J. B., Ix. Munimenta Gildhallce Lon- doniensis, cxiv. Murhard, Ixviii — E — F. Mush, John, 142. Mysteries of State and Govern- ment, clxii. Nalson, John, ccii. Narratives of the Expulsion of the English from Normandy, cxxviii. Narratives of the Days of the Reformation, civ. N egotiations of Count d'Avaux, ccvi. Negotiations Secretes, Ixviii — B. Nennius, History of Britain, Ixxix. Nennius Vindicatus, Ixxix. Neve, see Le Neve. Neivbury, William of, xcviii. New South Wales, History of, 226. Nicholas Trivet's Annals, ex. Noailles Dispatches, clxix. Nolan, E. H., 231. North Briton, 201. North, Correspondence with George HI., ccxxxv. Norths, Lives of the (Roger North), ccix. Northumberland, Short Chro- nicle of, Ixii. Normandie, Histoire de, cxiv. Norman History and Histo- rians, xxii, XXV. Note Book, Bracton's, cxvi. Notes of Debates (1621), clxxxvi. Notes of Proceedings in the Long Parliament, clxxxvi. Notitia, Anglia, 192. Notitia Dignitatum et Admi- nistrationum . . ., Ixxviii. Nouveau Recueil . . . depuis 1808, jusqu'd present . . . (Martens), Ixviii — E. Nouveau Recueil General . . . Continuation du Grand Re- cueil [Martens], . . . Deuxi- eme Serie, Ixviii — G. BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX 597 Nouvcaux Supplements an Re- cueil de Traites [Martens], Ixviii. O'Connor, C, Ixiii — h. Official List of the Empire, Ixxviii. Official Year Book of the Scientific and Learned So- cities, xi ; Ixxi. Pldmixon, J., ccxix ; 193. Ordericus Vitalis, xciv. ; 44 ; 46; 54- Original Letters (Ellis), 50; 104; 116; 117; 118. Original Papers Containing the Secret History of Great Bri- tain from the Restoration to the Accession of the House of Hanover, ccxiii. Ormonde, Letters and Papers of the Duke of, cciii. Ossianic Society, Ivi. Our Times, History of (Bur- net), cxciii. Palgrave, R, Iviii. Papal Letters, xxxiv — H — I. Paris, Matthew, cviii. Parker Society, Iviii. Parliamentary Debates (1610), clxxxvi. See Debates, Par- liamentary History, Papers, Writs, Returns, etc. Parliamentary History, Cob- bett, xxx ; 106 ; 102 ; 108 ; 154; 167; 171; 217. Con- tinuation of Cobbett, xlii ; or Constitutional, xxx ; Townshend. clxiv ; clxv ; clxxxvi. See also xxx. D'Ezves Journals: Chandler and Timherland's Debates; Grey's Debates: Almond De- hates; Debrett's Debates; Parry's The Parliaments and Councils of England. See also X. Parliamentary In- telligencer, 172. Mercurius Puhlicus, 173; 174: Annual Register, cxxviii., etc., etc. Parliamentary Proceedings, see Parliamentary History. Parliamentary Returns, Iviii. Parliamentary Writs, Iviii. Papers,The Verney, clxxxvii. Parry, The Parliaments and Councils of England, xxx. Paston Letters, cxxxii. Patriologice Cursus CompletuSy liv. Payne, J. A., 144-145-146. Pecock, R., cxxxiv. Peer, Lord's Report upon the Dignity of, 81. Penns and Penningtons of the i/th Century, cxcix. Pepys, Samuel, cxcvii. Periodical Literature, Poole Fletcher's Index to. Section 2, p. 6. Cumulative Index to. Section 2, p. 6. Peterborough, Benedict of, cxix. Petrie, H., Iv.. Ixxii ; Ixxxi. Pinkerton, J., liii. Pipe Roll Society, lix. Pitt, William, Correspondence of, ccxvii. Pitts, John, 14. P lantag enets , Court Life under, 63. Poitiers, William of, xcv. Pole, Reginald, cxliv. Polybii Historiarum, 14. Polychronicon, cxx. Polydore Virgil, cxl. Potthast, A., xxxiv — I. Pre-Norman Sources, Section 4. Present State of England Compleat, cxcv. Pretended Divorce bctivecn Henry VIII . . ., cxliv. Prince of Wales, Chronicle of, Ixxii. Principal Navigations, Voy- ages, Traffiques and Dis- coveries of the English Na- tion, 144 et seq. Protestant Historians, Ac- counts of, see Bale. iii. Protests of the House of Lords (1624-1874), clxxxvi. Prothero. G. W., clxxv. Provinciale seu Constifutiones Anglicr . . . a Stephano Lang- tono ad Heuricum Chich- leium, xxxiv — E. 598 BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX Prynne, W., Iviii. Puritan Revolution, clxxxvii. Quadrilogus, 59. Radulfi de Diceto Decani Lon- deniensis Opera Historica, ci. Rapin de Thoyras, ccxx. Rebellion and Civil War in England (Clarendon), clxxxiv. Records : Record Society, xxiii ; Classified and De- fined Ix; Handbook to, Ix; Guide to Principal Classes of Documents Preserved in Public Record Office, Ix ; Of the Reformation, cxlv ; Of the English Province of the Society of Jesus, 191 ; Best Books and Reader's Guide, xiv. Recueil des Historiens des Gaules et de la France, xxii. Cf. Rerum Gallicarum. Recueil de Traites d' Alliance, de Paix, de Treve, de Neu- tralite, de Commerce, de Limites, d'Echange . . ., etc., etc., Ixviii — D. Reformation, Records of, cxlv : Narratives of the Days of, civ; History of, 114, 115; 120; 121. Regesta Pontificum Romano- rum, J a f f e, xxxiv — H ; Potthast, xxxiv — I. Register and Chronicle Eccle- siastical and Civil, cxciv. Register, Annual, 6o-ccxxxii ; 210; 211; 212; 213; 214; 215; 216. Registrum. Abbatice Johannis Whethamstede, cxxvii. Relation, A, or rather a true account of . . ., cxlii. Relationum Historicarum de Rebus Anglicis, iv. Relations Politique s de la France et de I'Espagne avec VEcosse au XVI. Siecle, clxviii. Reliquiae Baxteriancc, ccviii. Repressor, Pecock, cxxiv. Reprints, Arber English, cxlvi ; and Translations (University of Pennsylvania), 55; 60; 80; 81. Rerum Gallicarum et Franci- carum Scriptores, xxii. Richard of Divizeo, cii. Richard III., Life of. More, cxxxvii. Rights, Book of, 86. Rishanger, William, cix ; cxi. Robert, of Avesbury, History of Ediv. HI, cxix. Robert, Fabyan, cxxi. Roger of Hoveden, Annals, c; 64; 65. Roger of Wendover, cvii, chaps, ix-x. Rolls, Pipe, Great or Exche- quer, Charter, Close, Hun- dred, Patent, Plea, etc., lix. Rolls Series, xxxi. Rose, George ccxxix. Rousset, Ixviii — B. Royal Historical Society, Ixi. Royal Letters, see Correspond- ence. Royal Society, Ixi. Rushworth, J., Collections and Private Passages of Skite, clxxxvi ; 153; 156; 160; 161; 162 ; 163. Russell. M., clix. Rymer, T., Ixviii — A. See Foedera. Sagas, Icelandic, Ixxx. Saints, British, xvi ; xviii ; 1 ; liii ; see Irish and Scottish history. Saltoun, Fletcher of, ccxxi. Samwer, Ixviii — E — G. Sanderson, R., Ixviii — A. Savigny-Stiftung, Zeitschrift der, xci — E. Savile, H., Ixiii — a. Schmid, R., xci — E, Scotland, History of the Church of, clix. See Kirk. Scottish Burg Record Society, Ixv. Scottish History Society, Ixi, 195. BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX 599 Scriptores : Camden, xxv ; Post Bcdam (Savile), Ixiii — a; Decern (Juysdem), ibid. — b; Rcrum Anglicarmn (Ful- man), ibid. — c; XV (Gale), ibid. — d ; Varii ( Sparkes) , ibid. — e; Vetustiores (Com- melin), ibid. — f ; Norman- nice (Duchesne) , ibid. — g ; Veteres rerum Hibernicarum (O'Connor), ibid. — h; Re- rum Danicarum Medii .^vi (Langbeck), ibid. — i; Rc- rum gestarum JVilliebni Con- qucstoris, cxv. Scrip torn m Ecclesiasticoru m Historia Litteraria, v. Selden Society, Ixiv. Select Charters and other Il- lustrations of English Con- stitutional History, from the Earliest Period to the Reign of Edward I, xci — G. Select English Works of Wyc- lif (Arnold), cxxxvi. Select Statutes and otJier Con- stitutional Documents (Pro- thero), clxxv. Seu Liber Ccnsualis IVillielmi Primi, xci — D. Sharpe, J., Iv ; Ivxxii ; Ixxxix. Shrezvsbury, Correspondence of Charles Talbot, Duke of, ccxii. Siculus, Diodorus, 17. Six Old English Chronicles, Ixxv. Simeonis Dunelmensis Opera et Collectanea, Ixxxvii. Smith, Sir Thomas, 133. Societies, Learned and Scien- tific, Publications of, xx; Ixxxi. Some Sources of History for the Monmouth Rebellion and the Bloody Assises, ccxxi. S m e r' s Tracts, clxiii ; clxxxvi ; 130; 140; 141; 143. Soder, see Manx. Sonnenschein, W. S., xiv. Song of the Battle of Hastings, Ixxii. Sources, Bibliography of. Part I, pp. 2 to 61 ; Catalogues of, p. 5 ; Great Collections of, p. 9 ; Arranged by Epochs — Pre-Norman Period, p. 26 ; Conquest to Charter, p. 31 ; Charter to Reformation, p. 34 ; Tudor Period, p. 40 ; Stuart Period, p. 49; Hano- verian Period, p. 55 ; Nine- teenth Century, p. 61. Sources of the Lazv of Eng- land, xlviii. Spalding Club, Ixv. Sparkes, Jos., Ixiii — E. Sparrow's Collection, xxxiv. Spelman, H., xxxiv — F. Spicillegium sive Collectio ve- terum aliquot Scriptorum qui in Gallia Bibliothecis de- lituerant, . . . xxxv. Spottiswoode, John, clix. Spottiszvoode Society, clix. Staffords, William, clxxviii. Starkey, England in the reign of Henry the Eighth, cxlvii. State Papers, Calendars of, xxiv ; cxliii ; Selections from, ibid.; Miscellaneous, clx. State Papers and Miscellaneous Correspondence of Thomas, Earl of Melrose, clxxxii. State Papers of Edzvard, Earl of Clarendon, Calendar of Same, cci. State Papers of William Cars- tares, ccxv. State Papers of John Thurloe, cci. State Tracts, ccxiv. Statutes and Lazvs; of the Realm, xlviii ; cvi ; 28 ; 85 ; 87; 90; 91; 92; 93; 95; 99: 119; 155; 177; 189; 190. At Large, xlviii — b — c ; 84 ; 88; 109; no; in; 112-113: 164; 129. At Large of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland, xlviii — c; Public General, xlviii — d ; Evans' Collection of, 194; 208; Scobcll's Col- lection (Commonwealth), clxxxvi; 164-165-166. Stephen, Life of, cxvi. Stoerk, Ixviii — G. 6oo BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX Stow, John, cl. Summarie of the Chronicles of England, cl — a; Annales, or a Gen- eral Chronicle of England, ibid. (b). Survey of the Cities of London . . . cl — c. Strahonis Geographice, i6. Strafford, Letters and De- spatches of Thomas VVcnti- worth. Earl of, 158. Stubbe, Phillip, clxxvii. Stubbs, W., xxxiv — C ; xci — G ; xciv ; cl ; 43 ; 62. Strype, John, cl-c; 136; 137. St. Albans, Chronicle of the Monastery, cxi. See Am- undesham, Wethamstede. Summarie of the Chronicles of England, cl. Surtees Society, Ixvi. Swift, Works of Dean, ccxvi. Sylvester, Matthew, ccviii. Synodalia, A Collection of Ar- ticles of Religion . . ., etc. (1547-1717), xxiv — B. Tacitus, Germania, Ixxiii ; Agricola, Ixxiii. Tanner, Thomas, vii. Thesaurus Novns Anecdoto- rum, Ixvii. Thomas, of Elham, cxxiv ; Earl of Melrose, clxxxii ; St. of Canterbury, 58 et seq. Thorpe, B., Ix; xc; xci — A; Chap. V; 41; 52. Thoyras, see Rapin. Thurloe, John, cci. Three Chapters of Letters re- lating to the Suppression of the Monasteries, cliv. Tigui'incE, Epistolce, cli. Tindal, N., ccxx. Titi Livii Foro-Juliensis Vita Henrici Quinti, cxxii. Topographia HibernicB, ciii. Townshend, Heywood, clxv. Tractatus de Legibus et Con- suetudinibus regni Anglice tempore Regis Henrici Se- cundi Compositus, civ. Translations and Reprints, U. of P., 56; 60; 80; 81. Treaties and Conventions, Ixviii — A; Rymer, Foedera; — B, Dumont, Corps Univer- sel Diplomatique ; Histoire des Traites de Paix; Ne- gotiations Secretes; — C, Wenk, Corpus Juris Gentium Recentissimi . . . ; — D, Mar- ten, Recueil de Traites d' Al- liance, etc. . . . ; — E, Mar- tens, Murhard, Samwer and Hopfe, Nouveau Recueil; — F, Murhard, Nouveau Sup- plements au Recueil de Trai- tes; — G, Samwer, Hopfe and Stoerk, Nouveau Recueil General; — H, Hertslet's Commercial Treaties; Mod- ern Treaties ; New Treaties. Trivet, Nicholas, ex. Trokelowe, J. de, cxi. Troubles of our Catholic Fore- fathers, clxxiii ; 142. Tub, Tale of a, ccxvi. Twysden, Ixii — b. Union betzveen Great Britain and Ireland, History of, 206- 207. Universe, The, 12. Urbinatis Anglicce Histori . . ., cxi. Usk, Adam of, cxxiii. Utopia, cxlvi. Venetian Relation, cxlii. Verney, Ralph, clxxxvi; Sir Harry, clxxxvii. Verney Papers, clxxxvii. Vetera Analecta, xxxv. Veterum Scriptorum et Monu- mentorum . . ., Ixix. Virgil, Polydore, cxi. Vitalis, Ordericus, cxiv; 44; 46; 54- Walker, Sir Edward, clxxxviii. Walpole, Horace, ccxxxi. Walsingham, T., Historica An- glicana, cxi. Walter Henningford's Chron- icle, cxiii. Ware, Sir James, vi. BIBLIOGRAPHICAL INDEX 601 Welsh Manuscripts, Ixx ; ^o- ciety, Ixx — d. Wenck, F. A. G., Ixviii — c. Wendover, Roger of, cvii ; Chap. IX, X. Wheeler, J. T., 223. Whitelock, Bulstrode, Memo- rials, cc. Whitehall, Secret History of, 176. Whit gift, Life and Acts of John, 136. Wilkes, John, 201. Wilkins, D.. xxiv — 9. William III ; Correspondence of, ccxii : Papers concern- ing, ccxiii ; State Tracts of Reign of, ccxiv ; ccxv ; His- tory of, ccix, ccxx ; Letters to Louis XIV, ccxxiv. Wi I Ham: of M alme sbury, Ixxxix ; of Poitiers, xcv ; The Conqueror, ibid.; 50; of Newbury, xcviii ; Ris- hanger, cix ; of Worcester, cxxviii ; Fitz StepJien, 61. Winwood's Memorials, clxxiv. Wodrow Society, li. Worcester, Florence of, ex ; 43 ; William of, cxxviii. Wraxall, N. W., 209. Writs, Parliamentary, Iviii. Year Books, Ixxi. York Gospel Book, 42. Zimmer, H., Ixxix. Zizaniorurn Fasciculi, cxxxv; 94-96. Zurich Letters, clii. SUBJECT INDEX A Subject Index to a work of the character of the Source- Book of English History could without difficulty be extended to cover many pages. In the present instance it has been deemed expedient simply to present the group indications. From this, the student will have no difficulty in finding information on any subject contained in the book. ^^^ The references are to Sections, not to pages. Act of Settlement, 190. Act of Supremacy, 11 1. Acts of Union, England and Scotland : Queen Anne's speeches upon, 193 ; Act, 194. Great Britain and Ireland: The Union advocated, 206 ; the Union opposed, 207 ; Act, 208. ^lla and his sons land in Bri- tain, 23. Agricola in Britain, 18. Aid : Levying in time of Richard I., 65 ; in time of James I., 152. (See Benev- olence, Ship-money.) Albion, 12. Alfred, 38, 39. American Exploration, 144 ; 145; 146; 147. American Revolution, Ch. XXVIII. The Question of Taxation, 202 ; The Policy of Conciliation, 203 ; The Right to Tax, 204 ; Character of the American Colonists, 205. Angevins, Chs. VIII, IX, X. Angles invade Britain, 22. Anglican Views in Time of Elizabeth, 134. Anglo-Saxon Invasion, De- scription of, 22. Anglo-Saxon Laws of Alfred, Athelstan, and Edgar, Ch. V. Angylde, 31, 35. Annates, Payment to the Pope forbidden, 107. Anne, Speeches on Union of England and Scotland, 193. Anselm and Henry I., 57. Anti-Papal Statutes, 90. (See also Ch. XV.) Appeals to Rome prohibited, 108. Armada, Defeat of Spanish, 140. Armada, Speech made by Eliz- abeth, 141. Aske, Robert and the Pilgrim- age of Grace, 118. Asportatis Rcligiosorum, 87. Augustine's Mission, 24. Australia, Ch. XXXIII: Es- tablishment of the Colony, 225 ; First Penal Settlement, 226 ; Discovery of Gold, 22y : Results of the Finding of Gold, 228. Barons win Magna Charta from John, Ch. X. Becket, Thomas a : Quarrels with Henry, and Death of, 58, 59, 60, 61. 603 6o4 SUBJECT INDEX Benevolences, 153. Bible in the English Churches, 120. Bill of Rights, 189. Bishops in Secular Courts, 41, 52. Black Death, Ch. XII. Bolton, Sufferings at, 223. Books and Images, Act against, 124. Bohrs, 36; 41. Bot, 25 ; 34 ; 36 ; Ch. V, passim. Breda, Declaration of, 171. (See Declaration of Breda.) Britannic Islands : First men- tion of, 12 ; way to and prod- ucts of, 13. Bright, John, 224. Britain : First mention of, 12 ; first mention of by name, 13 ; tin of, 13 ; first Roman invasion of, 14; tin mines of, 17; climate of, 17, 18; trade route to Rome, 17; descrip- tion of, 18; abandoned by Romans, 19; invaded by Picts and Scots, 19; invaded by Anglo-Saxons, 22. Britons : Mode of warfare, 14, 18 ; description of, 14, 18 ; characteristics of, 15, 17; form of government, 18. Briton, The North, 201. Burhs, 36, 41. Burke, Speech on the Character of the American Colonists, 205. Cabal, 175, 176. Cabinet Government, 175, 176. Caesar in Britain, 14, 16. Campeius, Cardinal, Speech at Divorce Trial, 105. Canterbury, the centre of ori- ginal Christianity, 24. Canute : Becomes King of Eng- land, 40 ; Laws of, 41 ; Char- ter of, 42 ; Letter of, 43. Cassiterides, 12. Castlereagh on Union of Great Britain and Ireland, 206. Catholics : Under Henry VIII., Ch. XV ; under Edward VI., Ch. XVI ; under James II., 178; under William III., 191. Catholic Emancipation : The No - Popery Riots, 209 ; Speech of King George, 210; of Attorney-General against, 211 ; of Lord Plunkett for, 212; of Duke of Wellington on, 213. Ceap-gild, 31, 36. Cerdic and Cynric settle Wes- sex, 23. Charles, Prince. (See Pre- tender, Young.) Charles I. : Abandons Straf- ford, 158; 158a; 158b; Sum- mary of Grievances against, 159; Charge against, 160; Charles refuses to plead, 161 ; Sentence of the King, 162; Death Warrant of the King, 163. Charles II. makes the Declara- tion of Breda, 171. Charta, Magna : Winning of, Ch. X : Text of, 8oj Con- firmation of by Edward I., 82. Chartism, 221, 222. Chatham, Earl of. Speech on the Policy of Conciliation, 203. Chippenham, Treaty of, 39. Christianity re-introduced into England, 24. Church : Right to Tithes, 32 ; Scot, 32 ; Hearth-penny, 32 ; Teachings enforced by secu- lar power, 42. Church and State, Relations of : Danes, 42 ; Normans, 50, 51, 52; Angevins, 58, 59, 60, 61 ; Struggle between John and Innocent III., Ch. IX ; Ecclesiastical Sanction of Secular Law, 83 ; Mort- main, 85 ; De Asportatis Re- ligiosorum, 87 ; Provisors, 90; Second Statute of Pro- visors, 92 ; Great Statute of Praemunire, 93 ; Payment of Annates forbidden, 107 ; Ap- peals to Rome prohibited, 108; Heresy punished, 109; li SUBJECT INDEX 605 Clergy forced to submit to Henry VIII., no; Act of Supremacy, in; Denial of the Authority of the Pope, 112; Dissolution of the Mon- asteries, 113; Surrender of a Monastery, 114; Visitation of Monasteries, 115; Six Arti- cles, 119; Bible in the Churches, 120; Services to be in English, 121. Church Services : To be in Eng- lish, 121, 123, 124; Provisions for Uniformity in, 123 ; 124 ; Against Books and Images, 124. Clarendon : Constitutions of, 60; Assize of, 62. Classes of People in the XVIth Century, 133. Clergy: Status of, 30; Privi- leges of, 59, 60 ; Submission of to Henry VIII., no. Clithero, Margaret, Death of 142. Cobden, Richard, 224. Coke, Sir Edward, 155. Common Prayer, Book of Ed- ward VI., 124. Commonwealth, England to be, 166. Commonwealth Period, Ch. XXII. Communion. (See Six Arti- cles and Sacrament.) Constitution of the King's Household, 63. Constitutions of Clarendon, 60. Corn Law : Suffering of the Lower Classes, 223 ; Repeal of the Corn Law, 224. Coronation Oaths : of William I., 45; of Edward II., 89; of James I., 148. Croke, Richard, 104. Cromwell, Oliver : Disciplines his first Parliament, 168; C. and the kingship, 169. Cromwell, Richard, becomes Lord Protector, 170. Cromwell, Thomas, and the Destruction of the Mon- asteries, 116. Culloden, Atrocities after 198. Danes in England, Ch. VI. In- vasions, T,y ; Treaty with Al- fred, 39; Second Period of Invasion, 40; Laws, 41. Declaration of Breda, 171 ; Re- ception of by Parliament, 172; Thanks of Parliament to Sir John Grenville for bringing Declaration, 173. Dissenters in the Eighteenth Century, 192. Divine Right of Kings, 149, 150. Divorce between Henry VIII. and Katherine of Aragon, 104, 105, 106. Dooms, 36. (See Ordeal.) Doomsday Survey, 48; Manor, example of Survey, 49. Dudley, Lady Jane. (See Grey, Lady Jane.) Ecbert, Overlord of Britain, 23. Edward I. : Confirms Char- ters, 82; Abolishes unjust Taxation, 82, 84; De Tal- lagio non Conccdendo, 84 ; Mortmain, 85 ; Provides for Safety of Members of Parlia- ment, 86 ; Prevents Revenues of English religious Houses being carried beyond seas, 87; Quia Emptorcs, 88. Edward II., Coronation Oath of, 90. Edward HI. : Statute of Pro- visors, 80; Statute of Trea- sons, 91 ; Second Statute of Provisors. 92. Edward VI. : Reign of, Ch. XVI ; Journal of, 125. Elizabeth : Reign of, Ch. XVIII ; Religious Sects in Time of. 134. 135, 136, 137; E. and Mary Stuart. 139; Ar- mada Speech of, 141 ; Death of. 143. Elizabethan Seamen, Ch. XIX. Emancipation, Era of, Ch. XXX. England becomes one King- dom, 23. 6o6 SUBJECT INDEX English, Church Services to be in, 121, 123. English Bible to be accessible in all Churches, 121. Eorl, how man might become, 30. Ethelbert, King of Kent, and Augustine, 24. Excommunication of John, 68. Fasts. (See Festivals.) Festivals and Fasts, 35. Finch, Lord Keeper, 156. Gascoyne, General, and the First Reform Bill, 219. Gemot, 31, 36; of Salisbury, 48. George IV., Speech in favor of Catholic Emancipation, 210. Germans, Description of the ancient, 21. Gordon, Lord George, 209. Government, Instrument of, 167. Grattan opposes the Union be- tween Great Britain and Ire- land, 207. Gregory I. sends missionaries to England, 24. Gregory IX., Bull against Wycliffe, 97. Grenville, George, Speech on Question of taxing American Colonies, 202. Grey, Lady Jane : Claim to the Throne, 126; Execution of, 127; House of Lords sup- ports her claim, 128a. Guthrum, 2)7, 39- Habeas Corpus Act, 177. Hceretico Comhurendo, De, 99. Hampden, John, 146, 157. Harold, King : defeats Harold Hardrada and Tostig, and himself defeated by William the Conqueror, 44. Harold Hardrada and Tostig invade England, 44. Hastings, Battle of, 44. Hastings, Warren, Letter of, 230. Hearth-penny, 34, Hengist, 22. Henry I. : Charter of Liberties, 55 ; Charter to the City of London, 56; Quarrel with Anselm, 57. Henry II. : H. and a Becket, 58, 59, 61 ; Constitutions of Clarendon, 60 ; Assize of Clarendon, 62 ; Court Life under Henry II., 62,. Henry IV. : De HcBretico Com- hurendo, 99. Henry V. and VI. : Letters against Lollards, 100, loi, 102. Henry VIII. : Divorce from Katherine of Aragon, 104, 105, 106; and the Church, Attitude to the Catholic Doc- trines, 119. Hercules, Pillars of, 13. Heretics: De Hcsretico Com- hurendo, 99; Royal Letters concerning, 100 et seq.; Mandate for burning, 103 ; Attitude of Henry VIII. to- ward, 109; of Edward VI., 123, 124 ; Mary burns Hoop- er, 131 ; Ridley and Latimer, 132. Heriot, 41. Hooper, Bishop John, burnt by Mary Tudor, 131. Horsa, 22. Hundred : Edgar's Ordinance of, 31 ; witnesses for, 41. Ida reigns over Northumbria, 23- lerne, 12. Images, Act against, 124. India: Ch. XXIV; English at Surat and Bombay, 229; Warren Hastings, 230; Ces- sion of India to the Bri- tish Crown. 231 ; Victoria made Empress of India, 232. Inheritance, Danish rule, 41. Instrument of Government, 167. Interdict on England, 67. Investiture, Controversy, 57. Jacobite Rebellions, Ch. XXVI. SUBJECT INDEX 607 James I. : Nominated as Suc- cessor to Elizabeth, 143 ; Oath of, 148; His Theory of Position of King, 149, 150; J. and the Commons, 154. James II. : J. and the Catholics, 178; Last Appeal to J. that he would reform his Govern- ment, 179. James IV., Proclamation of, 195. (See also Pretender, Young. ) Jesuits in England : under James II., 178; under Wil- liam III., 119. Jews: End of Disability, 214; Oaths Act, 215; Relief Act, 216. John : J. and Innocent III., Ch. IX ; J. excommunicated, 68 ; deposed, 69 ; submits, 70 ; 71 ; resigns Crown and King- dom to the Pope, 72 ; does homage to the Pope, 7^ ; J.'s struggle with the Barons, Ch. X ; grants Magna Char- ta; 79. Jury. (See Assize of Claren- don.) Justice, how administered : in the Hundred, 31, 36, Ch. V, passim; under the Danes, under the Normans, 52, 55 ; under the Angevins, 62 (see text of Magna Charta, 80) ; under the Tudors, 108. Jutes, 22. Katherine of Aragon, Divorce from Henry VIII., Ch. XIV. Kent begun, 23. Kindred of Lordless and Land- less Men. 26, 27. King, Office of abolished, 164. Laborers : effect of Black Death on, 94; Statute of, 95. Lad, 41. Lancaster Herald's Mission to Insurgents of the Pilgrim- age of Grace, 118. Landless Men, 27. Latimer, Bishop Hugh, burnt by Mary Tudor, 132. Law : Anglo-Saxon, Ch. V. (See Justice) ; Growth of, Ch. XL Life at the Court of an Ange- vin King, 63. Lollardy, Ch. XIII. London : First Charter of, 53 ; Charter from Henry I., 56 ; given up to the Barons, 78; Convention of, 235. London, John, Letter on sup- pression of the Monasteries, 117a, 117c. Lordless Men, 26. Macaulay, Lord, describes pas- sage of First Reform Bill, 220. Magna Charta. (See Charta, Magna.) Mansfield, Lord, Speech on the Right to tax American Colo- nies, 204. Mary (Tudor) : Attitude on Religion before her Acces- sion, 125 ; Claim to the Throne, 128 ; House of Lords answers her claim, 128a; Status as Queen, 129; Attempts to restore Church Lands, 130; Orders for Ex- ecution of Bishop Hooper, 131 ; Burning of Ridley and Latimer, 132. Mary Stuart and Elizabeth, 139- Measures in Anglo-Saxon Period, 36. Mercia supreme in England, 23- Millenary Petition, 151. Monasteries : Dissolution of, 113; Confession with Sur- render of, 114; Directions for Visitation of, 113; Let- ters regarding Suppression of, 116; Mary attempts to restore Property of, 130. Money in Anglo-Saxon Period, 36. Mortmain, Law of, 85; 88. Norman Rule in England, Ch. VII. ; Norman Conquest, 44. 6o8 SUBJECT INDEX North Briton, The, 201. Northumbria : begun, 23 ; wins supremacy, 23. Oaths Act, 215. Oaths of Allegiancy and Su- premacy replaced by new Oath, 189. Offa, King of the Mercians, 23. Ordeals, Hot Iron and Water, 28. Ordinance, Secular of King Edgar, 36. Papal Authority i n England : acknowledge, 72, jt, ; de- nied, 112. Parliament : Form of Sum- mons to, 81, 183; Freedom of, 86; Privileges of, 138; Treatment of by James I., 154; Disciplined by Oliver Cromwell, 168 ; thanks Gren- ville for bringing Declara- tion of Breda, 173; urges King's return, 174; Proroga- tion of the Anti-Reform P., 219. Peel, Sir Robert, and the Corn Law, 224. People's Ranks and Law, 30. Peter's Pence : under the Sax- ons, 34; under the Danes, 43- Petition, Millenary, 151 ; P. of Right, 155. Picts and Scots : ravage Bri- tain, 19; are driven from Britain, 20; relations with Anglo-Saxon invaders, 22. Pilgrimage of Grace : Sum- mons to, 117; Lancaster Herald's Description of, 118. Plague. (See Black Death.) Praemunire, Great Statute of, 93- Presbyterian Position in Reign of Elizabeth, 135. Pretender, Young : Landing, 196; Escape at Moy Hall, 197 ; Atrocities after Cullo- den, 198; Bond given by Y. P., 193 ; Execution of the Rebel Lords, 200. Pretoria, Convention of, 234. Privileges of Parliament, 138; of Clergy. (See Constitu- tions of Clarendon.) Puritan Demands in Convoca- tion of 1563, 137. Queen Regnant, Status of, 129. Quia Emptores, 88. Ranks of the People in Anglo- Saxon Period, 30. Reform, Parliamentary, Ch. XXXL : Lord John Russell's Speech on the First Reform Bill, 218; Prorogation of the Anti-Reform Parliament, 219; Passage of the First Reform Bill, 220. (See also Chartism, Corn-Law, Catho- lic and Jewish Emancipa- tion.) Restoration, Ch. XXHL Richard I. : First Coronation of, 64; Levying a Feudal Aid in time of, 65. Richard H. : Great Statute of Praemunire, 93. Ridley, Bishop Nicholas, 132. Right, Petition of, 155; Bill of, 189. Riots, The No-Popery, 209. Romans in Britain : Caesar, 14 ; Agricola, 18 ; Government of Britain by, 18; withdraw from Britain, 19. Rome (see also Hearth-penny. Peter's Pence, and Church) : England not a fief to, 50 ; not to interfere in English civil affairs, 66, 67 ; John surrenders England to Inno- cent HI., to take it back as fief of Rome, Ch. IX. ; Con- flict of R. with Henry VIII., Ch. XV. Royal Supremacy, Canons of, 51- Runnymede, Magna Charta signed at, 79. Russell, Lord John, Speech on First Reform Bill, 218. Sacrament, Regulations con- SUBJECT INDEX 609 cerning that of the Lord's Supper, 122. (See also Six Articles, The.) Salisbury, Gemot of, 48. Sand-River Convention, 233. Saxons : invade Britain, 22 ; settlements, 22. Scotland united to England, 193, I94-. Sects, Religious, in the time of Elizabeth, 134, 135, 136, 137. Senlac. (See Hastings, Battle of.) Separation of Ecclesiastical and Lay Jurisdictions, 52. Settlement, Act of, 190. Ship-Money : First Writ of ; 156; declared illegal, 157, Six Articles, The, 119. Slave Trade, End of, 217. Stamford Bridge, Battle of, 44. Strafford and Charles L, 158, 158a, 158b. Stuart Theory of Kingship, 149, 150. Subinfeudation, 88. Submission of Clergy to Henry VHL, no. Summary of Grievances against Charles L, 159. Summons to Parliament, 175; 183. Supremacy, Act of, in. (See also 112.) Sussex begun, 23. Tallagio non Concedendo, Dc, Teutonic Tribes. (See Ger- mans.) Thane, how man might be- come, 30. Throne of England held by Parliamentary Title, 188. Tin: in the Cassiterides, 12; in Britain, 14, 15. Tithes : under the Saxons, 2,2, ; under the Danes, 43. (See also Church.) Tithing, 41. Tostig, 44. Transvaal, England and the, Ch. XXXV. Treasons, First Statute of, 91. Tregonwell, John, Letter con- cerning suppression of Mon- asteries, 117b. Uniformity, Act of (1548), 123. Union. (See Acts of Union.) Voyages: Hawkins', 144; Drake's, 145 ; Frobisher's, 146; Barlowe's, 147. We dm ore. (See Chippen- ham.) Wellington, Duke of, on Catho- lic Emancipation, 213. Wer-gild, 29. (See wer in 2)^, and Ch. V. passim.) Wessex : begun, 23 ; supreme, 23- Westminster, Council of, 59. Whitgift, Articles touching Preachers and other Orders for the Church, 136. Wilkes, John, 201. William the Conqueror : in- vades England, 44 ; Corona- tion Oath of, 45 ; Administra- tion of, 46 ; Character of, 47 ; Letter to Gregory VH., 50 ; Independence from Papal Rule, 51 ; Charter to London, 53-. William of Orange : invited to come to England, 180; his Reign, Ch. XXHL, passim. William Rufas, Rule of, 54. Witan, 32. Wite, 33, 41. Woodstock, Council of, 58. Wycliffe : Wycliffite Conclu- sions, 96 ; Bull of Gregory XL against W., 97 ; Reply to Gregory IX., 98. WORKS ON ENGLISH HISTORY. HENDERSON'S SIDE-LIGHTS ON ENGLISH HISTORY Edited by ERNEST F. HENDERSON, author of "The History of Germany in the Middle A^es," etc., with 80 fuU-paga illustrations. 300 pp. Quarto. $5.00 net^ special. An elaborate effort towards vitalizing the study of English history. Such topics as the personality of Queen Elizabeth ; the execution of Mary Stuart ; characteristic traits of Crom- well ; the return of Charles H.; the Stuarts in exile; Queen Anne and the Marlboroughs, etc., are illustrated by a wealth of extracts from contemporary records, all arranged to give the effect of a continuous history. These, with the illustra- tions (portraits, facsimiles, caricatures, etc.), reproduced from the rarest originals, form perhaps one of the most notable bodies of illustrative material ever placed before the American student of history. Nezv York Tribune: "It is not unlikely that he who has dipped into this book in the early afternoon will find himself still reading when night comes .... a better book to put in the hands of the lover of history, whether he be a begmner or an old student, we do not know." LEE'S SOURCE BOOK OF ENGLISH HISTORY Edited by Dr. Guy Carleton Lee of Johns Hopkins. 6cx3 pp. Large i2mo. The texts of the most important legal and constitutional documents from the earliest Saxon code to the last treaty between the British and the Boers. Besides copious illustra- tive material from Herodotus to date, and a working bibli- ography, that furnishes a clew to every important MS. and printed document upon English history. The selections are full of human interest, and equally valuable for the general reader, the student, the library, and the classroom. GRAHAM'S ENGLISH POLITICAL PHILOSOPHY From Hobbes to Maine. By Prof. William Graham, of Queen's College, Belfast, author of "The Creed of Science," "Socialism New and Old," etc. xxx -f 415 pp. 8vo. $3.00 7iet^ special. A brilliant epitome and criticism of the chief works of the period on the subject. In this work the author endeavors first to give a compact but connected account of the political theories of the greater English political thinkers from the days of Hobbes, and secondly to distinguish what is perma- nently true from what is doubtful or erroneous, with the end of finally producing something like an Introduction to Politi- cal Science, resting on authority and reason combined. Prof. John W. Burgess of Columbia: "I consider it the best work on the subject ever published in the English language. I have no doubt it will be extensively used in all the universi- ties of this country." HENRY HOLT & CO. =^ ^Stw^^v^orr*"' Tii, 1900 KRAUSSE'S RUSSIA IN ASIA 1558-1899 A Record and a Study. By Alexis Krausse. With appendix, index, and twelve maps. 411 pp., 8vo, $4.00. "The most masterly marshaling of the British arguments against Russia which has appeared for a long time. . . The man who wrote the book has had an inside view of Russian methods, or else he is extremely clever in collecting detailed information about them. His information is brought down to date, and his passages on the Manchurian railway agreement show that he can see near things as vividly as far things. His review of the present state of Russia's southern boundary in Asia is striking, and sums up a great deal of history." — Boston JENKS'S LAW AND POLITICS IN THE MIDDLE AGES. By Edward Jenks, lecturer at Balliol. With a synoptic table of sources, xii -j- 352 pp., 8vo, $2.75, net, special. " An excellent piece of work . . . may be placed among the legal literature of England . . . any lawyer who takes a gen- erous and liberal interest in his science may study it with inter- est . . . in reality not a contribution to our knowledge of law, but a contribution to our knowledge of history." — The Nation. LANGLOIS AND SEIGNOBOS'S INTRODUCTION TO THE STUDY OF HISTORY. Translated by G. G, BERRY. With a preface by P. YORK Powell. 350 pp., lamo, $2.25, net. It discusses the Search for Documents, Textual Criticism, and the Critical Classification of Sources, the Grouping of Facts, Constructive Reasoning, and Exposition, etc., etc. "Deserves a wide circulation." — Nation. " Our authors have produced a strong book, and one that we gladly recommend to students and teachers of history." — Dial. ADAMS'S THE SCIENCE OF FINANCE. By Prof. Henry Carter Adams of University of Michigan. xiv + 573 pp., 8vo, $3.50, net. " Apparently leaves no important topic related to the main subject untouched . . . luminous and suggestive."— ^^z/zVzy f?/ Reviews. " One of the most original, the most suggestive, and the most brilliant productions that have made their appearance in re- cent decades."— /Vf?/. E. R. A. Seligman of Columbia University in Political Science Quarterly. DANIELS'S ELEMENTS OF PUBLIC FINANCE Including the Monetary System of the United States. By Prof. WiNTHROP More Daniels of Princeton. With index. 373 PP-. i2mo, A handy manual for general reader or student, describing the actual system in the United States, with some exposition and criticism of our monetary system. The author's standpoint is in the main conservative, favoring proportional as against progressive taxation, and corporate initiative (under legal restriction) as against public ownership of most urban monopolies. HENRY HOLT & CO. ^«^?4^ltr"« vii., '99. SECOND IMPRESSION. FORD'S THE FEDERALIST. Edited by Paul Leicester Ford, editor of the writings of Jeflferson; Bibliography of the Constitution of the United States, 1787-1788 ; Pamphlets on the Constitution of the United States. Ixxvii -\- 793 pp. Large i2nio. $1.75, net. The present edition is the first in which any attempt has been made to illustrate, in foot-notes, not merely the obscure passages in the text, but also the subsequent experience of the United States and other countries where they relate to the views expressed by the authors. The most authentic text has been used; the antiquated and often absurd punctua- tion — largely due to incompetent early printers — has been rationalized; and an introduction, abundant cross-references, and ay«///M. V -^^ ^ « , \ - \' 1. A a 1 A-*^ \^' ^ -^ i> X ---,. : . -^ ^ - V- ^-^ -^^ 0' ^ i v^ ':^, \ > s "^ ' ^ /, ' "^Vv.-^^ \^ -^c ■'■J' ,iA^ K* >'\ .-^ X^^^. ,"^^^'^.^ .>" ^. \0o o -N' c OQ C\ ---tA o^ .^^*- s- .^^ % .-5^ c^\ ^ N" C ^ -^^ ' -^ - -^ ^-^ ^ V . 8 , -< .V ^ c^' r> y ^i-'- ft •;) . . . , ^. * M - ^^ ci-. '. f * * . \ .^^ ^.^ ,\ Vy ^-i'< ^.':::^:!'% ^ J 0^ j^°.. .^ It .^ -n^ t/> ,^' ^^0^! ''-^v. .-v XV' A^^ •^/- '-' « -^ Jm lilii iiiiriiiiiiiiiiii! Ill LIBRARY OF CONGRESS p^ | 020 684 563 6 !^^